Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India PDF
Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India PDF
Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India PDF
al Hazra
The Rise and Decline of
Buddhism in India
r
PG!PBS -Library
Munshiram Manoharlal
Publishers Pvt. Ltd.
ContentS
..
xi
PART ONE
CIIAVJ'ER 1
Ti l RISE OF BUOOHlSM 3
Contemporary Kings 9
TheHatraihOyn<li:y 9, TheKo.alanDynasty IJ; The
.. Oynas<y /;$;
A,...nu Dymuly H; The Vao C.ndhlira
16; SoYira 16
Conl<:mporaryC.bn 16
OW'TU 2
TheH:uy.uib OynMty 23
The SiSuniiga Oyna5ty or the Sulunaga D)"asty 24
The Nanda Dynmy 29
AU ''St\tsrtittvtd.lndudtt.owo(ttan!Sb
lion i.nto foft:ignbng"'-'S"
.in" r't'triev:'l'>'''""'or BUDOIIISt DURING TilE REIGN Of TilE SUNGAS,
Nopat'o1 thisbookmayMroductd
stoml
IS.eltc:tM\iiC. o:'han.oL pho4oeo
or by at'ly
py ANASAND
THE Ki\.WAS,TIIEsATAVAH
t1.tJWnlt11fd il'lany fOn'n.
saon thtpubf:tshH.
t:nt";U'
. withOut ttw wnum. pemus ol
l'tCOfdl nl odw
w lSt THE SUcCEsso RS OFTHEsATAV.i.HA.'IAS 46
Prined and published by The Sui>gas 46; The Kary>as 4 The $31;mihanas 49,
Munshiram Manoharlal Pubhsh<n Pvt. Ud, The Succ:c.-t orlhe S3tav5hanuJJ; The Anandaso(
Po.t Box 5715, 54 Ranijhansi Road. New o.tlu 110 055.
vi Contents Contents vii
Kat:tarapura 56; The BrhatphaHiyanas of Kudarahara The Chahamanas or the Chahumanas or the Chauhans 216
or Kudura 57; The Salankiiyanas of Vengi 58; The The Chahamanas of Sakambhari, Ajmer and Delhi 2 17
Abhiras 58; The Bodhis 59; The Vakiitakas 60
CHAPTER 9
CHAPTERS
BUDDHISM DURING THE REIGN
BUDDHISM DURING THE RULE OF OF SASANKA OF GAUQA 226
THE INDO-GREEKS AND THE INDO-SCYTHIANS 62
The Palas 229
The Indo-Greeks 62; The Saka Satraps 66; The Par- Several Minor Dynasties of Bengal 243
thians 67; The Great Kuiit:tas 68; The Saka Satraps of Three Rulers of Samatata 24 3; The Rata Dynasty 244;
Western India and the Deccan 74; The Kardamakas or The Natha Dynasty 24 6; The Khaga Dynasty 24 7;
Karddamakas 75 The Kamboja-Pala Dynasty (c. AD 9 1 1 -92) 25(), The
Harikela Kingdom under Kantideva 251; The Chan
CHAPTER 6 dras of Taranatha'sAccount252; The Chandra Dynasty
2"i4; The Suras ( c. AD 950- 1 1 00) 257; The Varman
BUDDHISM UNDER THE GUPTAS
Dynasty 258; The Sena Dynasty 2 6(), The Sudraka
77
Dynasty (c. AD 1 1 00-50) 2 64; The Manas (c. AD 1 1 00)
AND LATER GUPTAS
264; The Kaivartas (c. AD 1080-1 1 00) 2 65; The Chikko
CHAPTER 7
ras of Pithi 2 66; The Kingdom of Pithi 2 67; The Deva
BUDDHISM DURING THE REIGN OF THE MAU Dynasty 2 68; The Kingdom of Pattikera 27(), The
KHARIS, HARVARDHANA AND THE MAITRAKAS 85 Minor Gupta Dynasty 27 1
341
The Paramaras of Uita and Ma1ava (Malwa) 2 05
INDIA IN AD 630 AS DESCRIBED BYHIUEN-TSANG
viii Contents
CHAPTER 12
GRADUAL DECLINE OF BUDDHISM
IN DIFFERENT REGIONS OF INDIA 355
Abbreviations
Calcutta .I
extended horizon of the Bhagavati clearly proves that its list is later then married Yasodhara, the daughter of king Dal).<.Japal).i of the
than the one given in the Buddhist Anguttara. 'W_e shall, there<?re, Koliyan republic. He lived in luxury for several years with her and
accept the Buddhist list as a correct representation of the pohucal enjoyed the worldly pleasures very much. Then they had a son whose
condition of India after the fall of the House of Janaka. n7 In this name was Rahula. Siddhattha lived in the palace up to the age of
connection we may mention here the Mahagovinda Suttanta of the twenty-nine. His father built three magnificent palaces for him-one
Digha Nikiiya which describes that India was en diided ir_lto seven
for the sum.'ller season, one for the rainy season and another for the
dominions (Satta Bharata).8 These seven Bharatas With their respec winter season. In order to prevent his son from leaving the world
tive capitals are given here. They were: Kalinga (Datapura), !-a what the astrologers predicted about him and to keep him away from
(Potana), Avanti (Mahissati), Sovira (Roruka), VIdeha (M1thda),
the 'four sights, an old man, a sick, a corpse and a monk', King
Allga (Campa) and KaSi (Varal).asi).
Of all the above states that flourished in the age of the Buddha and
Suddhodana arranged everything for his son's worldly pleasures and
enjoyments. At the request of the prince, the king one day made
Mahavira, four kingdoms became very powerful than the others and
arrangements for the former's visit to the pleasure garden. But on his
each of these states tried to establish its suzerainty over its neighbour way to the garden, the prince saw an old man with grey hair, a sick
ing states. These four states were Magadha, Kosala, Vaand Avanti.
man, a dead body and a recluse. All these four sights made a great
It is to be noted here that these states were monarchical. But there change in his mind. He at once realised the impermanence of all
were also republican stes. Among them, the mas i ortant e: worldly things. He then determined to leave this world and wanted
the Vajjians of north Bihar and the Mallas of Kusmara and Pava. to go to the forest for meditation to attain the highest enlighten
Apart from these states, there 'Yere also sevral smaller republican
ment. '!he prince, at the age of twenty-nine years, on the full moon
states which were known as the sakyas ofKapilava:tthu (Kapdavastu)'
day of A<.Jha, left the palace at the dead of night on horse back with
the Koliyas of Devadaha and Ramagama, the Bhaggas (Bhargas) of
Channa, the charioteer. Mter crossing the kingdoms of the Sakyas,
Sumsumara Hill, the Bulis of Allakappa, the Kalamas of Kesaputta
the Koliyas and the Mallas, he arrived in the Anuvaineya town on the
and the Moriyas of Pipphalivana.10
river Anoma in the early moming.14 Here, after leaving Channa, he
The sixth century BC was an important landmar m e relig.ous
wandered alone in the forest and met a hunter with yellow robes. He
history of lndia. The rise of Buddhism took place m Is ce tury. It
then exchanged his dress with him.
marked the end of the predominance of the Brahm,amc penod. The
Siddhtha went to the city of Vaisali (Vesati) where he metAiara
Buddha, the founder of Buddhism, was the son of Suddhodana, the
KaJama (Ara<.Ja Kalama), the renowned philosopher/5 who became
chieftain of Sakya clan. He ruled from Kapilavatthu over a small
kingdom in the north-east part of the U ted Prc;>vinces ad the
.
his teacher and spent some time with him there. But Siddhattha WCJ
not happy with his method of teaching and his philosophical viel'
neighbouring districts of southern Nepal. His Wife was Mya_ or
He left him soon. Then he went to Magadha 's capital Rajag
Mahamaya. She in her sleep saw a dream that the Boddhisattva
(Rajagrha, modem Rajgir), where he met Bimbisara, the king. l-te
appeared in the shape of a white elephant from the north and after
promised him that he would come to him to give instruction in true
encircling her rightwise three times entered her womb on the final
knowledge after his enlightenment. He then met Rudraka Ramapu-'
tra (Uddaka Ramaputta), another famous philosopher at Rajagaha.16
day of theAa<.Jha (Asatha) festival inKapilavatthu. Then she became
pregnant. Mter ten months she in order to visit her,parents t
He too could not help him to find out the path leading to enlighten
Devadaha, gave birth to a son mader the shade of a Sa1 ee m
. ment. From there he went to Uruvela17 (modem Bodh-Gaya) where
Lumbini near the ancient town of Kapilavatthu. Mahamaya died h met the Paiicavaggiyas, i.e., the five mendicants-Vappa, Bhad
when the prince was seven days old. He was then brought up b his
ya, Assaji, Mahanama and Ai'iiiatra Kol).<.Jaiiiia.18 At U ruvela-Senapa
aunt Mahapajapati Gotami (Maha.prajapati Gautami). Te nnce
gma (Senapatigama) he sat down without food to engage himself
was known as Siddhattha (Siddhartha) after five days of h1s birth.12
m ngorous ascetic practices. But he realised that rigorous asceticism
was not the path leading to enlightenment. Mter a fast for forty-nine
Gautama (Gotama) was his another n'!-me.l3 He was also known a
Sakyasi111ha because he was born in a Siikya famil. His teacher was days, he took food from the hand of Sata, the daughter of the
Visvamitra. The young prince, under his able gmdance, learnt all
landowner Senani, and sat down under the Bodhi tree with a strong
sorts of arts, crafts and martial exploits within a very short time. He det ermination for his attainment of final liberation. He then uttered
6 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India The Rise of Buddhism 7
these words, "Let my skin, my nerves and bones waste away, let my he preached the non-existence of the soul and the essencelessness of
lifeblood dry up, I will not leave this seat before attaining perfect the five khandhas to them.30 The king gave his bamboo-grove (Ve
enlightenment. "19 In that night he in meditation acquired first his nu vana, Veluvana) to the Buddhist Sa'f!tgha and became his lay
knowledge of his former states of existence, then through his divine devotee. The Buddha accepted it and he established the first Bud
eyes saw the nature of all beings, and also attained the knowledge of dhist vihara. Sariputta and Moggallana, who at first were followers of
dependent causation (pratityasamutp_iida or paticcasamuppiida) as well Saiijaya, a heterodox wandering ascetic, became the Buddha's dis
as the knowledge of the four truths (Aryasatyas or ariyasaccas) .20 In the ciples.31 He then came to Kapilavatthu-where he met his father
very early morning he became known as the Buddha, the fully Suddhodana, wife Yasodhara and his son Rahula. Here Nanda
Enlightened One by the attainment of his highest knowledge, the another son of Suddhodana, became Buddha's disciple and joined
&dhi. the Buddhist Sa'f!tgha.32 The Buddha then told sariputta to ordain
The Buddha at first did not like to preach his new doctrine to the Rahula as a novice. Kala Khemaka and Ghataya were the two Sakyas
people. He hesitated and thought that the people would not under who showed veneration towards the Buddha. They erected several
stand his doctrine and would not accept it. But Brahma SahampatJ monasteries in the Nigrodharama.33 The Buddha, Ananda and
requested him to do so and then he took his decision to preach his Moggallana delivered a series of discourses to the Sakyas on the
Dhamma for the welfare of the world. At the Deer park called occasion of the inauguration of their new Santhagara or the Mote
ipatanamrgadava (lsipatanamigadava) (Sarnath) near Yaasi, Hall at Kapilavatthu.34 At the Buddha's rquest many Sakyas became
he delivered his first discourse known as the Dhammacakkappavat his followrs and ey joined the Buddhist Sa'f!tgha. Like the Sakya
tana sutta (Turning of the Wheel of the Law) to the Paiicavaggiyas men, the S3.kya la<J)es wanted to join the SaTM5ha. They felt verymuch
who were living there.21 He told them that everybody should follow for the Buddha and the Sa'f!tgha. ThenAnuruddha, Bhaddiya, Ananda,
a middle path. He mentioned them further that the easy life as well Bhagu, Kimbila, Devadatta and Upali were also converted by the
as the life of r:gorous asceticism should be avoided because these Buddha.35
were too extremes. He then explained to them the middle path Anathapir;tc_lika,, a wealthy merchant, requested the Buddha to
(majjhima patipada) or the noble eightfold path ( ariya atthangika come to savatthi (Sravasti) where the former gave him thejetavana
magga) which consisted of right speech, right action, right liveli monastery for th Buddhist Sa'f!tgha. At Vesa.Ii (Vaisali), the Buddha
hood, right exertion, right mindfulness, right meditation, right cmerted many S3.kyas and Koliyas to his religion. They became his
intention and right views. He then expounded the four noble truths, dtsCiples. Here Mahapajapati Gotami (Mahprajapati Gautami), the
i.e., suffering, origin of suffering, causation of suffering and the path step-mother of the Buddha with many Sakya and Koliya ladies
leading to the cessation of suffering.22 He also delivered to them the requested the Buddha to give them permission for the formation of
Anattalakkhanasutta which deals with the doctrine of anatta.23 After the Sa7!tgha_ofN1ms, the Order ofNuns, the Bhikkhut;i Sa'f!tgha. At the
his discourse, he converted them to his new faith. Then Piina r: quest of Ananda the Buddha gave them permission on the condi
Maitrayaniputra, Nalaka and Subhiya, who were recluses accepted tion at e nuns (Bhikkhut;is) should follow eight duties of
Buddhism as their religion and became the Buddha's followers. YaSa., subordmatlon (gurudhamma).36 Mahapajapati Gotami joined the
a son of a rich merchant of Varanasi, . and his four friends-Vimala, Sa'f!tgha and became a Bhikkhutti (nun) and formed the Bhikkhuni
Subahu, Piin:ta and Gavampatian dfifty others, became the Buddha's 'f!tgha. Se dd very well in the Sa'f!tgha and became an arhat. May
disciples.24 The Buddha then reached Uruvela where he c<;>nverted S3.k ladtes JOmed . the Buddhist Sa'f!tgha. Among them Tissa,
Uruvela Kassapa, Nadi Kassapa and Gaya Kassapa and thetr follow Abhuiipa-Nanda, Mitta, Sundari became very prominent and reached
ers, who were fire worhippers, by the performance of miracles,25 and the stage of arhat-ship. YaSodhara took Buddhism as her religion.
he delivered to them the Fire Sermon or the Adittapariyayasutta26 The Buddha at Varat:tasi met Mahakacciyana (Mahakatyayana), who
which says that the real fire consists of attachment, hatred and was a son of the royal priest of Cat:tc_la Pajjota (Pradyota),
the king of
delusion which arise from sense-objects, sense-contacts and the Avanti. He became a disciple of the Buddha. It was because of
him
like.27 His disciples then became one thousand and the Buddha Buddhism flourished in Ujjeni (Ujjaini). '
made his first Sa'f!tgha.28 He then went to Rajagaha where he met The Buddha in the Sa'f!tgha faced a strong opposition from his
Bimbisara, the king of Magadha, his ministers and his citizens.29 Here cousin and brother-in-law, Devadatta, who was very jealous
of the
8 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India The Rise of Buddhism 9
Buddha because of his great popularity and influenceY He re Rajagaha and V"aral)asi to Kausambi, Sravasti and Siiketa on the
quested the Buddha several times to mention his name as his north, as also to the various tribes inhabiting the Himalayan foot
_ _
successor. But the Buddha refused it. Devadatta then tned to bnng hills. "40
a schism in the Sat[tgha by telling the monks to disapprove the rules
and regulations introduced by the Buddha for the monks in the CONTEMPORARY KINGS
Sat[tgha. He left the Sat[tgha with Vrijian (Vajjian) monks for Vesali
and stayed at Gayasisa. THE HARYANKA DYNASIY
The Buddha, after propagating his doctrine for forty-five years,
expressed his desire for the attainment of Mahaparinib?ana Bimbisara
(Mahaparinirval)a) at KuSinara (KuSinagara). He was then eighty
Bimbisara was regarded as the real founder of the imperial power
years old. At that time Ajatasattu (Ajatasatru), the king ofMagadha,
of Magadha. His kingdom was bordered on the north by the river
sent the governor ofPataliputra, Vassakara Brahmal)a to the uddha Ganges, on the south by the small hills of the Vindhyan range, on the
at Rajagaha to tell him that he wanted to declare war agamst the
east by the river Campa and on the west by the river Son. It consisted
Vajjians of Vesali in order to conquer them. But the Buddha re
of the districts ofPatna and Gaya of southern Bihar. Girivraja or old
minded him that it would be difficult for Ajatasattu to conquer them
Rajagrha or Rajagaha was its old capital.
because of certain practices and noble virtues of the Vajjians. _He
Bimbisara was contemporary of the Buddha and was his great
then left Rajagaha. From there he came to Vesali after passmg
patron. He made an important contribution to the development of
throughAmbalatt.hika, Nalanda, Pataligama (Pataligrama), Kotigama
Buddhism in his kingdom. From thePabbajjasutta41 we learn that the
(Kotigrama), and Nadika.38 Here he stayed at the mango-grove of
meeting between king Bimbisara and the Buddha took place c.bout
Ambapali and preached his doctrines to his discipls. Frm Vei he
seven years before the attainment of his Enlightenment. He then
came to Bhoganagara where his devotees received mstructlons
relating to the observance of moral precepts ( stla)' meditation
asked his royal officers to go to the Buddha to bring him to the
palace. But the Buddha did not come. Then the king went to the
(samiidhz), acquisition of knowledge (paiiiiii, prajiiii) and the at Buddha's place where he was staying to meet him and to talk to him.
tainment of emancipation ( vimutti, vimukti) from him. He then
The Buddha told him, just beside Himavanta oh! king, there lives
came to Pava and stayed at the Mango Garden of Cui)Qa who was a a people endowed with the power of wealth, the inhabitants of
son of blacksmith. Here he fell ill after taking his meal. From there
he came to KuSinara where, though he was ill, yet, he ordained
Kosala. There are Adikkas by family, Sakkiyas by birth, from that
family I have wandered out, not longing for sensual pleasures. Seeing
Subhadda (Subhadra) a heretical monk. He was his last di!'>ciple.
misery in sensual pleasures and considering the forsaking of the
Then he delivered a speech to his followers: "Now, monks, I have
world as happiness, I will go and exert myself,-in this my mind
nothing more to tell you but that all that is composed is lble to
delights. "42
decay. Strive after salvation energetically."39 He also infrmed Ananda
Then Bimbisara came to know that he was the son ofSuddhodana,
that after him his teachings and his rules would be their teacher and who promised the former that he would come to his capital after his
guide. He then aimounced his time for Mahaparinibbana which
Enlightenment The Buddha just after the attainment of his Bud
occurred in the full moon day of Vesakha (Vaisakha). dhahood came to Rajagaha and stayed at the Supatitthacetiya in the
It is known from different historical records that Gotama Buddha palm-grove pleasure ground (Latthi Vanuyyana),43 where Bimbisara
and his disciples succeeded in a great measure in their missionary We nt to pay homage to him. On this occasion the Buddha gave
activities. Because, they secured active support, co-operation and discourses which deals with diinakathii, Szlakatha, the four noble
patronage from several rulers, queens, princes, as well as ministrs,
truths, the anicca and anattii of the five skandhas (constituents of
bankers and wealthy citizens. As a result, we see tht Budhism bei ng) and also the doctrine of pratityasamutpiida.44 The king became
became very prominent in the religious history of anCientlnda N.
: very happy and immediately after his discourses, the king and his
Dutt observes: "During the life-time of the Master, the rehgwn peop le took Buddhism as their religion and became his followers.
should spread all over the central belt oflndia from Kajangala and The Buddhava'f[tSa commentary describes that Bimbisara became the
Campa on the east to Veraiija and Avanti on the west, and from sotiipa nna when the Buddha delivered a discourse on the Maha
10 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism i n India The Rise of Buddhism 11
Narada Jataka.45 The king then offered his Veluvana park to the receivedKaSi or a part of i as a dowry by his marriage with Vajira, the
.
Buddha who gladly accepted it.46 H e then along with his children, daughter of king Pasenadi ofKosala. Ajatasattu took the advice of the
wives, subjects and royal officers not only paid their homage to the Buddha ? conquer the Lichchhavis, who formed a constituent part
Buddha but they were ready to sacrifice their lives for the service of of the _YaJJtan confederacy and who were then at the height of glory
the Master.47 The king also issued an order that nobody must do any o their pwe a the head of a vast confederacy. The Buddha told
_
harm to theBuddha's disciples. It was due to the king's great love and J\!tasattu s rnmister Vassakara that this was not the proper time for
sympathy for theBuddha and his meritorious activities, the Buddha Ajatasattu to conquer them. The latter's chance of victory came after
was able to propagate his teachings in the kingdom of Bimbisara three years and he conquered them.
without any difficulty and that is why, Buddhism prospered in his The Mahap:inibban of the Budh took place in the eighth
!
kingdom very much. At the request of king Birnbisara, the Buddha regn l yea of AJasattu. When the mimsters gave him the sad news
not only framed rules and regulations for the Buddhist Sa1[lgha but he fai?ted Immedmtely and behaved like a mad man.56 From frescoes
also at the king's suggestion he introduced the Uposatha ceremony covenng the walls of a lk around a stiipa at Qyzyl in theKuch area
along with the recital of the Patimokkha into Sa1[tgha.48 Even the of north-cel Turkistan of the Tocharian period of the sixth
Buddha told his disciples to fix the date of the commencement of the century AD, It IS also own at the news of the passing away of
Vassavasa after their meeting with the king. 49 From the Mahiivaggawe uddh wa coum ated With great care to the king who had no
learn that the king invited all his superintendents of the 80,000 I ea of It. His mmist r mforrned him by a device. His minister asked
villages of his kingdom in a meeting to give them instruction and hi to take a bath m melted butter. While he was doing so, the
advice relating to his administrative affairs.After his meeting he told rmm. ter showd hi"_I the principal events of the Buddha's life viz.,
his officers to go to theBuddha not only to pay homage to him but the bi:th of pnne Siddhattha, hs enlightenment, his first sermon,
and his Mahapanm?bana .
to receive theBuddha's instructions in the transcendental matters.50 n the Sala-grove at KuSinara in a painting
It shows how much the Buddha and his religion influenced the life on a vas. The king cned out in despair when he saw the last
of the king. Kherna, who was the chief consort ofBimbisara, entered scene, I.e., when he learnt of the Great Loss. The king then sent
the Bhikkhu1Ji Sa1[lgha and soon became an arhat.51 messngr to the Mallas, .who were present during the time of the
Mahapambbana _ and claimed his share of the Buddha's relics. He
Ajiitasattu then eceive a share of theB ddha's reics and he built a stone stiipa
_
Buddhism flourished in the reign of Ajatasattu (493-462 BC) who at Rajagaha over the rernams. On this occasion he celebrated a
ascended the throne of Magadha after Birnbisara in the 72nd year feast. He built sevel .D atucetiyas in and around Rajagaha.w He
also rCJ:>arred 1 8 ahaVIharas atRajagaha which were deserted by the
Bud? hist rnonks JUSt fter the Mahaparinibbana of the Buddha.ro
of the Buddha's life. From a tradition recorded in several Buddhist
texts we learn that Ajatasattu, the most powerful son of Birnbisara, _ ,
killed his father at the instigation of Devadatta, a cousin and brother AJaatt s name IS closely associated with the First Buddhist
in-law of the Buddha.52 He also supported him in his attempt to kill c.uncd1 which was held in the Sattapai (Saptaparni) cave at
the Buddha.53But later on, Ajatasattu not only realised his mistakes, RaJagaha two . months ater the Buddha's Mahaparinibbana. He
but felt very sorry for his past misdeeds. Jivaka, the ernineH-t royal played a promment part m this council. Subhadda, the last convert
physician, arranged a meeting between the Buddha and Ajatasattu of theBuddha, became extremely happy at theBuddha's demise. He
when the latter had no mental peace due to his sinful acts. His told other monks that henceforth there would be none to rebuke
meeting with theBuddha had a great effect on his mind. The king them and they would be able to do at their own will.61 Subhadda's
became extremely happy and he told the Buddha that he repented uterane had a very bad effect on the Sarrtgha. Mahakassapa the
for his great sin. He then became a devout follower of the Buddha. chief disciple of the Buddha and other members of the Samgha
This thing happened one year before the Mahaparinibba.na of the bcarne anxious for the discipline of the Sarrtgha. They then deter
nuned to convene a council of five hundred arhats at Rajagaha to
Buddha. The king played a vital role for the progress ofBuddhisrn in
reheae the teachings of theBuddha.62 They proposed it in order to
his kingdom.
Ajatasattu wasa powerful ruler. From the AryaMaiijusnmiiJakal
estabhsh a canon of the Dhammaand to maintain the discipline of the
we learn thatAitga, Varaasi and Vesali carne under his rule. He even Sa1[lgha. There was seldom dissension over doctrinal matters, but the
12 The Rise arul Dedine ofBuddhism in lrulia The Rise of Buddhism 13.
council was necessitated by the pious determination of the disciples The !?ulva,68 the Tibetan_ Vinaya, refers to two other charges
of the Lord to presenre the purity of the teachings.63 From the against Ananda. They were: Ananda did not give drinking water to
Buddhist texts we learn that most of the arhats except Gavampati64 the Buddha when the latter asked thrice for it and when men and
and Piira9a65 played their important parts for the progress of the women of low character '?llle to pay their homage to the Master after
council. Ananda, who was not an arhat up to this time, became an his Mhaparinibbana, Ananda then showed the Buddha's privy
arhatjust before the beginning of the session of the council and was parts. Ananda gave his reply. He said that the water of the river was
permitted by the Sa7[-gha to join the group of five hundred arhats not only clean, but was muddy. That was the reason why he did not
selected for this council. Ajatasattu took active part in this council supply drinking water to the Buddha.Ananda showed the privy parts
and gave all possible help for the success of the council. He built a because, according to him, "that the exhibition of the privy parts,
spacious hall at the entrance of the Sattapai cave on the Vebhara would rid those concerned of their sensuality. JJOO
(Vaibhara) hill near Rajagaha and decorated it with precious mats. The First Buddhist Council also discussed another important item
He arranged a seat for the President of the councilon the south side which wa the punishment of Channa who W'as the Buddha's chari
and another seat for the reciting monk in the middle of the hall.66He oteer on the day of Great Renunciation. This monk had slighted
also arranged accommodation and food for the monks. About five every member of the order, high and low, and was arrogant in the
hundred Buddhist monks attended this council. Mahakassapa acted extreme. The penalty imposed was complete social boycott. Then
as its president. Upali, who had been mentioned by the Buddha as the punishment was announced to Channa he was seized with
the foremost of the Vinayadharas, recited the Vinayarules.Ananda profound repentence and grief,and was purged of all his weakness.
recited the Dham'fM, (or the SuUa). Mahakassapa himself asked all In short, he became an arhat. The punishment automaticallyceased
questions relating to the Vinaya and the Dhammaboth to Upali and to be effective. 70
Ananda. This council continued for about seven months in the AJatasattu did a splendid job for the welfare and comforts of the
Sattapai cave. Thus in the First Buddhist Council the Vinaya was participant monks and the success of the council. Like Bimbisara,
settled under the leadership ofUpali and the texts of the Dhammawas Ajatasattu wasa great devotee of the Buddha. It was due to Bimbisara
settled and arranged under the guidance of Ananda. In the session and Ajatasattu, the Buddha became very popular and was able to win
of the council several charges brought by the monks againstAnanda the hearts of the Magadhan people and it was easy for him to
were discussed and the latter gave the following explanations for propagate his teachings there. Ajatasattu made a significant contri
these charges: bution for the propagation of Buddhism in his kingdom.
1. "He could not formulate the lesser and minor precepts, as he THEKoSALAN DYNASTY
was overwhelmed with grief at the imminent death of the
Master. Pasenadi
2. He had to tread upon the garment of the Master while sewing Mahakosala was the king ofKosala which corresponded to mod
it as there was no one to help him. ern Oudh. His son was Pasenadi (Prasenajit) who became the king
3. He permitted women to salute first the body of the Master, ofKosala most probably after the death of his father. He was awn
because he did not want to detain them. He also did this for temporary of the Buddha.71 He was regarded as one of the most im
edification. portant rulers of the time.He not only conqueredKaSibut theSakyas
4. He was under the influence of the evil one when he forgot to ofKapilavatthu, theKalamas ofKesaputta and other neighbouring
request the Master to enable him to continue his study for a states even came under his influence.72 He extended his kingdom
kalpa. from the Gumatito the little Gandak,from the Nepalese Tarai to the
5. He had to plead for the admission of women into the order out Ganges, and to the eastern part of theKaimur range.73
of consideration for Mahapajapati Gotami who nursed the The Buddhist texts refer toKing Pasenadi's important role for the
Master in his infancy."f>7 advancement of Buddhism in his kingdom. The Majjhima Nikiiya
mentions the Buddha as aKosalan.74 Pasenadi often told"Bhagava pi
Knsalako aham pi Kosalako". (Our Lord also belongs toKosala so do I
1.5
; llldio
1MIUS< olld Dtdine ofBw:ldltin ,.
obo.) KmgPasenadi 's c:onvc=tions,.,.h the Buddhauot only mode discourx co them.. rbey bc
ca.me m011ks ad auained 411'MJ.thip.
ham bas ardmtadvise r but abo h.s fo.Uowuand dose friend.-& The They"i' d: "Lcnn. Kmg Pajjota d<>ries t owo rshopatyou rrecnnd bear
did come to AY.tntl. They went
rh:.r.uuttarcJcrs toit,a.nd his comnion toBud dhism ."' He w:as so Rue the Buddh:J not c.k
/)llamM& . t
a
much devoted 10theBuddha that when hemet him, be down e, and i ntroduc . 0u)4 a PaJJO
totheirnativepl:.c
Budd hiSm there
_to the Buddha's
with hi head at the feet of r.he Bu ddh a and won.hipped him wich votee of the Budd ha after lislcni ng
bcame a l:ayde
k.iMC$.n Under the imtruct.Jon o fhi$wife1\rfaUik.i, he offered valuable teachings from them. Th k i g e11 lOOk c;t\'C for the
.
devttoprnenl or l\u ddl . yana.con
gifts to the Buddha on an immense Kale. The Buddhist texu men u sm ID has kingd om. M hak.
1
o;;
, t SC\'t l monastenes t
tion these gift.s as a.sadistum-,,aor incomp;uhle charity,11t Its hows hi1 verted m3n y peop le: Lo Budd hism and btul
lo"e fOf' the Buddha, the Sa and his religion.Thisabo n i dicate Kur.ll':og harJ."r.auopabb<ooaandMak
karal<.a' Ounng thoBuddha s
the prosperioyofBuddhism in the kingdomo fKo sala under the lead tife-timc A\':lntllxcam t famou s as a great cenlre orB\addhism. The
.tnh ipo rPa.senadi.lt is knO"I'n from th e Buddhis-trecordslhatJunha. andoffcred \"a)uabe g_ifts
king beca me a gmt follow erofB addh ism .
huntinhttr. helped him:lithe almJoghmg and theking "'UJO h:a 10 the Sa'!'P... It ..... due to Mabhcdy
.
om' aotmue.,
ounda.uon
.;thhim thai beaskedhin 10 rule 0\rth e kmgdom f orSEve.n <b )'S. BudhiJin
d .,,, able to e-tablish auelf th on aolid f
Kmg Pasenadi'uon Bro.hmacblla)Oined the Buddltis< &'!'P-at
an cartyagc :Uld bebecame an trluu... I Its stcrSurnanaalsobecame THE VATSA OmASTY
a 8/uMJut.; and attained the suge of a,hokhip. The KajaUrinu
monasterywhich wa.s si ruated nr thejetavana was built by him a.nd UdmD (lfdt?")
King Sat..ltnlka Paranropa' son "'aS Urlcn
the lluddba stayed there for sometime. At the request of the a, who tLSCer:-dcd _the
Buddha the king gave i t to Ott. nun and Sumana reside d chere. The throne ofche ki ngdom of Vatsa. Koiambi (K.'\u.P
niM) wash1sc::ap ta.l.
klng had greatf'Cgard for the Ruddhi'.l (c supported him strongly in 11\ishasbeen identified whh mode rn Kosam , avdh\g e on thejumnl
hb mis&iorl.ill')' activities and cook keen interest for th e prosperity o f near Allahabad,., King Udena who was a rontcrn
por.uy of tlt.e
Buddhlsm in his i k ngdom. h i' S.'lid chat the king was so much pay any respc: :c: .l co the Budd ha_ and has
Buddha, ttl fiNt did nol
dc:\occd c.othe Bu ddhaa!ld hiJ Ott that he paid homage to lh Sa'!ffhoS.im, ,-... U ,l11ead opted daugh terofC hosa-ka was huqueeo.
GANDHARA relics and requested with thee words: J3!wgava athaka'f!l:. atise{tho."
"
(The Blessed One was the chef of. or kmsmen} . The Sikyas were
Pukkusati worshippers of the Brahmamc rehgton.
.
Gandhara, which corresponded roughly to the modem districts The Buddha after his enlightenment came to Kaptlavatthu, but he
of Peshawar ( Purushapur) and Rawalpindi in the north-western did not receive a warm welcome from the Sakyas, who later on
Punjab92 an d Kashmi r, was the country where Pukkus ati realised their mistakes and became great followers. of th Buddha
d his religion. They made valuable contnbutwns to th e mtroduc-
.
(Pukarasarin) ruled in the middle of the sixth century BC. His capital
was Taxila. He established his friendly relation s with Bimbisara, the '::o
n , establishment and development of Buddhism in their ountry.
king ofMagadha and there existed close cultural ties between the two Soon Kapilavatthu became an important centre of Buddhtsm. Not
countries. only Kapilavatthu, but Catuma, Samagama, Khomadussa, Me
King Pukkusati, who was a contemporary of the Buddha, took dahumpa, Nangara and Devadaha99 were the places where the
keen interest in Buddhism through the efforts of Bimbisara. The Buddha visited to preach his doctrines. In most of th e places, the
,
latter sent ambassadors with valuable gifts including an inscribed Sakyas received him with great honour. The Buddha s attempt to
golden plate which had the description of the three jewels and of ropagate his Dhamma in the Sakya country was successful no doubt.
various tenets relating to the Buddha's teachings to him.93 It is said e by his simple method of praching his doctrnes made a deep
that after reading the inscription on the plate the king joined the impression on the minds of the 5akya people. who m tum were eaer
Sa'!lgha and became a Buddhist monk. He even came to Rajagaha to not only to receive his teachings but gave thetr help fr the estabhsh
pay homage to the Buddha who preached to him the Dhatuvibhanga ment and prosperity of Buddhism. From the J.'!havagga w e_ lam
Sutta.94 The king became an ardent follower of Buddhism and took that personswhobelonged to non-Buddhistic religous ordJomed
active part to popularise Buddhism in his kingdom. the Buddhist Sa1(tgha through a probationary penod (Panvasa} fr
four months, but the Buddha allowed the sakyas because o therr
SOvlRA close relationship with him and also the ]a#las (who .were beheers
in the effects of past deeds} to join the Sal!lgha Wtthout passmg
Rudriiyana through a probationary period.100
Rudrayana occupied the throne ofRoruka in Sovira (or Sauvira or
the Lower Indus Valley) in the days of the Buddha. He received first The Lichchhavis .
the news of the Buddha in Magadh a from Bimbisara. The latter sent The Lichchhavis were regarded as the most powerful clan m
him an inscribed plate which contained some of the cardinal tenets north-eastern India. In the time of the Buddha they ecame vry
of Buddhism. On seeing these, the king felt very much for the prominent and occupied n importa place in anctent ndtn
Buddha's religion and he became a follower of Buddhism. He then history. They formed a part of the Va.lJlan co ederacy which m
joined the Buddhist Sa1(lgha as a monk.95 During the life-time of the cluded the old Videhas, the Jiiatrikas, the Vnjts, the Ugras, the
Buddha, Buddhism established itself in the kingdom ofRudrayana. Bhogas, the Kauravas and the Aivakas.11 Vesali (Vaisali) as .been
iden tified with the modem Basarh in the Muzaffarpur d1str1ct of
CONTEMPORARY ClANS north Bihar. Itwas not only the capital of the Lichchhavis but was also
the metropolis of the entire Vajjian confederacy. 102
. The Lichchhavis were the followers of the Brahmamc rehg10n.
The Siikyas
The Sakyas, who claimed their descent from the family of King Vesali was also an important place for Jainism in the time of the
Ikvaku, lived in a state which was bordered by the Himalayas on the Buddha. For this reason at first it was not easy for the Buddha t?
north, by the river Rapti on the south and west, and by the river preach his doctrine to the Lichchhavis. In spite of the great oppost
Rohil)i on the east.96 Kapilava tthu was their capital. They were
regarded as vassals ofKing Pasenadi ofKosala.97 But they were politi
tion of the Jainas, the Buddha and his disiples came ? .the ls
the Lichchhavis to convert them to Buddhism. The Ma.JJhima Nikiiya ?!
cally independent. They were triyas. Mter receiving the news of and the PapaiicasUdani (Majjhima A!!hakathii)104 mention that the
the Mahaparinibbana of the Buddha, they demandt>d a share ofhis Buddha converted Saccaka, the follower of the Nigat)t}la Natapu tta,
and five hundred Lichchhavis to Buddhism after an argument with
18 Tlu Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India The Rise of Buddhism 19
them on some knotty points ofBuddhist psychology and metaphysics receive a portion of the relics of the Exalted One. Over the
and their defeat by him in this controversy. But the Buddha's mission remains of the Exalted One will we put up a several cairn, and in
was successful and many Lichchhavis accepted Buddhism as their his honour will we celebrate a feast.
religion. The Buddha and his disciples made a very good progress in
their missionary activities in the countries of the Lichchhavis. Siha At first the Mallas were not very friendly with the Buddha, who
the Lichchhavi general,105 and Dighaddha, a noble Lichchhavi,l06 came to their capital KuS:inara to preach his doctrines to them. Most
embraced the religion of the Buddha. The latter also converted probably, on seeing their unfriendly attitude towards the Buddha,
many Lichchhavis to Buddhism and also delivered discourses to the Malla Assembly issued a statement of a penalty of500 Kahapanas
them. The Buddha visited Vdali to remove the pestilence that was for a Malia citizen who did not take any attention to the Buddha or
ravaging the city.107 He saved the Lichchhavis from the decimating did not show any respect to him during his visit to KuS:inara. But the
disease. It was due to him the city was free from the epidemic.108That Buddha did fairly well here and converted many people to Bud
was the reason why the Lichchhavis became the great admirers ofthe dhism. Among them Malia Roja, 117 Dabba Mallaputta, us Tapassu, ll9
Buddha. The Buddha had great feelings for the Lichchhavis and he Siha120 and Khar:t<;lasumana121 were the most prominent.
also admired them very much. The Lichchhavis performed many The Sangitisutta of the Digha Nikay a122 refers to the Buddha's visit
meritorious acts and made a gift of several places of worship to the to Pava with five hundred disciples. Here he stayed at the mango
Buddha and the SaT{I.gha for the development of Buddhism in their grove of Cur:t<;la, the smith. The Buddha at the request of the Mallas
country. They also erected several caityas (shrines) for the Buddha of Pava consecrated by preaching sermons at council-hall (san
and the Sa'T[tgha. They were-Sarandada, Sattambaka, Bahuputta, thagara) called Ubbhataka which was built by the latter. Thi shows
Gotamaka, Capala and Udena.109 The Lichchhavis also built the their love and respect for the Buddha. It also indicates the popularity
Kiitagarasala in the Mahavana for the residence of the Buddha.U0 of Buddhism at Pava.
The Buddha visited Vesali many timesand resided at the Kiitiigarasala The Buddha took his meal at Cur:t<;fa's house and there he fell ill.
and delivered several jiitakas such as the Sigala, m the Telovada, m the From there he went to KuS:inara for the attainment of his Mahapari
Bahiya,m and the Ekapar:ta.U4 Mahali, Nandaka, Bhaddiya, Maha nibbana. When Ananda announced the Buddha's death, the Mallas
nama, Ugga-Gavapati, Pingiyani-Brahmar:ta115 were the prominent cried loudly and said: "Too soon has the Light gone out ofthe world."
Lichchhavis who were great followers of the Buddha. Many Lich The Mallas then took his earthly remains to the Mukuta Bandhana
chhavi women also embraced his religion . Siha,Jenta, Vaseghi etc. shrine to the west ofKuS:inara for the purpose of cremation and they
joined the Bhikkhu1Ji-Sarrtgha and played their roles for the progress treated his remains like the remains of a king of kings.123 When the
of Buddhism in their country. cremation was over they brought the remains to their council-hall.
The Buddha always spoke highly in praise of the Lichchhavis. He Mterwards, they constructed stiipas over their respective shares of
liked them very much. He felt for this mighty and noble people. The the relics at KuS:inara and Pava.
Lichchhavis always paid their great respect to the Buddha. They were
great followers of Buddhism and contributed largely to its progress The Bhaggas
in their country. The Bhaggas lived in the country which was located between
Vesali and Savatthi.124 Their capital was Sumsumaragiri. It was a
Tlu Mallas dependency of the Vatsa kingdom. 125 Bodhiraja Kumara, who was
The Mallas who were regarded a very powerful people in northern the son of the king Udena ofVatsa, lived in the capital of the Bhaggas
as his father's viceroy.
India during the time of the Buddha, had their two divisions, one
with headquarters at KuSinara (Kasia) and the other with headquar It is known from several records that the Buddha and his chief
ters at Pava ( Padaraona) .11 6 They belonged to the VasiJ:ha gotra and disciple Moggallanacame to the Bhagga country several times. At the
they claimed themselves as atriyas. They after the Mahapari inivitation of Bodhiraja Kumara, the Buddha paid his visit to his
nibbana of the Buddha demanded a portion of the relics and told: palace Kokanada where he gave a discourse and the former em
braced his religion.126 Nakulapita, Nakulamata, Sirimar:t<;la, Sigala
pita127 became the Buddha's followers. This shows that the Buddha
the Exalted One was a atriya and so are we. We are worthy to
The Rise ofBuddhism 21
20 The R ise and Decline of Buddhism in India
The Buddhist text s do not say <>nything about the p ropaga tion of
did his missiona ry ac tivities ve ry we ll in the Bhagga count ry . The
B uddh ism by the Buddha and his discip les to these coun tries . No
Bhaggas a lso bui lt a stiipa ove r a sha re of the Buddha 's re lics .
eco rd refe rs to the deve lopment of Buddhism in these coun tries .
The Knliyas ofRiimagama and Devadaha ut most p robab ly the Kalamas of Ke saputta we re devout wo rship
Ramagama and De vadaha we re the two ch ief set ements of pe rs of the Buddha 140 and the la tte r came to thei r te rrito ry to give
Ko liyas du ring the time o fthe Buddha . A lexande r Cun mngham say discou rses on the fundamenta l teach ings of Buddhism.141 F rom the
that the Ko liya coun try lay be tween the Kohana nve _ r and Aum i Mahapa rinibbanasuttanta of the Digha Nikaya142 we le arn that the
( Anoma) rive r which divided the Ko li ya s on the one side and the Bu lis of A llakappa and the Ka lamas of Kesaputta received thei r
on th e o the r SI'de . 128
. respective sha re of the re lics of the Buddha a long with othe r c lans .
Ma llas and the Mo nyas
They also bui lt stiipas ove rthei r respective sha res . But the Mo riyas of
In the Ko liya coun try the Buddha did ve ry we ll in his missionary
Pippha li vana did not get a sha re of the re lics . The received a sha re
ac bv ities. He conve rted manyKo liyas to Budd_h ism . The Ther_agatha129
of the ashes f rom the funera l p yre . They a lso bui lt a stiipa ove r the
desc ribes that a qua rre l a rose be tween the sakyas and Ko li yas who
ashes .
used to live side by side , ove r the right of using wate r f rom a dam to
i rrigate thei rfie lds . The Buddha not only pacified them but que ed
the feud by his discou rses . 130 Many young peop le of both the t ribes
emb raced Buddhism and joined the Buddhist Sa'T(lgha. I t was easy fo r REFERENCES
the Buddha to p ropagate his teaching in theKo liya countrybecau e
the Ko liyas had c lose re lationship with the Buddha th rough h is 1AN, I, 21 3; IV, 252, 255, 260.
'CN, II, 37.
2AAHI, 56
4DN, II.
'Saya, XV, Uddessa (Hoemle, the Uviisagadasao, I I , Appendix) ; DKUJ, 225; PHAJ,
mothe r an d wife . 131 The Buddha and his discip les visited seve ra l 'MVU, I, 54; PHAI, 95, fn l .
.,.SN, 1, 69-70: . . . upasakaT(I maT(I bhante PuraQa S say tha t Da riaka , who has bee n ide nti fied by so me scho la rs
with Nagadasaka ( 437-413 BC) , asce nded the th ro ne a fte r Ajatasa ttu .2
76W, 5-6.
gatan- ti."
19DPK, III ' 1 88ft.
"MN, 11, 1 20. T he Cey lo nese ch ro nic les refe r to Nagadasa k.a as the las t ru le r of
..TGG, 460; DPPN , II, 332.
"fA, II, 1 5. Bi mbisara's li ne.' The Jai na tex ts me ntio n that the so n of Ku Qika
ll TJGG, 22; SN, I, 97; AN, III, 32.
MSN, I, 1 53 ff. (Ajatasattu) a nd Pad mava ti was Udayi bhadda.4 The Buddhist tradi
81MN, II, 1 00; DPK, II, 1 50; III, 288.
PHA I, 144. 06Ibid. , 204. 11Jbid., MN, Ill, 7. tio n desc ribes hi m as a pa rricide .5 He was his fat he r's vice roy at
. 09DPP N, I , 694; PHAI , 1 31 . Ca mpa befo re his accessio n to the th ro ne .6 He bui lt a new capita l
""TG, vv. 496-5 0 1
"'Ibid., 1 1 3; LB, 74. PHA/, 1 46; DPPN, I, 749. ca lled Kusu mapura o n the ba nks of the Ga nges which be me
SN, IV, 1 1 0-13.
..DV, 550 ff; EHSBBS, 1 90.
PMM K, 11, 1 21 . ,.DP PN, II, 215. know n as Pa !aliputta ( Pa !alipu tra) .7 He ru led fo r 16 yea rs. The Arya
"'Ibid., 281-82; VP, I, 69-7 1 .
. 07MN, 1 24.
..AI, 1 6 1 ; BLDO, 95-96 II,
MaiijuSrimulakalpt11 me ntio ns tha the was a devout Buddhist a nd gave
DN, II, 1 65. 00EMB, I, 1 74.
1"'-MN, ll, 1 0 1 ; BKS, I, 257. his he lp fo r the p rog ress of Buddhism i n his ki ngdo m. He had
'"PHAI, 1 1 8-20; SV, II, 519.
'"PMMK, I, 454.
""MN, I, 229. reco rded the "wo rds of the Maste r", which he had co llected , i nto
'"'MHY. VI, 31 ; BD, IV, 31 8-25.
'"DN, I , 1 51 . writi ng .He car ried the"Gospe lof Truth "to a lldi rec tio ns i na nd out
,,;,DN, II, 1 02.
side his ki ngdom . This shows his g reat devotio n to Buddhism .
'
ff. ,,.Ibid . , I, 259-9 9.
'"MVU, I, 253
nosv, I, 309. m]A, II, 1 02. mibid., I, 262-63.
who used to live at the Kukkurama near Patalipu tta delivered a about the validity of these acts. But several orthodox monks under
discourse on the impermanence ofworldly objects and thi_ngs to hilfol. the leadership of Yaa protested against their un- Vmayic practices.
This indicates that Buddhism influenced the life of the king and hts They wanted king Kalasoka's help in this matter. The king took part
people. in this council and played his vital role to settle the disputes between
the Vesalian monks and the orthodox monks whose leader was
N iigadiisaka . . . yaa .25 Thu s in order to settle these disputes and to discuss the ten
Nagadasaka,14 who is satd to have killed hts father, Mu:r:tqa , as- rul es of the Vesalian monks, the Second Buddhist Council, at the
cended the throne of Magadha after the latter's death. He was suggestion of the Sanghanayaka Revata, was held at Vesali under the
regarded as the last king of the Haryarika dynasty which was founed patronage of King Kalasoka.26 Mter a long discussion in the Council,
byking Bimbisara. No record refers to the development ofBuddhtsm the monks then took decision against the ten rules which were
in his kingdom. unlawful and were not permissible. But the monks from Vesali did
(Prajiiaptivada) , Bahusrutiya, Cetiyavada (or Caityika) , Eka'}'lvaha the Dharrnaguptas. They derived their name from the founder
rika, Piirvasaila and Aparaaila. At first they were Hinayamsts. But
after some time they discarded their doctrines and developed incli
hannagupta who has been identified with Dharrnarakkhita, the
Yonaka missionary, who came to the north-western countries during
nations towards Mahayanism. Bhavya and Vasurnitra'1 say that the the reign ofAsoka. This sect became very popular in central Asia and
Sarvastivadins appeared in the first quarter of the third century BC.
China. The Dharmaguptas held that gifts offered to the Sa7[tghawere
Mter them, the Vatsiputriyas, Dharrnottariyas, Sammitiyas, Channa
more meritorious than those to the Buddha and the body of an arhat
garikas and Mahisasakas carne into existence in the history of
was pure.54
Buddhism in India. The Dharrnaguptas, the Kasyapiyas and the
Sautrantikas arose at the close of the third century BC. The second The Sarviistiviidins
century BC witnessed the rise of the Ekavyavaharikas, Lokottara The Sarvastivadins were the branches of the Theravadins. Some
vadins, Gokulikas and the Prajiiaptivadins. The appearance of the Theravada monks went towards northern India from Magadha and
Caityakas and the Saila sects took place at the end of the second settled in Mathura, Gandhara and Kashmir. They became known as
century BC. the Sarvastivadins because of their fundamental doctrine of Sarva
nasti "all things exist" ."" Kashmir was their main centre of activities.
The Theraviidins or the Sthaviraviidins Sanskrit was used as the language of their sacred scriptures. Kanika
The Theravada was regarded as the most primitive as well as also patronised this sect and it became very popular in northern India
the conservative school of Buddhism and its doctrines were in Pali. during his reign. 36 The Sarvastivadins had their own canon in
This sect had a Tipi{aka which comprised the Sutta, Vinaya and Sanskrit or in mixed Sanskrit.37 It had three divisions--the SfJ.tra, the
Abhidhamma in Pali. The Theravadins held that the Buddha was a Vmaya and the Abhidharma. The Sarvastivadins agreed with the
human being, but he had many super-human qualities. According to Theravadins in their doctrinal matters. According to them, the five
them, an arhatwas a perfect person who reached the stage ofNibbana dharmas, i.e., citta (mind) , caitasika (mental state), riipa (matter) ,
but had no chance of fall from arhat-hood. They held that all worldly citta-viprayukta (states independent of the mind) and asa'f[tSkrtas (the
things which were subject to decay were anicca, dukkha and anattii. unconstituted) could be divided into seventy-fiVe and they remained
They admitted that the majjhimapatipadii which was also the intact in its subtlest forms in the past, present and future.38 They
ariya{{hangikamagga was the real path. believed that the Buddha was a human being but he reached the
stage of enlightenment. All arhats had a chance of retrogression.39
The MahWisakas
Some Theravada monks after leaving Paliputta carne to south The Kayapiyas
and made their homes in Vanavasi (North Kanara) and Mysore and The KaSyapiyas were also known by the name of the Sthaviriyas,
they also went to Ceylon. They became known as the Mahisasakas. Saddharmavarkas or Suvarkas. They had their own Tipi{aka
They were very popular also in Avanti.32 They were divided into two which consisted of the Sfltra, Vinaya and Abhidharma. They held that
groups-the earlier group and the latter group. "The former agreed aThats had ayajiiiina and anutpiidajiiiina.40 According to them,
with the doctrines of the Theravadins while the latter accepted the sa'f[tSkiiras were subject to decay and the past, present and future
teachings of the Sarvastivadins. According to the Mahisasakas, an existed.
arhat had no chance of fall and no meritorious act was performed by
him. They believed in the existence of nine unconstituted dharmas. The Samkriintikas or the Sautriintikas
But the latter group held that khandhas, dhiitus, iiyatanas and anu Fro the Pali tradition we learn that the Sarnkrantikas took their
sayas remained permanently and there exists the past and future and origin from the Kasyapiyas.41 They believed the transmigration of
antariibhiiva. substance from one birth to another.42 They held that the body of an
at was pure. They denied the existence ofpast and future and they
The Dharmag;uptas satd that there was no real existence of the unconstituted dharmas.43
Some Theravada monks went towards north and settled there and
used Sanskrit as the medium of their Tipi{aka. They became known
28 The Rise arul Decline of Buddhism in India The Progress of Buddhism up to t he Pre-Maurya Period 29
The Caityikas or the Caityakas rom Taranatha's account54 we learn that Nanda, who was a son of
Mahadeva, theBuddhist teacher, founded the Caityika sect about Siirasena, occupied the throne after his father. He was the founder
two hundred years after the Mahaparinibbana of the Buddha. of the Nanda dynasty. After the death of Siirasena, the Sisunaga
Mahadeva used to live in a caitya on the top of a hill and that is why, dynasty came to an end. The Puriir:Ias511 refer to Mahapadma (364 BC)
this sect received its name. The Caityikas held the construction of or Mahapadmapati "sovereign of an infinite host" or "of immense
caityas, worship of caityas and a circumambulation of caityas were Wealth" as the first Nanda king. The Jaina PariSi!f{aparva mentions
meritorious deeds. According to them, the Buddhas had no attach that the founder of the Nanda dynasty was the son of a courtesan by
ment, delusion and ill-will.
The Progress of Buddhism up to the Pre-Maurya Period 31
30 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India
GENEALOGICAL L IST'-l
a barber named Divakirti. The Ava$yakasutrrP says that he was a
Napitadasa 'slave ofbarer'. The Puas58 say that he was the son of
1 . The Haryailka Dynasty (Acccmlin
g to the Mahava'f[tSa)
King Mahanandin by a Siidra woman. The Mahiibodhiva'f!'SlP states
that the founder of the Nanda dynasty was Uggasena or Ugrasena. B imbisara
The Va'f!'Sa!!happakiisinl'l gives the name of Uggasena who was the Ajatasattu
eldest othe nine brothers and was the founder of the Nanda dynasty. Udayibhadda
It descnbes further that he belonged to some unknown family. But Anuruddha
Vt.Sakhadatta, Iravi Chakyarand Dhm:t<;liraja opine that King Sarvartha Munda
siddhi Nanda and his nine sons were triyas in the truest sense of Nagadasaka
the term.61 Several historical records refer to the destruction of the
triya royal houses by the first Nanda king. He overthrew the 2. The SiSunaga Dynasty
Ikva!<us, Paiicilas, KaSis, Haihayas, Kalingas,Asmakas, Kurus, Maithi Sisunaga (Susunaga)
las, Siirasenas and Vithihotras and became known as the only Kalasoka: ten sons of Kalasoka:70
sovereign of the world.62 Bhadrasena
Mahapadma Nanda or simply Nanda rendered valuable services KoraJ.l<;favarJ.la
to the cause of Buddhism. He helped the Buddhist monks who Mangura,
belonged to KaSi for many years. 63 His religious teacher was Sarnu1jaha
Kalya1.1amitra. At his advice he performed many meritorious acts. He Jalika
offered gifts to the caityaswhich were built on the sacred relics of the Ubhaka
Buddha.54 During his rule Mahadeva's chief disciple Naga tried to Saiijaya
popularise the doctrines of the former in his kingdom. Taranatha Koravya
and Bu-ston refer to Mahapadma Nanda as a devout Buddhist. He Nandivardhana
contributed valuable services to the prosperity of Buddhism and its Paiicamaka
SaT[tgha. He supplied the monks of Kusumapura (Pataliputta) with
all their necessaries oflife.65 Taranatha mentions that Naga's disciple 3. The Nanda Dynasty
Sthiramati propagated the teachings of his teacher in his kingdom. Nine Nandas
The Mahiibodhiva'f!'Sd"6 says that Mahapadma-Ugrasena had eight
sons who were known as PaJ.l<;iuka, PaJ.l<;iugati, Bhiitapala, Rapala, 1. 1}te SiSunaga Dynasty (According to the Purar;as)
GoviJ.laka, Daasiddhaka, Kaivarta and Dhana. They occupied the Sisunaga
throne in succession after the death of his father. The Puranas . and K.akavama
theJaina texts67 inform us that nine Nandas who ascended the throne emadharman
to rule the country, were the father and his eight sons. The lastNanda atranjas
king was Dhana Nanda who has been referred to by scholars with Bimbisara
Agrammes or Xandrames of the classical writers. Dhana Nanda or 1\jatasattu
Agrammes became very unpopular in his kingdom. His subjects also Daraka
revolted against him. At that time Chandragupta, who belonged to Udayin
the Maurya clan, with the help ofKautilya (ChaJ.lakya) and the king Nandivardhana
ofHimavatkiita, overthrew the Nanda dynasty.68 No record refers to Mahanandin
the development of Buddhism during the rule of the eight Nandas
who were on the throne of Magadha for about twelve years. 2. The Nanda Dynasty
Mahapadma
Eight sons
33
The Progress of Bud
dhism up to the Pre-Maurya Period
32 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India
<SEMlJ, II, 33.
'"Ibid., 44. "Ibid.
rzBSJ, 1 3 1 . "Ibid., 126. "Ibid., 185.
3. The Nanda Dynasty (According to the MahiibodhivaTflSa}'l
..SL o
7-o.
"Ibid., 7. "BIA , 88.
Mahapadma !IIJbid., I 70. "'Ibid.,1 86.
'"BS/, 1 62.
Pa1.1<;luka 42BS/, 187; EMB, 166. "BIA , 97, fn.47.
''Ibid., EMB, II, 166.
Pa1.1<;lugati .. BS/, 195. "Ibid., 194. *Ibid.
Bhiitapala 4ll BJA, 101. 40Ibid., 102, fn . 62.
" Cl, 83.
'Ibid.
, 1. -
Ratrapala 52
sumahati tadii
- -
siistuh
""PHAl, 222. - - saroa samudrantii
kiira stupm:ralamlmtii
Govia1.1aka "Ibid., 61 1 : "Tenii.pi kiiritii
DaSa.siddhaka
" TGBI, 52; EMB, II, 23. "VPR, IX, 84
vasundhara.
1 n. 56Ibid., 46.
"A!U, I I , 32.
Kaivarta 58lbid., 31. "'PHAI, 231.
Dhana 60W'S, 1 3- 1 4, 1 1 7; BCLCV, I, 604.
61
BCLCV, I, 604, fn27.
62pHAJ, 233-34; ANM, 1 7. "TGBI, 52; EMB, II, 21.
:AMMK, 61 1-12; EMB II, 24. "'TGB/, 55.
67AIU, II, 3 1 .
,
68PHAI, 26S.69.
"PHAl, 236.
eoA/U, 705-6.
REFERENCES "'PHAI, 222. "Ibid., 236; AIU, II, 31 .
1 KK, 1 77; 42; MV, IV; DPV, IV, 38; V, 97; X, B; DN, I, 50; SP, 72; SV, I, 153-54.
2PHAJ, 216; DKA, 6S-69. 'PHAI, 216.
4KK, 1 77; 42; The Buddhist writers say that Vajira, daughter of Pasenadi, was the
mother of Udayibhadda.
5Ml!, IV, 1ff. 6lbid., VI, 7Ibid., VI, 34, 1 70.
"AMMK, 604; EMB, II, 2
42.
9PHAI, 218.
10Ibid., VI, 236. "MV, VI, 2-4; SP, 72-73. '2DV, 369.
"AN, III, 57ff; V, 342. 14PHAI, 21 6; AIU, 29.
''The Mahavm,.Sa refers to the kings ofAjatasattu to Nagadasaka of the Haryanka
dynasty as parricides: MVB, IV, I ff.
'6EHC, XXXVIII; PHAI, 219, fn 5; VPS, I, 155.
"PHAI, 219. liJEMB, II , 22. 19PHAI, 220.
20Ml!, XLII-XLIII. 21DKA , 6S.69.
22Ml!, XLII; PHAI, 221;JRASGBI, 11, 190 1 , 839-59.
21 BS/, 5. "Ibid., 1 7-18; EMB, 35-36; BIA, 77 :
(i) Singilona kappthe practice of carrying salt in a horn for use when
needed.
(ii) Dvangula kappthe practice of taking food after midday.
(iii) Giimantara kappthe practice of going to a neighbouring village and
taking a second meal there the same day, committing thereby the offence
of over-eating.
(iv) Aviisa kathe observance of the Uposatha ceremonies in different
places within the same simii
(v) Anumati kappoing an ecclesiastical act and obtaining its sanction
afterwards.
(vi) Acina kappa-the use of precedents as authority.
(vii) Amathita kappa-the drinking of milk-whey after meal.
(viii) ]alogim patum-the drinking of fermenting palmjuice which is not yet
toddy.
(ix) Adasaktnrt nisidanthe use of a borderless sheet to sit on.
(x) fotaritparajataf{l-the acceptance of gold and silver.
..EMB, II, 32. 26lbid., II, 33; MIB, 1 04.
27MV, II; SD, 63; MBV, 96, 20. 26BS/, 34-35.
ire 35
Buddhism in the Mau Emp
rya
. dusa-ra was a powerful ruler of the Maurya dynasty and his reign
may be regarded as an lll1portant penod m t.he h.Istory
Bm ofth e M aurya
Chapter 3 ASoka
ASoka (c. 273-32 BC), who was a son of B"m dusara,
- succeed ed h"IS
f; th er. He has been mentioned by historians as "the greatest of
Buddhism in the Maurya Empire ngs" and that "not because of th physical extent of his epire,
as a man, the Ideals
ex tensive as it was, but because of his character
for which he stood and the prmCiples bywhICh he govrne d "14 n:.?
. " :: ka
The rise of Chandragupta (c. 324-300 BC) took place in the fourth
.
From the Bhabru or Bairiit Edictwe getan ideaaboutAsoka's faith stiipas. For the stiipa ofVakkula he also gave a gift.
f the first three _
in the Buddha, the Dhammaand the Sa7[!gha. Asoka' s contact with the
uddhist Satrtgha no doubt gave him some knowledge of e ud e als o spen t ten million suvaas for Ananda 's stiipa. He also visited
the Bodhi tree, the Deer park (8arnath) and the
the Lum bin'i park,
dhist texts. In order to help the Buddhist monks and the lay discipls e Parinibbana (KuSinagara) and for each of these sacred
he recommended several Buddhist texts for the purpose of their
place of th
gave
hundred ousand suvaas 41 Asoka's Rock Edict, VII
plac es he _ .
constant study, for their daily practices and for e de':elopme t of says: "His Sacred and GraciOus Majesty the present king, when he had
Buddhism. The Bhabru or Bairiit Edict says: "His gracious MaJesty, been consecrated ten years, went out to the place of Sambodhi, -12
king of Magadha, saluting the Sa7[!gha, and wishing th m all h ealth when ce these Dharma? triis in which are the following: visits and
and happiness, addresses them as follows: Known IS I. t you, gifts t<' Briihmat:tas and Sramat:tas; visits and gifts ofgold to the elders;
Reverend Sirs, to what extent is my reverence as well as faith m e visits to the people of the country instructing them in morality, and
Buddha, the Dhamma and the Sar[tgha. Whatever has been satd, discussion with them on same as suitable thereto. "43
Reverend Sirs, by the Lord Buddha, all that has of course been well ASoka visited Lumbini, the birth place of the Buddha and he also
said. But of such what has been selected by me that True Dharma may erected inscribed pillars at Rummindei and at Nigali Sagar. All these
be everlasting I may be privileged to state. The following, Reverend facts indicate the inclusion of the Nepalese Tarai in his empire.
Sirs, are the passages of the scripture: ASoka's Nigliva Pillar (or Nigali Sagar Pillar) inscription gives us an
account about ASoka's visit to sacred place in the Nepalese Tarai. It
(i) TheExcellentTreatise ormoral discipline (Vinayar-samukasa). says: "By his Sacred and Gracious Majesty the king consecrated
(ii) The course of conduct followed by the sages-modes of fourteen years was doubly enlarged the stiipa of Buddha Konaka
ideal life (Aliya-vasiint). man ( r Konagamana) and (by him) consecrated (twenty years)
(iii) Fear of what may come about in future (Aniigata-bhayiini) commg m person, and reverence being made, was set up (a stone
dangers threatening the Sa7[!gha and the doctrine. pillar) ."44 A Nepalese tradition45 says that Asoka under the guidance
(iv) Poem on 'who is an hermit' (Muni-g iithii). ofUpagupta visited Nepal and near modern Kathmandu he founded
(v) Discourse on quietism (Mauneya-sute). th city ofPan. He erected a stiipa at the centre of the city and also
bmlt four stupas at the .Important places. His daughter Carumati
(vi) The question of upatisya ( Upatisa-pasir;e).
whose husband was Devapala,46 a Nepalese triya, visited Nepal
(vii) The sermon to Rahula beginning with the Sermon on False
hood as de livered by the Lord Buddha (Laghuloviide . and sta ed
r_ ere and founded the city o f Deopatan or Devapatana
musiiviidam adhigichya). near Pasupati. She also erected a monastery to the northern side
of
Deopatan and lived there till her last days as a female recluse.47 From
th_e above facts we conclude that Upagupta influenc
These sections of the Dharma, Reverend Sirs, I desire that most of ed the life of
?
ASokaverymuch. Butapart from Upagupta, therewasanother
the reverend monks and nuns should repeatedly listen to and monk
w ose name as samudra, who also occupie
mediate and in the same way the lay disciples male as well female . d an important place in
.
ASoka s rehg10us life. But the ASokan edicts
(should act) . "36 do not say anything
about him.
From the Divyii<Jadiint/1 we learn that ASoka became a follower of
Buddhism under the influence of the Buddhist monk whose name
.
rom Asoka 's legends we learn that ASoka built
many stiipas and
empire. M oggalipu tta Tissa told him about 84,000
VIh all over his .
was Balapat:t<;lita or Samudra. ASoka stated: "I take refuge in (th ) ,
the sage, and also in Buddha, the supreme embodiment . of qualities
:
c ns of the D a ma. Wh n h knew it, he
_ built an equal number
as well as the Doctrine taught by the elect. 38 Afterwrds, Upagup ,
" I:as and hras m his kindom and he also erected the
th. kama at Patahputta.46 Accordmg to a tradition, Asoka opened
_
Aso
h e 0Igmal stiipas in which the Buddha's relics were enshrin ed and
who became his great spiritual adviser, made a great mfluence on hts .
life.39 Asoka visited Buddhist sacred places with the venerable
Upagupta. It is known fo m the Aso iivadiina that ASok un der the c e seiZed the
m and kept them amongst his 84,000 stiipas which he
.
guidance of Upagupta VISited
_ _
the stupas of the Buddha s Iscipls. s ucted all over the country from Kapisa
th. s y that several supernatural agents i.e., yaksas construc
e to Orissa.49 His leg-
8ariputta, Mahamaudgalyana, Mahakassapa, Vakkula and Ananda.40 ese stupas WI . . ted
th haIf a mght.
He gave hundred thousand suvaas (gold pieces) in honour ofeach ' s labour. All these facts clearly show
41
40 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in Indi a
Buw.u
J-II.ism in the Maury a Empire
ASoka's devotion to Buddhism and his valuable contribution to its
II sp ke to Ra
dhagupta: "My shedding oftears is due to mythoughtthat
1 :
s 11 not (be able to)
progress. . worship all virtues and revered by men and
.
ASoka always took keen interest in the affairs of . the Buddhist upporting the same with excellent food and drink. "58
d by s
ok
Sa'f!lgh<L. That is why, he issued orders that th Buddhist monks an? for the fu lfilment of his promise sent gold, gems and otlter
nuns would receive the punishment of expulsiOn from the Sa'f!l{{ha If
valuables to the Buddhist Sa'f!lgha.59 ut his grandson Sampadi or
Samprati, who was then . e crow-pnnce, told th_e treasure not to
they would bring a schism in the Buddhist Sa'f!lgha . ASoka's Minor
.
42 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India Buddhism in the Maurya Empire 43
this council. Practically, it was the meeting of all Buddhists. At the Buddhism as a orld religion. V.A. Smith says, "His
foundation of
end of the council ASoka despatched missionaries to different patro nage, gradually mcreasin_g as ?is faith gre _in tensity,
imperial _
countries to propagate the teachings of the Buddha. ButASoka in his th e fortu ne of Buddhism, and raised It to the position which
made
edict did not say anything about this council. ab les it still to dispute with Christianity the first place among the
en
The Ceylon chronicles say that about two hundred years after the
religion s of the world so far as the number of believers is con
death of the Buddha many non-Buddhists in order to live comforta
cemed ."72
bly in the Buddhist SaT[tgha joined it. No Uposatha ceremony was ASoka ruled for about 40 years and he died in 232 BC.73
held for seven years because the Theravadins did not like to perform
the ceremony with the unorthodox monks. When ASoka came to Kuniila
learn this incident, he sent his minister to the ASokariima to request The Viiyu Purii'l)a states that Kur:tala occupied the thr
one after
the Buddhist monks to hold the Uposatha ceremony. But when they ASoka and he ruled for about eight years. The Divyiivadiina74 refers to
refused the minister became angry and beheaded them one afte r Kmala as the son ofAsoka' s queen Padmavati, who never ascended
another. When ASoka knew it, he felt sorry for the way his minister the throne. It describes further that he was sent to TaksaSila to
did. He thought that he was responsible for it He then consulted suppress a revol and through an intrigue ofstep-motherTirakita,
I' Moggaliputta Tissa, the oldest and the most learned of the moks
!'
he was made bhnd. Mterwards he became a Buddhist monk. From
and at his advice he expelled from the Sa7[tgha about 60,000 heretics the Ku1Jiilasutra75 we get an account of the activities of Kunala who
who refused to subscribe to the Vibhajjavada i.e., the analytic method was also known as Dharm avivardhana.
I t throws light on Aska' s son
of textual exegesis, favoured by the Theravada school. It was for this Dharmavivardhana, who played an important role for the introd
ti?n a; Buddhis in Central sia. A Khotanese legend76 says that
uc
reason the Third Buddhist Council was held under the leadership of
Moggaliputta Tissa, who composed the Kathiivatthu in the sssion of ASoka s son Kur:tala, who was himself exiled from Tak5aSila
was re
ota .
_ council. At the
the council. Asoka gave his help for the success of this garded as the earliest ancestor of the royal family of Kh
end of the council Asoka sent forth nine missionaries to nine
different countries for the propagation of the Buddha's teachings. Jalauka, Tivara and Mahendra
The Mahiiva1{1Sa70 says that Asoka sent Majjhantika (Madhyandina) The R!#ataraizgiTJi, the Kashmir chron icle, says that
after ASoka's
to Kashmir and Gandhara (Peshawar and Rawalpindi districts) , death, his son Jalauka77 declared independence
extended is conquest as far s Kanauj. He was
in Kashmir and
Mahadeva to Mahimar:tala (Mahimati, a district south of the
hostile to Buddhism
Vindhyas or Mysore or Mandhata) , Maharakkhita to Yavana orGre_ek and patromsed the Naga and Saiva cult ofKa
shmir.78 ASoka 's another
country (the foreign settlements of the North Western Fronter son was nvara, who
probably did not receive a share of the patri
Province) , Rakkhita to Vanavasi (north Kanara) , Dhammarakkhita mony. Mahendra79who was ASoka 's son,
was a follower ofBuddhism.
to Aparantaka (Western countries like Alar, Broach and Sopara) , He neverwanted to captu
re the throne. He became a Buddhist monk
Mahadhammarakkhita to Maharattha (Maharatfa) , Majjhima to and took the leading part for the intro
duction and development of
Himavanta (the Himalayan country) , Mahinda to Tambapar:tr:ti Buddhism in Ceylon.
(Ceylon or Sri Lanka) , and Sor:ta and Uttara to Suvar:tr:tabhiimi
(Lower Burma) . Dasaratha
From ASoka's Rock Edict, II and XIII we get the names of several afiV.A. Smith says, "Perhaps the empire was divide
ter Asoka's death, betwe d immediately
countries where messengers were despatched by Asoka for Dharma en his grandsons, DaSaratha taking the
vijaya or Moral conquest and for medical treatment, arrangements eastern and Sa .
mprahu the western proVInces, but there IS no clear
.
were made for men and beasts. This indicates that there existed close evJdence to support this
.
ryan
-
India but had spread over India, Ceylon, Syria, Egypt, Macedoma, countnes. sl
.
Cl!);EALOCY
7"M M? Dyruutf'
Clwtdl'"gupta
Bindu.dra
SUjlma (Sumana),son ofBindwara
Alol:.a, son ()(Bindwira
VtgallM>b ("riaa), son ofBindusara
Nigrodha, aon ofSuma
bhendra, oon nlAiob
KuQiila (Sun). aon ofMob
Jabub. aon nlNob
nvan.,aonofAlob
Sandhupi Uta (Infatha), soo ofKw)ala
S.mpnti, ron ofKul)lla
Vigaliloka, son ortC.uQila
SiGSUb, 10n ofSampnlli
Somasannan (Dewvarman)
S.tdhavan
Rrhadratha
PQrawrdhana
in central India till the arrival of the Satavahanas who brought the Bhiimimitra
downfall of the Sunga power.10 NariiyaJ.Ia
The inscriptions on the inner railings and gateways of the Bud SuSarm an
dhist stiipa at Bharhut in central India gives us an account of the
development of Buddhim under the patronage of the people REFERENCES
during the reign of the Sungas. These inscriptions inform us that
Buddhism not only prospered but the rail-bars on the inner railings 2PHAI, 379. 5ACHI, 99.
' DKA, 30-31 .
and the gatways of the Buddhist stiipa at Bharhut were erected >BJIJ, 1. 6BCLCV, I, 215.
'DV. 4334; LBB, 100- 1.
during the Sunga period. 1A CJll, 1 00 . 8PHAI, 394, fn 1. 9lbid., 395.
11 HC VI, 193.
,
12 PHA!, 396.
IOJbjd, , 395.
" FJ[N/, 281 ; AlU, 706-7.
THE IUNYAS "EHNI, 281 ; AlU, 707.
The Kat:tva or Ka.J.Ivayana dynastywhich ruled over northern India for THE SATAVAHANAS
a period oaout forty-five years appeared in Indian history after the
fall ofth,e Sunga power. It is known from a tradition that Devabhiiti, The satavahanas, who rose into prominence in trans-Vindhyan India
the last Sunga monarch, was killed by a slave girl at the instance of his during the Post-Mavrya period, occupied an important place in the
minister V"asudeva.11 The latter then captured the throne and founded political as well as in the religious history of India. They ruled for
th.e Kat:tva dynasty in 75 BC.12 The Pural)as mention the Kal)va kings nearly three centuries. The Purii.I)aS describe them asAndhrabhrtyas.
as Sungabhrtyas or servants of the Sungas probably because of their
service in the administration of the Sunga rulers. It is generally Simuka
believed that the Ka.J.Iva kingsruled over Magadhaonly. Vasudeva was Simuka was regarded as the founder of the Satavahana dynasty.
the first ruler of this dynasty. The next three rulers who ascended the We learn from the Puranic records that Simuka who was also known
throne in succession after him were Bhiimimitra, Naraya1.1a and as Sisuka, Sipraka, Sindhaka etc. overthrew SuSarman
, the last ruler
SuSarman. of the Kat:tva dynasty.1 The latter eems to have ruled be een 4.0 and
The Kii.I)va kings were Brahmins. But no record refers to Bud 30 BC. Thus the Puranic records indicate that Simuka retgned m the
dhism in the kingdom of the Ka1.1va rulers. third quarter of the fit century BC. But, according to V.A. Smith and
EJ. Rapson, Simuka ruled towards the close of the third century BC.2
GENEALOGY Although VaiI)avism, Saivism and other Purii.Q ic religions, flour
ished during his reign, but Buddhism and Jain ism, which occupied
The Sunga Dynastyl3 an important place in the religious history of the Sii.tavahana dynasty,
Puyamitra prospered under his great patronage. He erected several Buddhist
Agnimitra and Jaina temples.3 Towards the later part of his life, he was greatly
SujyeHha or Vasujye!}la influenced by Buddhism and gave his full support to its progress.
Vasumitra (Sumitra)
Andhraka (Bhadraka, Odraka, Ardraka, Antaka) Kanha
Pulindaka KaQha (KfI)a) ( c. 37-27 BC) , who was the younger brother of
Ghoa ( or Ghovasu) Sim uka, ascended the throne of the Satavahana dynasty after him.
Vajramitra An inscription4 discovered in Cave 19 at Nasik in Bombay mentions
Bhagavata or Bhaga his reign with the words "Sadavahana-kule kane rajini" which indi
Devabhiimi or Devabhiiti tes the extension of his empire as far as Nasik in the west. This
mscription also says "under king KaJ.Iha (I)a) of the Sii.tavahana
The Kiir,tva Dynasty1 4 fam ily this cave has been caused to be made by the officer- in-charge
Vasudeva
The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in India
50 Buddhism During Sungas,Kiitwas and Sataviihan
as 51
that he extended his empire up to the mou_th '?f the I)a nver. Hs
- IS '
performed two horse sacrifices (ASvamedhas), one Rajasiiya, and
Agnyadheya, Anvarambhaiya, Gavamayana, Allgirasamayana7 to eplgraphic and numismatic evidences md1cate that the Kra-
- -
Godavari region as well as Maharatra we e nder h'IS u1e. B . ai'than
show that Brahmanism flourished under his patronage and this _
indicates a sharp revival of the Vedic religion in the Deccan after a or Paithan or Pratithaa on the Godavan nver was h1s cap1 l. .
long spell of Buddhist ascendency. The reign ofVisithiputra Pulumavi was an important penod m
the history of Buddhism. The king, the members of the royal house,
Gautamifrutra Siitakart;ti nobles and the common people patronised it. An inscription of e
According to historians, Gautamiputra Satakari ( c. AD 106-30) reign ofVasisthiputra Pulumavi mentions that in the year 22 the kmg
gave order t the governor of Goverdhana (Nasik) to exchnge the
Ill was the greatest of all the Satavahana kings.8 He destroyed the
village of Sudasaa given in the nineteenth year ,ror the VIllage of
&ythians, In.do-Greeks and Parthians. He extirpated the Khaharata
or Kahaharata dynasty.9 He extended his rule over Asika (district samalipada for the embellishment of the q?eens s cav where the
Bhadrayaniya monks dwelt. Another inscription ofhis . reign s ys hat
round Rishika-nagara on the Kra) , Assaka (Asmaka on the
Godavari ) , Mulaka (under Paithan on the Godavari) , Suratha Gautamiputra Satakafl)i built a cave on the top of the T.Iranhu
mountain and it was given to the members of the Bhdray _ n a sect
(Surashtra) , Kukura (western Rajputana) , Aparanta (norern .
Konkan) , Anupa (the Narmada valley) , Vidarbha (Berar) , Akara by the great queen Gautami Balasri. But frm this npuon we
(eastern Malava) and Avanti in western Malava. The trapa prov learn that Vasithiputra Puluavi ae the VIllage Pls;!Jlpdaka on
inces of Anarta, Svabhra and Maru came under his rule.10 He was the south-west side of mountam T1ranhu to the cave. Th1s clearly
regarded as the Lord of all the mountains from the Vindhyas to the indicates that king Vasithiputra Pulumavi rendred alable se
Malaya or Travancore hills and from the eastern (Mahendra) to ces to the cause of Buddhism. There are other mscnpuons which
Western (Sahya) Ghats. show us the progress ofBuddhism under the patronage of the people
during the reign ofV"asithiputra Pulumavi. Several Bddh1s . sec
The inscription refers to Gautamiputra Sii.takafl)i as "Ekabamhana"
like the Mahasghika, the Bhadrayaniya etc. flounshed n his
"the Unique Brahmaa". This shows that he was a follower of
Brahmanism and made a significant contribution to the cause of kingdom. An inscription discovered in a cave t rle says that n the
Brahman ism. But there are inscriptions which inform us that the 24th regnal year of King Vasithiputra PulumaVI, e lay-worsh1pper
king, the queen and other members of the royal house gave their full Harpharana gave a nine-walled hall to the Umvel a gW: as
'!!
support to the progress of Buddhism which became very prominent special property of the Mahasarpghikas.1 Anothe m cnpuo? 6 at
Karle describes that the Maharathi Somadeva gave a village With Its .
during his rule. An inscription11 dated in the regnal year 24 of
wJ.dhism J)uring Suitgas,Kii?Jvas and Satavahanas
53
52 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India
B
Apilaka _ .
taxes ordinary and extraordinary with its income fixed" to the
community of the Bhikkhus ofValiiraka.
Meghasva u
svati .
Skandasvau
Yajfiafri SiitakaT'I'}i
Vasi!:hiputraPulumavi was sucseeded by Siva Sri Puloma Satakani Mrgendra Svat
ikan:ta
(AD 159-66) .17 The next rulerwas Sivaskanda Satakarq.i (AD 1 6 7-74) .1s Kntal a Svati kan:t a
Mter him Yajiiasri Satakarq.i ascended the throne. He was the last svati ka n:t a
great ruler of the 5atakarq.i dynasty.19 His inscriptions were discov Pulomavi
ered atNasik in Mahara!fa, Kanhep in Aparanta (northern Konkan) takarna
and Chinna-Ganjam in the Kfq.a district and his coins were un Hala
earthed in Gujarat, Ka!}liawar, Aparanta, the Chaq.9a district of Mantalaka or Pattalaka
eq.a
Madhya Pradesh and the Kfq.a district of the Madras state. The Purikaeq.a or Purindra
discovery of his inscriptions and coins in these places leads us to form Sunda ra Sii ta kan:ti
an idea that he brought MaharaHra, the Andhra country, G.Yarat Chakora Siitakan:ti
and some parts of the Narmada valley under his rule but at the same Sivasvati
time he recoveredAparan ta from the Saka successors ofRudradaman Gautamaputra
I. His coins marked with the figure of a ship suggest that he even Puloma
extended his power over the sea. 20 Baq.a says that he was a close friend Siva5ri Puloma
of a monk whose name was Nagatjuna. Sivaskandha Satakan:ti
An inscription21 found in a cave at Nasik says that in the 7th year Yajiia8ri Siitakarq.i
of the king, the Lord Sriyajiia
Satakan:ti, a cave was completed and Vaya
was given as an abode of the Universal Sa'l(lgha of monks. A stiipa Chandasri Siitakan:ti
pillar fragment bearing an inscription of the reign discovered at Pulomavi
Chinna-Ganjam22 throws light on the progress of Buddhism in his
reign in this region. The king himselftook keen interest in the affairs
of Buddhism and gave his full support to its progress. His nephew REFERENCES
also established two Buddha images. Acala, Gopala, Vijayamitra, Bo,
Dharmapala, Aparnu, Sabala were prominent monks, who were 'ACHI, 301 .
AJU, 198.
1DKA, 71. 1 PHAI, 403.
quite well-known for their great proficiency in Buddhist sacred texts 'EI, VIII, 93. 'Ibid.
and philosophy and they used to live in the cave at the sacred KaJ_lha 7ACHI, 302. 8AIU, 200.
9Jbid. , 201 ; ACHI, 312; PHAI, 491; FJ, VIII, 60.
ISAJU, 204-5.
10A CHI, 313.
hill. All these facts inform us that Buddhism prospered in the 11E/, VIII, 61. 121bid. , 60.
kingdom of Yajiiasrl 5atakafl)i. 14El, VIII, 60. 1'BIA, 99. 16FJ, VIII, 61.
17 PHAI, 497. 18Ibid. 19lbid.
GENEALOGY 10lbid., 498. 11FJ, VIII, 94. u ACHI, 319.
tsA1U, 707-8.
The Sataviihana Dynastf3
Simuka THE SUCCESSORS OF TilE SATAVAHANAS
KaJ.lha (KfJ.la)
5atakarq.i The Ihsvakus
Piin:totsanga It i very probable that the Ikvakus were the feudatories of t_he
Skandhastambhu 8a.tavahanas. They towards the end of the first quarter of the thrrd
satakarq.i cntury AD conquered the regions roud about the mouths of the
Lambodara nvers Krq.a and Godavari. I These Ikvakus of the Andhra country
54 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India Buddhism During Sungas,Kii'f}Vas and Siitaviihanas 55
had some connection with the Ikkus ofAyodhya, the capital of the ah- etiya of the Lord, the Supreme Budha, who was absorbed by
M
Kosalajanapada in the north. :
e st ele m
ents, i.e., by Nirval)a.9 The Ayaka Pillar inscription B 4
il
fare an d
the third century AD, was regarded as the founder of the I kvaku -w
ed this stone p1llar m the siXth year of the reign of King Sri
dYJ!asty of the Andhra country.2 The Pural)as3 mention the lkvakus
as Srl-Parvatiya Andhras. The city ofVijayapuri which was situated in
ctpuri data. 10 There are so several other .inscriptions of the
eign ofMathariputra Virapundata but they gve us an account of
the Nagarjunikol)qa valley was their capital. GaJ11tamiila I was a
devout worshipper of Svami-Mahasena, i.e., Skanda-Karttikeya and
e privateofdothe
nations made by pious men, women and some female
royal family in favour of the Buddhist
member& establih
was a follower of the Brahmanical faith. ments. The Second Apsidel Temple inscription F of the reign of Sri
Virapuridata11 is important for a study of the history of Buddhism.
Mii!hariputra Virapuf4adata This inscription records that for the endless welfare and happiness
Mat}lariputra Virapurldata (Virapuruadatta) after his father of the assembly of saints and for that of the whole world a caitya-hall
\'asit}liputra Ctamiila I ascended the throne of the lvaku dy at the Kulaha Vihara, a shrine for the Bodhi tree at the Sihala Vihara,
nasty in the third quarter of the third century AD.4 one cell at the Great Dhammagiri, a ma1Jtf.ava pillar at the Ma
Buddhism occupied a prominent place in the religious history of havihara, a hall for religious practice at the Devagiri, a tank, veran
I ;outhern India during the reign ofMat}lariputra Virapurldata. He dah and ma1Jtf.ava at PiiiVaSaila, a stone ma1Jtf.ava at the eastern gate
1: 1 1 .vas a great patron ofBuddhism and rendered valuable services to its of the great caitya at Kal)takaaila, three cells at Hiramut}luva, seven
I;
::ause. From an inscription ofVirapuriadata5 we learn that it refers cells at Papila, a stone 1Tta1Jtf.ava at Pupagiri and a stone ma1Jtf.ava at
:o a claim of the king to belong to the same family as Lord Buddha e vihara were dedicated.1 2 From it we learn that Nagaljunikol)qa at
vhich not only suggests his great faith in Buddhism but indicates him Sri Parvata near Dhanyakataka and its adjoining places in southern
ts an admirer of the Buddha. Several inscriptions belonging to his India became important Buddhist centres which were visited by
eign found atJaggayyapeta in the i{rI)a districtand Nagarjunikol)qa many pilgrims from different places in India and outside and monks
n the Guntur district mention private donations of pious men and from t? ese places used to travel to various places to propagate
.vomen to some Buddhist establishments at Jaggayyapeta and Buddhism. Many viharas, stiipas and caityas were erected and reno
agarjunikol)qa. These inscriptions give us ample evidence to show vated and most of the I kvaku inscriptions found at Nagarjunikol)qa
that Buddhism flourished during the reign of Mathariputra and Jaggeyyapeta were incised with dedicatory records in the reign
Virapuridata and his capital became a great centre of Bpddhist of Mat}lariputra Virapuriadata.
activities. The Ayaka Pillar inscription C 3 of the reign of Sri Vira
puridata6 says that at the Mahacetiya Mahatalavar! GamtaSri, ho Ehuvula Ciimtamula II '
was the uterine sister of Maharaja Vasit}lipu Sri CaJ11tamula, V""asithiptra Bahubala Gamtamiila or Ehuvula Camtamii
erected this pillar in the sixth year of the reign ofri Virapuridata. who a son of Sri Mat}larijmtra Virapuri . la II
data, asc ended the
The Ayaka Pillar inscription C 2 of the reign of Sri Virapuridata7 throne m the last quarter of the
third century AD. He ruled at least for
states that at the Mahacetiya, the Mahadevi Bapasirinika who was e ele n years.
daughter of Hammsiril)ika, the uterine ister of . MaharaJa
r hIou hist
Buddhism continued to play an important role in the
ory of the country during his reign.
Vasit}liputra I kvaku Sri Carptamiila, erected this stone pillar for the his reign were found and they show us that Several inscriptions
I)a-Guntur region
benefit of the masters of the Aparamahavinaseliya sect. Most proba f An h ra country became a centre of activities of various sects
bly, the Aparamahavinaseliya or the Aparamahavanaailya was the like ahusruti
ya and Mahisasaka which flourished under the patron
Aparasaila which was a sub-sect of the Mahasarpghika sect.8 The Ill
ag d:
e f the
members of the royal house. Bhattidevi, probably his
Ayaka Pillar inscription B 2 ofSri Virapuridata' s reign records_tlt th0r :r: ced the Devi vihara and his sister, Kal)<;iabisri, who was
the MahatalavariAdavichatisiri, whowas the daughter ofthe Maharaja Th aaram ofVanavasi, construc
ted one vihara for the ascetics.
ca. 1\ka Pillar inscriptions G 2 and G
Vasit}liputra Ivaku Sri GaJ11tamiila, erected this pillar at the 3 of the reign ofEhuvula
l!ltamula
II record that Mahadevi Bhattidevi erected a monastery
56 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India i [) ring Sungas,Kii:t;-vas and Siitaviihanas
Buddh sm u
57
I
These three inscriptions throw light on the popularity ofthe Bahusru
S Damodaravarmano", "the glorious Maharaja Damodaravarman."
tiya sect in the history ofBuddhism in the Andhra countryi:luring the
ese plates also desc be him as "bhagavata!; samyaksa1(tbuddhasya
on the feet of the Blessed Samyaksaqt
padiinudhyiita-he meditates
II
reign of Gal!ltamiila II. Another inscription of the eleventh year of
his reign says that his sister Ka:r:t <;labisri ( Kodabalisari ) erected cl pillar buddha. " This indicates that he was a devotee of the Buddha.
and a monastery for the benefit of the masters of the Mahiasaka
sect.15 The Mahisasaka was another sect which flourished during the GENEALOGY
reign ofEhuvula Cal!ltamiila II. The discovery of several inscriptions
at Nagarjuniko:r:t<;la gives us sufficient evidence to show that The .Ananda Dynasty4
Nagaijuniko:r:t<;la rose to its importance as a great centre ofBuddhism Ka:r:tara (Kanhadara or Kanhara or Kannara)
during the rule of the Ikvaku kings who were great patrons of Attivarman
Buddhism, although from inscriptions we do not know anything Damodaravarman
about their direct role for its developmen t
GENEALOGY REFERENCES
The Jkroiiku Dynasty 'Kar,u;lara was a Prakfta corruption ofa Sanskrit name K[l)a: SSW, 56; ANHIP, 71 .
Vasit}liputra Ciqttamiila I
'IA, IX, 1 880, 1 02-3.
2SSW, 56.
Mat}lari?u tra Virapuridata
ssw, 56; EI, XVII, 1923-24, 328; CA, 202.
Ehuvula Caqttamiila II or Bahubala Gal!ltamiila
It is generally believed that the Abhiras, who came to India from The Bodhis
some part of eastern Iran, received their name from Abiravan which Bodhi or Sribodhi
was located between Herat and Kandahar.1 They then settled them Sivabodhi
selves in the north-western region of the Deccan and northern Chandrabodhi
Konkan. It is own from epigraphical sources that they were royal Virabodhi
officers of the Saka Mahaktrapas of western India.
_ From epigraphical source W! know ?nly the namt; ofMli!}lariputra
Hvarasena who was the son ofAbhira Sivadatta (or Sivadata) . He was REFERENCES
the founder of the Abhira dynasty and flourished in the first half of
the third century AD. His inscription was found in the Nasik region 'ACHJ, 333; A1U, 223.
which probably was a part of his kingdom. From the inscription we 2AIU, 22?.-24.
60
ButUJhism During Sungas, Kii:1fvas and Siitaviihanas
The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India 61
THE V AKATAKAS
man a) . Th e P uranic acco unt say sthat Maharaja Pravarasena I
r;
(B -h occ upie d th e throne o f th e Vaka taka dyna sty a ft er hi s
ravi
The Vaka taka s cam e into prominenc e in the midd le o f the sixth r Vind hya .Sakti .' The former extended hi s empir e from B un
cent ury AD and b ecam e v ery power ful in th e hi sto ry o fancient India .
th
Th ey occ upi ed large area s o f Madhya Prad esh and B erar and ex
d elk an d in
B o
th e north to the Hyd erabad state in the so uth .4 He wa s
f Brah mani sm and per formed th e A svam edha , Agni
fi o w er
t end ed their infl uenc e to some r egion so fth e Deccan . Vindh ya Sa kti
:;
o a , A p tor yama, Brhaspati Sava etc . Fro th e per formance o f the
_
wa s the fo under o fthe Vaka taka dyna sty. H e wa s a power ful r uler. Vedi c sacrific we conc lude that the Vaka taka s w ere fo llower s o f
es
The Ajanta in scription o f Hari sena 1 m ention s him a s a dvija no epigraphic record r efe rs to the progre ss o f
Br ahmani sm . B ut
Bu dd hi m
s d uring th e t\Ile o fth e V ilitakas in th e ear ly p eriod. B ut
we know that som e o fth e fin est cave s a long with th e painting s (at
Aj an ta) ow e th eir o riin to the m uni fic enc e o f th e o cial and
GENEALOGY
The Viikii[aka Dynasty2 feud atorie s o fth e Vaka taka s o fVat sag ulma (mod em Ba sm, Ako la
di strict Bera r).5 It i s to b e not ed h er e that som e o fth e magni ficent
Vindhya sakti ( twic e-ho m ) caves at Ajan ta with mona stic estab li shm ents w er e hewn and b ui lt
I und er th e pa tronag e o fthe later V ilitaka r ulers and som e o ftheir
Maha raja Pravara sena I Bhavanaga mini st er s and feudatori es.
I
Sa rva sena Ga utamip utra (da ught er ) REFERENCES
I I I
Vindhya Sakti I I Sam udrag upta Maharaja 1AIU, 124. 2PHA1, 565. 5AHD, 72.
Dharma Maharaja R udra sena I
I
AJu, 220. 5Aj. 4.
I I
Pravara sena I I ? Maharajadhiraja Maharaja
I Chandrag upta I I Pri thi visena I
son
I
Deva sena Prabhava ti Maharaja
I
Agra -mahi i R udra sena I I
Hari sena ?
Hi s mini ster
Hastibhoja
Yuvaraja Damodara - Pravara sena I I
Di vak ar asena sena (or III )
Nandivardhana Ramagiri
S uprati tahara I
Narendra sena
I
Prithi visena I I
Buowzsm [)uring the Rule
J -11. .
of IndcrGreeks and Indo-Scythians 63
I The arrival of the ":'avanas o the Greek invaders through the nortll
wesern gate oflndia was an Important even t in the history of ancient
evidence regarding Menander, the Milinda of Buddhist tradition.
He even says that it is difficult to accept Menanderas Buddhist on the
I .
India. The Withdrawal of the strong arm of the great emperor ASoka ground that on his coins he adopted Athena, the one Greek deity
le t? e collapse o the Maurya supremacy over Candhara and the who was practically never equated with anything oriental.9 But it
I
I
til
would be reasonable to conclude that Menander accepted Bud
I wh then ruled oer Syna and Bactria, invaded India and established dhism as his religion and became its devout follower. But he adopted
their settlements 10 the north-western India which came to be known tlle figures of one deity of his former religion on his coins because of
as th Ind<X;reek or Indo--Bactrian kingdoms. Mter the loss of his religious sentiment. Some coins with the figure of the "Wheel"
Bactna, central and southern Mghanistan and north-western India whichwasvery common on Buddhist sculpture were found in several
were under the control of the Creeks. It is known from Numismatic places oflndia. 10 S. Chattopadhyaya rejects W.W. Tam. He observes:
source that about thirty Indo-Greek kings ruled over Mghanistan "such strong traditions can not be set aside lightly, and in our view it
and north-western lndta. Of them Menander was regarded as the is quite safe to hold that Menander had embraced Buddhism and did
greatest and the mot powerful ruler. He extended his kingdom much for it."11 According to some scholars, Menander, who was a
from the bul valley m the west to the Ravi in the east and from the later contemporary of Puamitra of the Sunga dynasty, accepted
Swat valley 10 the north to northern Arachosia in the south. 1 Buddhism as his religion because of political reason. Some coins
have been found with Menander's title 'soter', 'the Saviour' . 12 W.W.
Menander Tam says that it makes no mention of the Buddhist Dharma.
Meande, the most fa ous of n . the
Greek kings of India, Altltough it is generally believed that he saved the Buddhists from
occupied an lffiportant place m the relig10 Puyamitra's humiliation and torture and it is for this reason he
us history ofancient India.
He r nder d valuable services to the cause of Budd received the title 'the Saviour' of Buddhism/3 but there i no
een tentified th
hism. He has
e Buddhist king Milinda of tlte Milindapaiiha evidence to prove it. But it i s difficult to accept it because of the
esuons ofMtl mda , a Pali work, which was written in the form of hronological position of the two rulers. Menander played a vital role
a dtlogue betw en Milin da, the Greek
: king ofSakala (Sialkot in the tlte history of Buddhism and made a valuable contribution to the
PunJab) and Na asena, a Buddhist monk
m
Ii
donor was a Buddhist Yavana.20 The inscription no. 7 discovered at
Karle21 sys, ( !his) illa ( i ) the gift of the Yavana Sihadhaya from
patronised by the people during the reign of Ajasa (Azea) . The
p inscription describes: ''In the year 1 34 ofAjasa, on the 23rd day ofthe
Dhenukakata. The mscnption no. 4 found at Karle22describes: "this month Srava_r:1a, at this term the female worshipper ( upasma) Can
pillar is the gift of the Yavana Dhammadhaya from Dhenukakata." drabhi . . . establishes relics in Chadasila, in the chapel-stiipa . . . in
From ese inscriptions we learn that all donors belonged. to acceptance of the Sarvastivadin, . . . having venerated the country
town, for the veneration of all beings; may it be for the obtainment
Dhenukakata _ which
_ has not yet been identified. But it was a great
centre of Buddhist activities. The inscription no. 8 ofjunnar in the of Nirvar;m."!IO The Taxila Silver Scroll inscription of the year 1 36
Poona (Pun.e) district says that a Yavana built a dining-hall atjunna
_ found in one of the chambers to the west of the Dharmarajika stiipa
for the Buddhist Sa'f{lgha.25 All these epigrahpic records throw light of the Chir Mound in Taxila gives us another account of the
on the development ofBuddhism under the patronage of the Yavana development of Buddhism during the reign of Aya-Aja or Azes. The
or the Greek people. records: "Anno 1 36 ofAya, on the 15th day of the firSt month ha,
on this day were established relics of the Lord by Urasaka. . . . By him
The Sakas these relics of the Lord were established in his own Bodhisattva
The Sakas, who were forced to leave their origin home in central chapel, in the Dharmarajikacompound ofTasila, for the bestowal
Asm
_ by the Yueh-ch
i tribe, founded various settlements in different of health on the Great king . . . in honour of all Buddhas, in honour
regions of ancient India and extended their power and influence to of the Pratyekabuddhas, in honour of the arhats, in honour of all
the northern and north-western parts oflndia at the expense of the bem _ gs
. . . may this they right munificence lead to NirvaJ)a. "!1
Indo-Greek rulers. From historical records we learn that north-west
India was ruled by king Mauesmoga and his successors Azes, Azilises
and Azes II.
66 uddhism J)uring the Rule oflndfrGreeks and /ndo-Scythians
B
The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India 67
aalU:uriiear
declared their independence and became
s they known as
GENEALOGY
afte;-;srda trap as. 5 Hagana and Hagama were the earliest rulers of
The Saka Emperow . The next ruler was Rajuvula.6
Maues t is cl from epigraphic :.vidence that .Buddhism prospered in
g the rule ofJuvula (or Rajula) . The Mathura lion-
Azes (Aya) Math urii durin
ins crip tions throw hght on the flourishing condition of
Azilises (Ayili) ital
Azes II (Aya or Aja) dhism under the patronage of noble ladies of royal families
of Rajuvula. The inscriptions describe: "By the chief
during the rule
queen of the Great Satrap Rajula " ' tether with her mother
.
Abuh ola, her paternal grandmother P1spas1, . . . her daughter Haha,
REFERENCES
her h ousehold and court of horakas (ladies) , a relic was deposited in
1/G, 97. 2MDP, II, 304. 'Ibid., 305.
this piece oflad in a stiipawith the thought: 'may it be for the eternal
4lbid., I I4-I5. 'Ibid., 305. 6S/, I 02 ff. . .. of the Holy Sakya sage Buddha.' And the stiipa and the monastery
'IJbid., I 03-4; NIA, II, 1939-40, 647; El, XXIV, I 937-38, 7. are the acceptance of !he universal Sa1[lgha of the Sarvastivadins. "7 In
8 GB!, 268. 9lbid., 269; JG, 98. '0 TL the reign oftrapa Sodasa Buddhism flourished. From an inscrip
"EHNI, 41 . 12/G, 99; GBI, 1 73, 262. "IG, 99; GBI, 1 75. tion we learn that in his reign Udaya, a disciple of Acirya Bud
14JYI', 321. "AIU, I I 7. 16Ibid., I I 7. dhadeva along with princes Khalamasa and Maja, made the gift of
17Cll, II, 1.65. 18lbid., II, 1.66. 19E/, VII, 1 902-03, 55. cave-dwelling to Buddhism of Nagaraka for the acceptance of the
20lbid., 56. 211bid., 53. 221bid., XVIII, 326. Sarvastivada monks.An other inscription9 of his reign mentions the
.,GBI, 255; ACHI, 365. 24PHAI, 438, A CHI, 195; AIU, 214 ff; EHNI, 57.
.,PHAI, 438-39: The Saka era of 58 sc.
gift ofsome lands to Acarya Buddhila ofNagaraka who disproved the
'riEJ, IV, I 896-97, 55; ACHI, 199. 'ii!EifNJ, 57.
"'EHNI, 57.
arguments of the MahasaJ!lghikas. These inscriptions give a clear
29lbid., 59. "'EI, XXI, 1931-32, 259. " CII, II, I. 77. picture of the flourishing condition of Buddhism in Mathura under
,.ENHI, 280; AIU, 708. the patronage of the early Saka rulers.
1/1
From the inscription and coins we learn that there were several The Parthian s, who captured Taxila and several other parts ofn orth
western frontier province, brought the end of the Saka rule. In AD 43-
Satrap1 rulers who ruled over different parts of the country. One of
these Satrapal families ruled in Kapisa near the junction of the Phraotes, the Parthian ruler, was on the throne ofTaxila.1' W.W.
am thin ks that
Ghorband and Panjshir riversin Afghanistan, another nearTaxilain Phraotes was Gondophernes because the word
,
Phraotes' was a Greek corruption of the word
the western Punjab, a third at Mathura in theJumna valley, a fourth
eu ndophernes had used as a title on his coins.11
'apratihata' which
in the Upper Deccan and a fifth at Ujjain in Malwa. 2
Liaka Kusulaka3 was a Satrap of the aharata family. It is very w Van Lohuizen-de
says that Phraotes and Gondophernes were two different
probable that he ruled over Chuk which has been identified by person s. 12 !he so-called Takht-i-Bahi inscription of the year 1 03 (of
an npec1fied era) mention
Sten Konow with the present Chach in the north of the district of s King Giduvhara or Gondophernes
an d It 15 date d in his
Attock. The Taxila copper-plate inscription of the year 78 mentions 26th regnal year.15 Accordin g toJ.F. Fleet, it was
m AD 47. 1 4 It lS
recorded
ca
the Satrapa Liaka Kusulaka and his son Mahadanapati Patika. It generally beheved that Gondophernes
:
describes that ". . . to the north of the town of Takasila, . . . in thi s ed the r ne ofTaxila AD 1 9-2 1 after
place Patika establishes a (formerly) not established relic of divin e p ;;
( r b
an the death ?fPhraotes
as r:gnmg monarch m AD 45-47. He brought S1stan,
u
Sind,
P
Sakamuni (Sakyamuni) and a monastery for the worship of all ly With Cutch and Ka!hiawar) , the southern and
western
Buddhas . . . "4 The inscription informs us that Buddhism prospered
etnpir
nis n
th e n <;>rth-west frontier province and the southern Afgha
der rule After the dea o Go ophernes, tl1e Parthian
during the rule of the Satraps of Taxila.
The Satraps of Mathura were at first subordinate rulers. Bu t
e Was divided mto: !
several prmCipahtles and each had its own
JJudJhism J)uring the Rule ofIndo-Greeks and Indo-Scythians 69
68 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India
. orld during the reign of Kujula Kadphises. The
independent ruler. Before the middle of the first century AD the U1
. the reltgt ous w f
.
coms d escn'b e: "n..U!fa'Y}asa
nds on the reverse o some
oth" lege
v -
Kuas not only destroyed the Parthian power but also wiped ou t Khar . u ta Kaphasa sacha-dhramathidasa"S, "(coin) of Kujula
their rule from the Gandhara region. No record refers to the religion
Yanasa u
ief or king of the Kuas, steadfast in faith" and "Kujula
KaphasaK an Yav(u)gasa dharmathidasa"\ " (coin) of Kujula-Kasa,
practised by the Parthian rulers and their people in their kingdom a
during the rule. : hng
chte
a
r of the Kuas, steadfst in faith : " These short epi
hso n the c oins inform us that Kujula Kadphtses I embraced the
P. of the Buddha. Because the new epithets ' dharma!hida' and
:%
k:;
REFERENCES rma!hida' ,may indicate his. acceptan.ce of Budhism as. his
nal religion Saivism also flounshed dunng the retgn ofKujula
'The word Satrap generally means a provincial governor or protector of the
hises becau e the gur o bull and the monogram of Nan
kingdom. It is derived from Sanskrit atrapa and Prlik(ta chatrava, chatrapa. In old h IS coms.
Persian it is used as athropavan-AIU, 1 32; PHAI, 443. dipa were foun d on
da
I
and 65. recod refers to Kanika vihara (Kanik vihara) and the Kanika caitya
His copper coins with the legends discovered in many places ive (Kamk caitya) ( stiipa) . 13 The discovery of relics with a series of three
I
I
us sufficient evidence to show that Buddhism obtained a firm footmg
1 11
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India
70
]31J.Jdhism During the Rule f Indo-Greeks and lndo-&ythians
o 71
Kashmir as gifts to
seated Buddha figures, attendant worshippers and the figure of the Buddhist Sa1[lgha.21 Pararnartha (AD 499-569 )
Kanika himself with Kharo!}li inscription in Peshawar has proved . his life of Vasubandhu refers to this council which was held five
that Kanika built a stiipa on the relics of the Buddha there. The
inscription says, "In the year I of (the Maharaja) , Kanika, in the
undred years ter the Mahaparii_Iibbana of the Buddha.22 The
light on the populanty of the Sarvastivada sect.
coun cil throws
town, Ima, connected with the . . . mansion, this religious gift . . . may The reign of Kanika was an importan t period for Buddhism.
it be for the welfare and happiness of all beings . . . the slve AgiSa.la
From the discovery of the Buddha images, coins and inscriptions we
was the architect . . . in Kanika's vihara, in Mahasena's Sangharama, learn that king, nobles and common people showed their keen
in the acceptance of the Sarvastivada teacher. "14 Here "the tenn interut in Buddhism. Kanika's coins show that Kanka performing
Kanika's vihara may refer to the entire complex of stiipa , votive a sacrifice over an altar on the_ obverse and the name of 'Boddo'
cha_pel, monastery and other structures such as the refectory . . . "15 In (Buddha) 23 or 'Sakaumf! Boddo' (sakyarnuni Buddha) on the reverse.
a Saka-Khotanese legend Kanika 's vihara is men tionec! as The discovery of the tmages of the Buddha at Hotimardan and
Sangliariima.16 The inscription indicates the popularity of the Mathura e dedition o stone-image of Bodhisattva by Bhiku
Il
Sarvastivada sect in the kingdom of Kanika I. Bala at S1irnath, a cattya ( ceuya) slab showm . g a stiipa
atArnaravati of
Kanika occupied an important place in the history of Buddhism the second cen tu ry AD24 ve us sucin t evidenc e to show the pros
for his close association with the Fourth Buddhist Council. From penty . of Buddhtsm _ dunng Kamka s rule. From the epigraphic
several Buddhist texts we learn that Kaniska after his conversion to recors also we lam the flourish g c?ndition of Buddhism during
Buddhism became very much devoted t it. Every day a Buddhist the retgn of Kamka. The Kosam mscnption ofKaniska dated in the
monk gave him instructions and advice in sacred texts which he used year 2 refers to the erection of a statue of Bodhisattv'a by a Buddh
to study with great devotion. But the varying opinions and the
ist
nun named Bodhimitra.25 The Sui vihara copper-plate inscription
in
conflictin,.,. doctrine of different sects in religious matters made him Khar?thi of th reign of Kanika says the female lay devote
unhappy. In order to establish Buddhism at the zenith of its glory h e
e Bala
nandt and Balajaya her mother gave a shrine for the staff
and the
determined to reconcile the various opinions of these sects and to customary accessories.26 The Zeda 2nd inscription
settle the Vinay a, Sutra and Abhidharma texts. He then convoked a
in Kharosthi of
the ei of Kani27 gives an account of the impo
rtance ;;f the
council at the Kundalavana vihara in Kashmir at the requestofParsva Sarvasuvada ect dunng the reign ofKanika. The
or Par5vika, the Buddhist philosopher. About five hundred Buddhst
. _ Manikiala (in the
Raw:Upmdt dtstnc _ t, west Pnjab)
inscription of the regnal year 1 8 of
monks, who were well-versed in the Tipifaka attended this council. Kamka refers to the estabhshmen t of several
Vasumitra, the great Buddhist philosopher, was th president of the
_ relics of the Buddha.28
Another mscri ption of the year 23 of the reign of Kanika says
council and Asvaghoa acted as the vice-president. During the Puya (datta ) , the daugher of Maha that
_ raja Matsyagupta established
session of the council 1 ,00,000 stanzas of Uptuksa.Siistra explanatory odhts:attva iage in her monastery. 29 The Set
_ uon states Mahet Buddhist
of the canonical Siitras, 1 ,00,000 stanzas of Vinaya-Vibhf.4asiistras, ex Image I? scnp at an image of Bodhisattva, an umbrella
planatory of the Vinay a and 1,00,000 stanzas of Abhidharma- '!ibhii1J and a suck were set up at Srava
:
siistras explanatory of the Abhidharma were composed durmg th
sti by the Buddhist monk Bala.30
li Kamka patronised Buddhist schol
_
ars and inspired them for their
session of the council. 17 The monks who took part in the council terary activities. Itwas for
this reason his reign is renowned as an age
brought the conflicting interpretation of the eighteen schools, u erous scholars of high
repute. Padva, Vasumitra, Asvaghosa,
settled their disagreements, recognised them as orthodox and exaJll g arak, Dharmatrata,
be
Ghoka and Buddhadeva, who we-re
Wl' sd om lived d unng
men of great
ined carefully the Tipifaka which was reduced to writing.18 I t is to.
:
:
noted here that in this council Sanskrit as the mdium o express!
h'Is retgn . Hts reign was also
.
rtant for the Gandhara and the Mathura schoo
. tch prod uced ls ofBuddhistart
for the Buddhist religion was used for the first tlme.19 Hmen-tsano
fine specimens of the Buddha and the Bodhisattv
ages. These a
says that Kanika came to Kashmir to attend the council a? d for schools of art became very prominent unde
accommodation of the Buddhist monks he built a Buddh1st m on i1
_ tronage of Kanika r the
and his successors.
IIIII tery there. He gave order that all the treatises discussed in the cou nc
be engraved on copper-plates which were to be kept in st?n e-boxesf V'"
aS"iska
For this purpose he erected a stiipa. He also gave the kingdom 0 After the death ofKanika,
ill
Yasika, who was his son ascen ded the
! 1
' ,11 '1 '1 1 '1 1,
'I \'' 1
The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India
dhis [)uring the Rule ofIndo-Greeks and lndo-Scythians
[JtJ,dm
72 73
The 5aiid inscription ofVaskua (Vasika) of the year 22 gives an thiS penod
season, some day ofVasudeva . . . cor the
II
"45
I /I
::s; :!; .:: 1 ::
1 2,
Kaniska II
EHI, 283-84.
"'Watters, 270-72. "'Watters, 270-71; Hwui Li, 71-72.
nika II who was a son ofVasika and a grandson of Kaika I 22 GM,
I , 21; EHJ, 284, fn 1; LVB, II, V. 276-81; ]RASGB/, 1905, 52.
ruled conjointly with Huvika and Vasika.45 He took the ntl e 0
f 23WB. 31 1 . ..
:CR.
Ibid., 31 1 .
Kaisara (Caesar) in addition to the titles of Maharaja, Rajatiriija and july, 1 934 , 83; PHAI, 473, fn 6; EBR. 1 33; EI, XXIV , 1 937-3, 210-12.
Devaputra. lA, X , 1 881 , 326. 'EJ, XI X, 1927-28, 15. "'Cll, 11, I. 149-50.
II I
I
BudJ)u.sm J)u
74 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India . ring the Rule ofIndo-Greeks and Indo-Scythians 75
5El, XXVIII, 1949-50, 44. e SaT[lgha generally; he also has given a perpetual
"Ibid., ll, 369.
,.Ibid., VIII, 1905-6, 1 81 .
. cavel on th
th
"HrG, IV , 1 68, 30. t, three thousand-3000-- Kahapanas which for the
b
en Wll en
'"Ibid., II, 369-70.
54lbid., IV, 12, 30, 169. "ALHI, 242. e SaT[lgha of any sect and any origin dwelling in this
rnem ers of th
cave 200
"Ibid., 243, El, II, 369-70. a weavers' guild- (and) 1 ,000 in another weavers'
JBBRAS, 1902, pp. 269 ff; El, II, 18, 206; X, 1909-10, 1 1 2-14; N]IM, I, 1 892, 386.
0 in
"'JUGS, I, vv. 1 68-73; PHAI, 476-77. -o ut of the m the two thousand-200 0--are the cloth money;
gu"ld
"'EI, VIII, 1 905-6, 181-82.
"El, X, 1909-10, 1 1 2-13. h em to every one of the twenty monks who keep the vassa in
40ARASI, Il, 1922-23, 1 68-69. ou of t of twelve (Kahapai_las) . . . . And at the village
cloth money
421bid., XX, 191 1-1 2, 2113.
m ccave, a
{ in the Kapura district have been given eight thou
..Ibid., XIV, 191 7-18, 1 30 ff; CII, I, II, LXXX and 163. ikha lapa dra
44El, XXX, 1953-54, 482-83
"'AIU, 708.
d -8000 -
cave
stems
at
of
Nasik
coconut
describe,
trees, . . .. " The second inscription
". . . This cell, a gift ofDakharnita,
"Ibid., 1 82-83.
foun d in a
wife ofUvad ata, daughter of king Nahapana, the harata Ksha
THE SAKA SATRAPS OF WESTERN INDIA AND THE DECCAN trapa- "6 T he third inscription discovered in the caitya cave at Karle in
the Poona (Pune) district states: "(This) pillar (is) the gift ofMitade
The Ksahariitas vanaka, son of Uavadata from Dhenukakata''" The fourth inscrip
Th haratas, who possibly belonged to the Saka group, ruled tion found in a cave at Karle says, " . . . Uvadata . . . there has been
over western India and the Deccan. They also captured parts of given the village of Karajika for the support of the ascetics living in
Mah!J"a from the 5atavahanas. H. C. Raychaudhuri says, "harata the caves at Valiiraka without any distinction of sect or origin, for all
seems to be identical with 'Karatai', the designation of a famous Saka who would keep the vaa (there) . "8 Another inscrption also found
tribe of the north mentioned by the geographer Ptolemy."1 Liaka, in a cave at Karle describes, "This gift of the nun Asahamita. "9 All
Patika, Ghatiika, Bhumakaand Nahapana belonged to the harata these inscriptions give an account ofthe important role played by the
or Chaharata family.2 The first three members ruled over Taxila and ruling class, monks as well as nuns for the progress of Buddhism
Mathura regions and Bhiimaka, who preceded Nahapana, was a during the reign of Nahapana.
trapa or Satrap ofKat}liawar. Kharata Bhiimaka ruled over the
south-western part of the empire of nika's house. He occupied GENEALOGY
the throne between AD 50 and 60.5 Nothing is known about the The Ksahariitas0
followers of Buddhism and made endowments for the prosperity of was the progenitor of the Saka princes ofUjjain.1 I t is difficult to say
.
v ana eJ!Iplre. v:
1.samat1"ka, the father of ChaJ:ana,
<lflyth
Buddhism. An inscription found in a cave at Nasik records: "' n the Rapsn,g _ about the proper name of the dynasty. According to
year 42 . . . Uvadata son-in-law of King Nahapana, . . . has bestowed n It may have been Karddamaka or Kardamaka.2 It is very
76 The Rise and Dedim of Buddhism in India
ad ura
(Chen-tzen) in the middle of the fourth century AD, sent ambassa n huge cars richly decorated, which annually paraded through
dors with presents to Samudragupta for his permission to build a day of the .seond man, attended by singe.rs
: on the eighth
monastery at Bodh Gaya. It is known that while Sri Meghavar:r;ta was notes that stmllar processions were common m
d musicians"; and
reigning, two Ceylonese Buddhist monks, Mahanama and Upa, in un try.12 The Chi ese pilms then refers to the
:ther parts of the co .
order to worship the Diamond Throne, came to Bodh Gaya. But they r Buddh ist shrines on the four stdes of Pa!ahputra. Each con-
found no suible accommodation to stay there nd when they ed a seated Buddha and a standin Bodhisa g ttva 15
:
returned to thetrcountry they referred thts. matter to Sri Meghavar:r;ta, Fa-bie n gives us an account of several monastene s m northern
the king of Ceylon and requested him to do something for the India. He says, "In the course of ajourney of some 500 miles from the
Ceylonese pilgrims. The king sent envoys to Samudragupta, who Indus to Mathura on the Jumna, Fa-hien passed a succession of
gladly complied with the wishes of the Ceylonese king and gave his Buddhist monasteries tenanted by thousands of monks; and in the
permission to build a monastery at Bodh Gaya. The Ceylonese king neighbourhood of Mathura found twenty of these buildings occu
erected a splendid monastery there. Hiuen-tsang also mentions this pied by three thousand residents. Buddhism was growing in favour
story.' He says that a Ceylonese prince, who was a Buddhist monk, in this part of the country."14
came to India to visit the sacred places. But he did not find any Fa-bien makes references to Chandragupta Il's administration.
monastery in India to spend some days comfortably there. When he From Fa-bien's record it is known that no one killed any living thing
returned to the island he reported this matter to the Ceylonese king or drank any liquor or touched onions or garlic. No one kept pigs or
and requested him to erect m<;masteries at the holy places through fowls and there were no butchers' shops or distilleries in their market
outlndta. AthisrequestMahaSri Raja, the Indian king, who has been places}5 We may conclude from Fa-bien's account that Buddhism
identified by scholars with Samudragupta, gave his help and co was in a flourishing state in the kingdom of Chandragupta II.
operation to build a monastery at one of the places where the Some evidence is available regarding the growing importance of
Buddha had left tracs of his presence. The king of Ceylon with the Budd hism in the Gupta kingdom from Hiuen-tsang's account. The
permission ofMaha Sri Raja constructed the Mahabodhi monastery Chinese pilgrim gives the name of Sakraditya, 16 who, according to
at Bodh Gaya. Hiuen-tsang states further that when he came to Bodh scholars, was king Purugupta Vikrama Praka.Saditya, a brother of
Skandagupta. This king was a great patron of Buddhism. He revered
Gaya he saw about one thousand monks of the Great Vehicle in this
the three gems, i.e., the Buddha, the Dharma and the Sa'T{tgha, and
monastery. Two inscriptions ofBodh Gaya which mention Mahanama,
erected a monastery at Nalanda. Narasirphagupta Baladitya, who
the Sthavira, corroborate the accounts of the Chinese pilgrims.8
ascended the throne of the Gupta empire after Purugupta, made a
Fa-hien, in the beginning of the fifth century AD, spent several
uable contribution to the progress of Buddhism in his kingdom.
years in the kingdom of Chandragupta II, a son of Samudragupta.
Although his account9 contains abundant references to the spread of av:_v.ubli c proof of his partiality for Buddhism by building at
Ng anda, m Mag
11
Buddhism among the people of Chandragupta II, but his itin erary adha, the principal seat of Buddhist learning in
:ern India, a brick temple more than 300 feet high, according
makes no mention of the name of any king. Even then, his account
certainly lends some colour to the Buddhist world in Chandragupta' s ti uen-tsang, which was remarkable for the delicacy of its decora
s nd the lavish use ofgold and gems in its furniture}' For its size,
reign. The Chinese pilgrim describes that he found at Pa!aliputra
nificence and
two monasteries of the Hinayana and Mahayana monks. The monks 1110nastery image of the Buddha, it looked like the Great
resident in both establishments together numbered six or seven near the Bodhi tree. 18 Hiuen-tsang19 describes that for the
1
1, ' !I, 1 ,'1 1,l1, "'1,'
, l
I1 : 81
nder the Ouptas and Later Ouptas
! 80 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in ],.,_,.
'"" 'a
/3ttdt}histn u
lite rary creations not only enriched the Buddhist
whilO by the ir .
opening ceremony of this monastery Baladitya invited Bud mark m
dhi t .
hi I literature in Sanskrit,26 but rnade a permanent "
eld during the fourth, fifth a d the sixth cen ries AD::a
monks from all quarters. Two Chinese Buddhist monks to atten sop
d thIS ph <:> era
ceremony came there. But when the king went there to mee t th the h t
em t during these periods the Chmese took keen mterest m
they disappeared in a mysterious way from that place. The king
sb much upset by this inident that he joined the Buddhist Sa7[tgha
w We kn OW
. ties of th e Buddhist scholars
lite.rary ctlVI
a and for the enrichll_lent of
s-
orld the Chinese translated many texts, utras, """ tras ,
thelf 0 w
C'>:: -
as a monk. Because of h1s age he was able to occupy an import mentar ies into their own language.28 Fa-hien,
an t an d com
place in the Buddhist Sa7[tgha. Kumarajiva, Paramartha etc. helped
Dhara1JtSbh dra' Dharmaksema,
Tathagataraja Vainyagupta, another son ofPurugupta, was a gre Buddha a
l i !il l patron of Buddhism. Hiuen-tsang refers to the erection of a m on
at
the growth
of Buddhist literature by their miSSionary
an d li terary
tery at Nalanda by him.20 The Chinese pilgrim says that Vaj ra, a
as.
ac -
son jlvitagupta 1 and Adityasena
were the Later Gupta rulers who d1d
_ .
.
I
!
TM Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in J-> 83
' ' l
s
82 ----' the Guptas and Later Gupta
Q srn U 1w<'
The Later
GENEALOGY Gupta
I Dmh.
(2) Ananta Deva Kumaragupta Madhavagupta
Devi gupta II Srimati Devi
Rajyasri
Vaka!<lka
Skandagupta urugupta- Ghatoaca- kings of
Grahavarman
Vikramaditya II Sri Chandra Devi gupta Bhojakata
I etc. in the Adityasena-Kona Devi
Deccan
Narasixphagupta Buddhagupta
I
Baladitya-Mitra Devi Bhogavarman-daughter Maukhari Devagupta III
I Tathagatagupta I Kamala Devi
Kumaragupta II probably related to Vatsa Devi
Kramaditya ,
Vainya upta I
I Jayadeva Paracakrakama ViI) ugupta
Vir:mgupta Rajyamati, daughter of ljjadevi
Baladitya II (Bhanugupta ?)
I
Hadeva
I
I Jivitagupta I I
Prakataditya (?) Vajra (?)
REFERENCES
'PHA/, 528-29' HNEl' 6' IA' X' 1 881 , 1 09 ff;]RASGBNS, Xlll, Il, 1882, 570 ff; Sen,
1 31.
'CCGD, XV-XVI ; PHAI, 529.
84 The Rise and Dedine ofBudhd ism in Irutiq
22Legge, 44.
""Watters, II, 164; Beal, II, 168.
"Watters, II , 164; Beal, II, 170.
25Watters, II, 164-65; Heal, II, 1 70. THE MAUS OF KANA
"Watters, Il, 164-65; Beal, II, 1 70. 2!>Legge, 42.
5SBCI, 9. 27Ibid. illIbid.
''Ibid., 332. From the known records of the Maukhari dynasty we learn that
Harivarman was regarded as the founder of the Maukhari house of
illlbid. '"Ell], 331.
"Hwui Li, 36. ''Ibid. 54Hwui Li, 36-37.
"'EHB, 23; Sen, 176. ._HNEI, 153-54. PHAJ, 599. Kanauj.1 The Maukharis began their rule over Kanauj at the end of
PHAI, 613. the fifth century AD. It is very probable that he or his immediate
ancestorwent to Kanauj to settle there when the power of the Guptas
dedined.2 The Haraha inscription mentions that he had the epithet
ofjvalamukha or flame-faced. 3 The Asirgagh seal gives us indication
that "his fame stretched out beyond the four oceans; who had other
kings brought into subjection by (his) prowess, and by affection (for
him)."4 He assumed the title ofMaharaja. The name Hari suggests
that he was a devotee of Hari or Visnu. .. Because Hari was another
name ofVisnu.
Adityavaan ascended the throne of the Maukhari dynasty after
his father Harivarman. The former was a staunch follower of
Brahmanism. The Haraha inscription refers to his sacrificial per
formances.6 He used the title "Maharaja". He probably
was a devotee
ofthe sun-god. Bcause Adityawas the name ofSiirya
next ruler was ISvaravarman. In the Jaunpur inscription
or the Sun. The
"he is
referred to as having
allayed the trouble ( caused) by the approach of
the cuel people, and
; which affected the happiness of mankind, and
be g a very lion to (hostile)
j he unpenal
kings.'" Radha Kumud Mooketji says,
_
ambitions of the Maukharis were first embodied in
?;;:
varman, who, according
to the Jaunpur Stone inscription of
j
svaravarman , extended his conquests towards the west up to Dhara,
t Vindhya and Raivataka (Gimar) mountains
in pursuit of the
ras . . . . "8 He may be regarded as the first Maukhari ruler who
bro ght
h the ily into prominence .9The Asiragadh seal shows that
foJ:ad the title
er of rahmanism,
of Maharaja.10 He, like his predecessors, was a
and he invoked Indra in many sacrifices,
Pe tme
d m accordance with the canons.H
1 rI
86 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in [,'.,_,. m ri
[)u ng Ma
. l a
ukharis, Haavardhana and Maitrakas 87
isanavarman succeeded !}is father isvaravarman. From the B a swara an d the sister of Rajyavardhana and Havardhana,
Thane
ar ha
d
_
inscription of the reign of lsanavannan12 we learn that th e fo rrner trimo nial alliance with the Vardhanas ofThaneswara. But
orme ma
before his accession to the throne, had achieved three iporta f
l)evagupta,
g ofM-1
th e kin a ava,
- who was a great enemy of the Vardha-
victories in three different regions, viz., victories over the An dh ras
n
this alliance and he soon made an alliance with
sa did not like
the Siilikas and the Gam;las of the sea:.shoreY The inscription
that he conquered tpe lord of the Andhras. According to H e.
itka, the king ofGaua, after the death of Prabhakaravardhana
ra. J? evagupta of Malav_a invaded Kanauj with the help
Raychaudhuri, 14 the Andhra king probably was Madhavavarm an of
of Thane5wa
of Sa5aflka a
nd killed Gra avarman m AD ?06.27 He occupied Kanauj
.
the ViQukut:u;lin family, who in or?er to conquer the easte rn region thrown mto pnson.
and R?"rl was This Maukhari ruler, like his
Ill crossed the river Godavarl .15The Siilikas may be identified with the ce ssor s, was a follower of Brahmanism . Havardhana recov
Saulikas of the Brihatsa'T[thita (XN, B) and the Markar.ujeya
rede
Puriina red hi s sister Rajyasrl, relieved Kanauj from foreign occupation and
and their country was located in tl1e south-east along th Kalin , ia drove the invaders out ofKanauj. In course of time he transferre d his
Vidarbha and Cedi.16 But R.C. Majumdar thinks that the Siilikas live
d capital from Thaneswara to Kanauj. We do not know anything from
on the sea-coast near the modern district of Midnapore in West any record about th prevalence of Buddhism in the kingdom of
Bengal.17 But H.C. Raychaudhuri refers to them as Chalukyas. He Kanauj during the retgn of the Maukhari rulers.
says further that, "Siilika may be another dialectic variant, since in the
Mahakiita pillar inscription the name appears as 'Calikya', and in the GENEALOGY
Gujarat records we fmd the forms Solaki and Solanki. "18 The Mahakii
pillar inscription says that about this time the Chalukyas became very The Maukharis of Kanauj
powerful and Kirtivarman I , a Chalukya ruler, extended his con Harivarman
quests up to Ailga, Vanga, Magadha, Madraka and Kalinga etc.19 Adityavarman
Probably, he met lsanavarman and was defeated in battle. It is Isvaravarman
difficult to say anything about the loal dynasty ofGaua at that time. isanavarman (AD 550)
The Aphsad Stone ins.:ription of Adityasena describes that he de Sarvavarman (AD 560)
feated the Malwa king Kumaragupta. 20 This indicates the extension Sustllltavarman (AD 567)
of his territories up to Prayaga. Because his funeral rites were Avantivarman (AD 600)
performed there. He assumed the title ofMaharajadhiraja. He was a Grahavarman (AD 605-6) .
follower of Brahmanism.
Sarvavarman succeeded his father isanavarman. The Haraha in
scription mentions Siiryavarman, another son of Isanavarman It s
very probable that he during !he lifetime ofhis father caused a dilapi
: 'REFERENCES
dated temple of Andhakari, Siva to be raised at his wish and made an :Hl!MC. 36. 21bid.
. CJJ, III, 220.2 1 ; E/, XN, 1 1 , I I 9, vv. 4-5.
'Ibid.
ornament of the earth.21 There is no reference to him in any other Ibd .;
record. It may suggest that he predeceased his father . H.C. n1
lb d. 37;
a, 54.
EI, XN, I l 6, 1 19, v. 7.
5HKMC ' 36-37.
7HKMC, 37; CII, III, 230
9HKMC, 38
,
Raychaudhuri identifies him with the ruler of the same name 10lb"d
recorded in the Sirpur stone inscription of Mahasivagupta.22 Sarva HKM
llJbid., 39.
'Ibid., 40; Ha, 54-55; E/, XN, 1 1 7-20, v. 13.
l ., .:><>.
go
""HKMc,
1
to fill th e
high place ofmy illustrious father. Yet I indeed,
d . ity,
but gn oran
t and foohsh. In my . trouble I ask the holy direction (of
Harl?avardhana (or Hara) , a son ofPrabhiliravardhana, ascended Bodh isa ttva) "
the throne ofThandwara in th beginning othe seventh century AD.
the "I former eXIstence
tva rephed,
. . you lived in this
The Bodhisat
But he had transferred h1s _ cap1tal to KanaUJ from Thanesw
ara. Be fi er mit (a forest mendicant) , and by your earnest diligence
orest as a h
was regarded as a great and powerful monarch. He is one of the mit tin g attenti. on you m
. h ente
. d a power of religious merit
few .d unre
examples in our ancient annals of a king who by his conquests made : ich resulted in your birth as a king's son. The king of the country,
himself a king of kings and achieved the political unification of a l{arl)asuvafJ)a, has overturned the law of th Buddha. Now when you
estate, you should m the same proportion
large part oflndia as its paramount sovereign.1 From Hiuen-tsang' s succeed to the royal
account we know that after the death of Prabhakaravardhana and ex erci se tow ards it the utlnost love and pity. If you give your mind to
Rajyavardhana, the chief minister requested Harvardhana to ac co mp ass iona te the condition of the distressed and to cherish them,
cept the throne ofThaneswara and to assume the royal authority. His then before long you shall rule over the Five Indies. Ifyou establish
record throws light on it. He says, "The people having lost their ruler your authority, attend to my instruction, and by my secret power you
the country became desolate. Then the great minister Po-ni (Bhendi) : shall receive additional enlightenment, so that not one of your
whose power and reputation were high and of much weight, address neighbours shall be able to triumph over you. Ascend not the lion
ing the assembled ministers, said, "the destiny of the nation is to be throne, and call not yourself Maharaja. "
fiXed today. The old king's son is dead: the brother of the prince, "The promise is that if this advice is followed, then, by my
however, is humane and affectionate and his disposition, heaven mysterious energy (or, in the darkness) , shall be added the benefit
confessed, is dutiful and obedient. Because he is strongly attached to (happiness) of light, so that in the neighbouring kingdoms there
his family, the people will trust in him. I propose that he assumes the shall e no on strong enough to resist (your arms) . "2 Mter receiving
royal authority; let each one give his opinion on his matter, whatever these mstructlons he accepted the offer of the ministers and magis
he thinks." They all agreed on this point and acknowledged his trates and ascended the throne of Thaneswara. He called himself
conspicuous qualities. Kumara, the king's s:m and took the title of Siladitya or "Sun of
On this the chief ministers and the magistrates all exhorted him rtue."3 Practically, Siladitya or Havardhana conquered all the
kingdoms of north India but in the south he was defeated at the
to take authority, saying, "Let the royal prince attend."
hands of Pulikesi or Pulake5a or Pulakesin 11.4 Harsavardhana's
The prince replied, 1'he govemmentofa country is a responsible
pye before a s t e of Avalokitesvara Bodhisattva for his holy
office and ever attended with difficulties. The duties of a prince
drrectton dearly md1cates his faith in Buddhis
require previous consideration. As for myself, I am indeed of small
m and his great
e t to the Mahayana. Under his rule the small principality
eminence; but as my father and brother are no more, to reject the
. ewara became the most powerful kingdom in northern
heritage of the crown that can bring no benefit to the people. I must
attend to the opinion of the world and forget my own insufficiency.
In a. Hmen-tsang also
ca la ry and 50,000 foot
sys that he had 5,000 elephants, 2,000
Now, therefore, on the bank of the Ganges there is a statue of soldiers. After conquering the Five Indies he
Avalokitdvara Bodhisattva which has evidenced many spiritu
en rged his forces '
th he ha 50,000 war
and we see from the Chmese pilgrim's account
wonders. I shall go to it and ask advice (request a response) . ;:
re rs to hi
elephants and 1 ,00,000 cavalry.6 Hiuen-tsang
Forthwith, coming to the spot where the figure of the Bodhisattva At first Ha
m as an energetic ruler.7
-
rl?avardhana was a devotee ofSiva 'Parama-Mahdvara. a
was, he remained before it fasting and praying. The Bodhisattva The Banskhera
recognised his sincere intention (heart) , appeared in a bodily fortll Plate of Harvardhana refers to him as a devout
and inquired, "What do you seek that you are so earnest in you
worsh' pper
of Mahesvara, "who like Mahdvara is compassionate
supplications?" The prince answered, "I have suffered under a loa .
J toWar
ll all created beings. "9 MteiWards he became
ina 5
_
,: . I
sects. "20 Th"ts accoun t m-
were prevalent.12 Hiuen-tsang says that in Kanauj there were about .
nd adherents of the Hmdu .
1 00 monasteries (sailghiiriimas) and 1 0,000 monks, who used to study
=;
e
the doctrines of the Great and Small Vehicles.1' dica o ularity of the Mahayana in the kingdom of Har
vardhana. The king his sister and other members of the royal fam
ly
II I
1
Hiuen-tsang gives some interesting information about Harsa.
d t and gave their full support .or
1ts d eve opmen t m
vardhana. He says, "He governed everywhere in peace. He thn Patrom se 1
1111 c
. not on1y partic !
practised to the utmost the rules of temperance (temperate restric l(anaUJ and other parts of the country. Hmen-tsang
an active part m
. th"ts con.erence. Hls
tions) , and sought to plant the tree of religious merit to such an patn sd the discussion but took
were so interesting that he was_ declared as 'l?r? of the
c
ha an d following
water. The two kings led the way with their gorgeous s taff of sol the example offormer kings, I have built the
ngha
diers . . . . After ninety days they arrived at the city ofKanyaku bja ( and deeds b
rama, an d I have aimed to distinguish myself by superior
rested) on the western shore of the Ganges river, in the mi ddle of a ut my poor attempts have fiound no return. In the presence
flowery copse.
of
'
denly as if by a single blow, the fire was extinguished and the smoke
. h ed the 500 Brahmanas to the fron
disappeared. e ba. filS
. h tiers of Ind1a and
tbe ber ucs ca11ed
The kings beholding the strange event, were filled with redoubl d
e e en-tsang refers to a 1er
rest. p rn ed to his capital. Hiu
LI ru
A ssa m.
a m 28
tlus
was a goo dt otee of Ma
crowmng work of my religious life . . . . "
he5
The princes, prostrate at his feet' with tears' repll" ed' "The Work e ev tation and carne to hts plac
e
wh"1ch marked the crowningact ofyourperfected meritand\ h. hWe and a grlacae. He g1adly accepted his invi .
to hiS P
B u ddh tsm
: . u n of converting
ple
him and h1s peo . . . to
hoped would be handed down to future ages, has in a mom n een ofNalanda that WIthm tts tern
WI' th t
he Jnten o to-
1 1earnt fro m
bhadra
se
Sila
reduced to ashes . . . .
be ca u te end ed. 30 B ut we are qm ' te
The kin_g answered, "By this, atleast, we see the trutli of wha Law has not widely ext .Ism.
"
e the 0 Buddha
- -
rim could not convert h1m
to B "ddh
thmgs, but our great teacher's doctrine is that all things are im
manent. or m , my work of charity was finished, according to my
0
gr:
It
.Jealous of the Buddhist
..
happmes (ood forune), and not a subject for lamentation." them exceedingl . great p tronage.
hts
er
the owth of Buddh
On thts, m company with the kings, he went to the east and ism in his kingdom und ck tts fuer
to che
moun ted the great stiipa. Having reached the top, he looked arund Thas its gre at patr on and
li why theywanted to kill ws the ros pn ?f
tsang 's record clearly sho p
on the scene, and e? descending the steps, suddenly a heretic (or rogr ess. But Hiuen- ou gh 11 dec hn ea m
& uddhism in the kingdom ofH
aqavardhana alth
a strange man) , kmfe m hand, rushed on the king. The king, startled
at th suden attack, stepped back a few steps up the stairs, and then other a p rts of India. 51
ly at Kanauj , Haqavardhana
went to
bendmg hnnself down he seized the man, in order to deliver him to At the end of his great assemb the Ga ng s and the
cofl?e ce ?f ;
_
the magtstrates ... . Prayaga (Po-Lo-ye-kia) at the _ butt on of alm s. Fro m old
al dtstn
e ki ?s d manded the culprit should be instantly killed, but Jumna for his sixth quinquenm ey had
le families, whenever
time till now, the kings and nob
'
_!
e,
Sdaditya-raja Without the least show of fear and with unchanged charity, ever came to tlns pla
offegs to the srama1Jas and cast a metal image of Buddha; but the ancestors came to this plac e for the distr ?
tatlo of kmg nearly
heretts w10 have come from a distance have scarcely been spoken wealth of five years in one day.55 At the mVI
etics, the poor, e
500,000--sramanas, Brahmai)aS, Nirgran thas, her
to their mmds, therefore, have been affected with resenttnent, and
orphans and beeaved of the Five Indies came
to Prayaga to eceiVe
they procured me, wretched man that! am to undertake this unlucky ' s acc ount throws ltght on
alms offered to them by the king.36 Hwui Li
deed. " first day of the first
The king then questioned the heretics and their followers. There fuis ceremony at Prayaga. Harvardhana, on the
e Grad Arna . of
500 Brahmai_las, all of singular talent, summoned before the period, in one of the buildings,erected on "th
ere heworshtpped ttWlth
!ting.Jealous ofthe frama1Jas, whom the king reverenced and
w_
exceed Largesse", established the Buddha's image and
the most costly things. T0 celebrate_ this occasio e pre se?ted robes,
mgly honoure , they had caused the precious tower to catch fir by
n
e f s and other things to the resid!n t mon ks . The king, on th_e
means ofburnmg arrows, and they hoped that in escaping from the ood
secon d day, established the statue ofAdityadeva (I.e
. . sun) and for thts
fire the crowd would disperse in confusion, and at such a moment who we;; present
they prpose to assassinate the king. Having been foiled in this, th eY purpose, he distributed many things to the people,
there .39 On tliethird day the king established e oflsvaradeva
hd nbed this man to lay wait for the king in a narrow passage and the statu
kill h1m.
Maitrakas 97
. 71l J)unng
aris Harsavardhana and
96 . Maukh
dtfhtS
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in ln4iq '
mendtcants who came from distant places for alms and th'ts cere. t role fon a flourished. a great extent 1
m KanaUJ
to
m ony contmued tor c ten days.45 He then ave gifts to the poor, th great the re1t. gton of the Buddh
th
a
his eat love and respect ctoritand its adherents. The king gave awa: ept a pre cw
at morning and mght was k
all Is wealth in charity. He then accepted from RaJyasri, his sister different colours
in one of the Sait ramas.62 People from far and
near used to come
ordmary econd-and garment and after covering his body with i he
gha they used to
the tooth of thec Buddha and
offered hts worship t? te Buddha of the ten regions.48 He became to the Sanghariima to see ce as an entrance-1ee. H' me n-t san g says that
pay one great gold pie
63
etre_?Jely happy to distnbute everything he had in his treasuries. He elic of the Bud dha fro m
ught this tooth-r
satd, In amassing all this wealth and treasure I ever feared thatitwas king Harsavardhana bro gharama.64 He had to use
not safel stored m . a strong place; but now having bestowed this Kash mir nd he enshrined it in this San nau j as abl e to
because of ths relic
treasure m the field ?f religious merit, I can safely say it is well force for the possession . It is 1t occ upi ed an Imp orta nt
dhists and
betwed. O.h tat I (SiHiditya) may in all my future births ever thus attract the attention of the Bud 's reli cs. Ha r rdh ana ' use
dha
rehgtously gtve m charity to mankind my stores of wealth, and thus position as a place ofone of the Bud
and his enshnnement m a
of force to secure the tooth-relic
ital indicae him, _a jeal
complete m . myself the ten independent powers (dasabalas) (of s
Sangharama built by him in his cap
a
Ill
.
servant, whilst progressing through Orissa, met some prie sts o f th a d ' spirit of tolerance that does great honour to Indian
Little Vehicle who, hampered by contracted views, adhere to a s-
the eBnuddoW::
WIHe had himself personally responsible for supplying the
d
which abuses the principles of the Great Vehicle. They speak 0
followers of that system as men of a different religion, and they .
;:a e
.
r
men of eminent ability, well acquainted with one and the 0
school, and also wit!t the esoteric and exoteric doctrine, to n the age ofHarvardhana. Hiuen-tsang refers to the Mahayana
cuntry of ris . Si laha ra, aftr r ceiving this letter, requeste inaesyana, the two main divisions f Bu? dhisrn d also makes
saararnati, PraJfo-larasrni, ren c to eighteen schools. He desnbes, As a religious system of
f,
_ Sup. arasrni and Hiuen-tsang to go to
Onssa for preachmg the doctrme of the Mahayana.67 Jul:i69 is apptherehended by people accordin to the king, and s it is
Rene Grousset gives a picture of the _spread of Buddhism in the long since time of the Holy One, Buddhism now Is pure or diluted
.
kingdom of Harvardhana and his great role as a follower of the accord ing to the spiritual insight and mental capacity of its adher
religion of the Buddha. He describes, "Now this conqueror ents. The tenets of the schools keep these isolated, and controversy
(Harardhana) , this peacemaker, this last emperor of independ runs high; heresies on special doctrines lead many ways to the same
ent India was a most pious Buddhist. Like Asoka before him he was end. Each of the Eighteen schools claims to have intellecrual superi
a veritabl saint upon the throne. His wars once over, Hiuentsang ority; and the tenets of the Great and the Small Systems (Vehicles)
tells us, his only cncem was for the material and moral well-being differwidely . . . . Wherever there is a community ofBrethren it makes
. people. His
of his
.
Ideal as sovereign was to impregnate the laws and (its own) rules of gradation. The Brother who expounds orally one
customs of the country with the gentleness and charity ofBuddhism. treatise (or class ofscriputre) in the Buddhist canon, whether Vinaya,
It was a orthy effort, corning as it did on the eve of the great tidal Abhidharma or Sutra, is exempted from setving under the prior; he
wave ofSivaisrn and its make ofviolence . . . . Like ASoka he attempted who expounds two is invested with the outfit of a superior; he who
to forbid the killing of animals; and like him he erected thousands expounds three has Brethren deputed to assist him; he who ex
of stu pas and monasteries. In the towns and villages, at cross-roads pounds four has lay setvants assigned to him; he who expounds five
and other meetings of the ways he built houses of reliefin which were rides an elephant; he who expounds six rides an elephant and has a
surrounding retinue. Where the spiritual attainments are high, the
stored food, drink and medicaments to be given as alms to travellers
disti nctions conferred are extraordinary ."70
and to the poor and indigent."
Hiuen-tsang found about 5,000 monasteries and many Buddhist
"No monarch took his kingly task as seriously as he. 'When the
colleges for monks jn India at the time of Harsavardhana. He also
kings of the small neighbouring kingdoms or when their ministers or
m:nti ns that in some places the followers of the Mahayana and
chief officers perfonned good works and sought to attain virtue,'
writes Hiuen-tsang, 'he took them by the hand and seated them Hmayana used to reside side by side in one rnonastery.71
A graphic account of the adherents of the different schools of
upon his throne, calling them his good friends'." . Bud dhis
Like Asoka and also Kanika before him, Haa took an active part th m and different centres of Buddhism flourished in ndia in
in the life of the Buddhist church. Each year he called a council of
e age_ of Harvardhana is given by Radha Kurnud M ookerji. On
th
che basi of the records of Hiuen-tsang Mookerji has prepared his
onks drawn from the whole oflndia, discussing points of doctrine
d
art to mform
With them, sustaining their fuith, and heaping alms upon the deserY'
ing religious. He invited the most scholarly and the most sain tly
.
scnption
us about the development ofBuddhism in I ndia . His
is quite impressive and we get interesting glimpses of the
among them to sit on his throne and himself received instru ctio
n
d Wth of Buddhism from the distribution of monks among the
1 . Sthavira aviidin
4 [.okottar
m ian s everal
thousands.
In Gaya (in the vihara of the Ceylonese king) 1 ,000 In Ba
In Samatata 2,000
In Kalinga 500
In Dravi<;la 10, 000 (with out mention of any sects)
s. lfinayana 1 00
In Bharoach 300 In Sakala
In Siirat 3,000 In Gandhara 50
In Sthandvara 700
Total 1 6,800 In Sm ghn a 1 ,000
In Givisana 1 00
2. Sammitiya In Kosambi 300
In Ahicchatra In Ghazipur 1 ,000
1 ,000
In Sankasya In Magadha 50
1,000
In Campa 200
In Hayamukha 1 , 000
In Visoka 3,000
Total 3,500
'1 11 In Kapilavastu 30
In Benares 3,000
6. Mahayana
In samath 1 ,500
Ip Kapis 6,000
In Monghyr 4,000
ln Udyana 1 8,000
In Kamasuvama 2,000
In Malva 20,000
In Takasila 300
In Ku-lu-to(on the Upper Beas) 1 ,000
In Valabhi 6,000
In Pi-lo-shan-na 300
In Sindh 10,000
In Magadha 1 0,000
In Karachi 5,000
In Put:tyavardhana 700
In Pitasila 3,000
In Orissa Myriads
In vanda (?) 2,000
In S. Ko5ala 1 0,000
In Anandapura 1 ,000
In Ujjeni
300 . .
e d an .Impoorm. She took lessons on Buddhist
In Parvata . tant part for the propagation of Buddhism m
In Mekran 1 ,000
she brot Payher' s kmgd d octnnes
firom
bDjerakarami tra
6,000
' th e B u ddhist monk.75 It was because o fbro her the
v ther' s
mm i a
Total 44,300 u-y s ch oo 1 was spread among the people of her
,,; ngd om .
8. Bhikfus whose sects are not specifzed
Ba a v dhana was one of the most eminent kings of India. He
WI th.m a very
,.. r .
took th e
In Kashmir
. ':1111 In Rajmahal 5,000 throne afiter his brother Rajyavardhana
ht whole India under his . sway.anEdven th e k"mg of
. he b roug
. d h"IS
300 sbort urn_
e .
In Tamralipti Kiimar\ipa) in the east paid his homage to him an d. tne
Assam (
Ill
1 ,000
bes t to ollow an
In Andhra obey him. Indeed the age of Har Witnessed a
.
3,000 d to ' India beyond th e l"tmtts
'Il cons!dera
. ble d eve 1 o pment of a Greater o f
'!I Total 9,300 In dIa .
. bot h towar d s the islands of the southern seas and the eastern
. hb .
Ill
1 d" n culture was spreading in all the netg . ounng
coun tn es. n m
. - . accoun ts
.
Totals of above Both Hiuen-tsang and Bat:ta m th etr
!II
I d.
a.
'
coun t. ries o n I f
d SI de bY
76
Hinayana descn t Brahmanism and Jamism flouns h e
e at B u d dhism
Il
b
. the kingdom of Ha11avardhana.77 But
h
Sthavira . Jatmsm was pop1r
w Sammitiya 1 6,800
on : Vaisali
sid
, Put:t<;\ ravardhana and Sa atata.7 s rayaga and Vara
Il
Sarvastivadin 63,530 .
nasJ were great centres of Brahmamsm m the kmgdom of Haqa
dh ana. '19 Harsavardhana himself offered his worsh"Ip an d pa1 rl
5,900
Unnamed var
3,500
: Siva,
'
Il
Mahayana homa e to the three deities of the family ur,- an d Bu drlh , . a. In
the P!yaga assembly he officially worshipped Aditya an S1a, the
48,600
Ill, Both Hinayana and Mahayana
Monks whose sects are not specified 44,300
Brahmanical deities and always he tried his best to mamtain e
9,300
eclectic spirit of his public worship.80 But in the later part of his . hfe,
he showe d his keen interest in Hinayana Buddhism, . and, aterwars
Grand Total 1 ,91 ,300
in Mahayana Buddhism. He led the life o a devout Buddtst. In his
life the Buddhi st doctrines held the chief place. That IS hy he
II Kanat9 became a stronghold of Buddhism under the rule of
Ha11avardhana. It was a flourishing city with a number of large embraced the Buddhist prohibitions against the de trucon of
Buddhist monasteries and splendid buildings. Fa-hien saw only two animal life with the utmost strictures. His annual meetmg With the
Buddhist monks for religious discussion and ex miati?n, the erec
Buddhist monasteries at Kanauj, but in Hiuen-tsang's account there
are references to one hundred Buddhist monasteries.73 Hiuen-tsang tion of Buddhist monasteries and stiipas by himm his kigdom, the
also mentions that there were about 1 0,000 Buddhist monks at enshrinemen t of the tooth-relic of the Buddha under his personal
care in one of the monasteries in his capital, Kanat9, his eff?rts or
Kanauj in the age ofHacytvardhana. The facts stated above leave no the propagation of Mahayana Buddhism and his fn . dship tth
doubt that Buddhism prevailed under his patronage in his kingdom
although, in many places, it did not prosper at all. It declined
iun-tsang clearly prove that Buddhism as theprevil!n
,? relgwn
.
m differen
miserably. Havardhana's sister, Rajya.Sri also occupied an impor t parts of his empire, although m Kosambt, Sravasti and
Vaisali, it dec
tant place for her contribution to Buddhism. She was a follower of lined.
Hiuen-tsang 81 refers to the existence ofBuddhist monatenes . and
the Sammitiya school. Hiuen-tsang says, 'The king had a sister of the codition o
great intelligence who was distinguished for knowledge of the Kanat.U at the time
f other religions in different parts of the kingdom of
Sammitiya school doctrine; she was sitting behind the king, and as of his visit:
she heard the Master of the Law extolling the doctrine of the Great 1.
Vehicle, and exposing the extreme poverty of the Little school of Ku-lu-to or Kullu: There were in the country twenty Bud
doctrine, she was filled with joy, and could not cease her prai ses.""4 dhist monasteries. ... ofDeva-temples there were fifteen and
the professed non-Buddhists lived pell-mell. (Watters, I,
298; Beal, I, 1 77) .
1:1 1 '
1 1 "I I '. I
I 1 04 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in fndiq utJdhtSTTl n. . ng Maukharis, Har.javardhana and Maitrakas 105
I, , B
. v rz ...
She-to-tu-lu ( Satadru country) or Sirhlnd: I n and ab o u t th J{iao-shang-mi or Ko5ambi: There were more than ten
e onasteries . . . . Th re were more than fifty Deva
2. 14
capital were ten monasteries, but they were des ol ate . Buddhist m
te mples and the non-Buddhtsts were very numerous. (Wat
(Watters, I, 299;
Beal, I, 1 78) . Beal, I,
366; 235).
Sa-ta-ni-ssu-fa-lo (Sthanv'isvara} or ThaneSwara: Th er e we ters, I,
3. re Pi-sh o-ka (u
nidentified) : It had above twen ty Buddhist
three Buddhist monasteries . . . . There were also Deva. 1 00 15 monasteries . . . . There were above 50
Deva-temples and the
temples and the non-Buddhists were ver)" n u me rous. ( W
at
ters, I ,314;Beal, I, 1 884) . non-Bud dhists were very numerous. (Watters, I, 3 73;
Beal, I,
I, 201 ) .
existenc e. (Watters, II, 47;Beal, II, 4445).
tarians lived pell-mell. (Watters, I, 332;
Beal, 20. Chan-chu country ( Ghajipur district) : There were above ten
9. Kah-pi-_t ' a (Kapittha) or Sankasya: There were four Bb ud Buddhist establishm ents . . . . There were twenty Deva-temples,
dhist monasteries . . . . The Deva-temples were ten m
.
u er and the followers of the different non-Buddhist systems
and the non-B\lddhlsts, who lived pell-mell were SalVltes. dwelt pell-mell . (Watters, II, 59:
Beal, II, 61 ) .
21 .
Buddhts
(Watters, I , 333; Beal,
I, 202) . . Fei-she-hi or Vaisali: The Buddhist establishments of which
1 0. Ka-no-ku-she or Kanyakubja: There were 1 00
monasteries . . . . There were more than 00 Deva te
t
- m :
there were some hundreds, were, with the exception
three or four, dilapidated and deserted . . . . There were
of
and the non-Buddhists were thousands m number. ( some tens ofDeva-tem ples, the various sects lived
pell-mell,
ters, I, 340; 207) .
Beal, I,
Buddhis t m
an d the Digambaras flourished . (Watters,
1 1. A-ye-te or Ayodhya: There were above 1 00 c; 66) .
II, 63;
Beal, II,
teries . . . . There were ten Deva-temples, a d the ud noZS). 22. Fu-li-chih or the Vri
I,
j i country: There were few Buddhists and
dhists were few in number. (Watters, I, Beal, 35; the m onasteries were above ten in
1 2. A-ye-mu-k'a (Hayamukha) , i.e., Daundiakhera: Th e
e
;;ll some tens ofDeva-temples and
number . . .. There were
a
the non-Buddhists were very
five Budd his monasteries . . . and there were mor e n ume rous . (Watters, II,
23.
81;
Beal, II, 78) .
230) t Mo-kie-to or Magadha: There were above fifty Buddhist
Bu d dhis
Deva-temples. (Watters, I, 359; Beal, I,
Po-lo-ya-ka or Prayaga : There were only two
pieS
13. monasteies . . . . There were
some tens of Deva-temples, and
monasteries . . . There wer e som hundreds ofDeva- ts the adherents of the
: . . is various sec;:ts were very numerous (Wat
and the maJonty of the mhabttants were. non-Bu te rs, II, 86-87;
Beal, II, 82) .
(Watters, I, 361 ;
Beal, I, 230) .
1 06 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in Inctia Butf,dhis7TI [JtJ.ring Maukharis, Ha11avardhana and Maitrakas 107
24. 1-lan-na-po-fa-to or Monghyr: There were above ten Bud -kafavardhana (AD 583-605)
dhistmonasteries . . . . There were above twenty Deva-tem pl b
p rdhana {AD 605)
and the adherents of the various religions lived pel l-m hana (AD 606-48)
(Watters, II, 1 78; Beal, II, 1 86) .
e J-la rd
Ra.J}"l va
25. Chan-po (Campa) i.e., Bhagalpur: There were some te ns or
V. rdhanas of Thiin
e5warcf3
monasteries mostly in ruins. . . . (Watters, II, 1 6 1 ; Beal, II Pupab iiti-Remote ancestor ofHa, according
192) .
' ']7Jeru:rabhii or
to Bfu)a s Ha 11acanta.
26. Ka-chu-wen k'ilo (Kajangala) , i.e., Rajmahal: There were six
Naravardhana
or seven Buddhist monasteris . . . . The Deva-temples were ten ardhana
Ra 'yavardhana, son of Narav
in number and the various systems lived pell-mell. (Watters va rdhana, son of Rajyavardh ana
' A.Jicya
II, 1 83; Beal, II, 193) . bakara var dh ana
Prab
27. Pun-na-fa-tan-na or Pm:H;lravardhana: There were twenty
Rajyavardhana
Buddhist monasteries . . . the Deva-temples were 100 in
Harsavardhana
number, and the followers of the various sects lived pelJ.
mell; the Digambara Nirgranlhas being very nume rous. It is to be noted here that the Vardhana rulers up to Rajya
(Watters, II, 1 84; Bea1, II, 1 94) . ' vardhana ruled in Thandwara only. But Harvardhana transferred
28. San-mo-ta-cha or Samatata: It had more 30 Buddhist monas his capital from Thandwara to Kanauj after the murder of his sister
teries . . .. There were 1 00 Deva-temples, the various sects RijyaSri 's Maukhari husband Grahavarman.84
lived pell-mell, and the Digambara Nirgranthas were very
numerous. (Watters, II, 187; Beal, II, 199) .
29. Ta-mo-lih-ti or Tamralipti : OfDeva-temple there were more
than 50, and the non-Buddhists lived pell-mell. There were
REFERENCES
above ten Buddhist monasteries. (Watters, II, 1 90; Beal, II, 1Haha, 9.
I,
2Beal, I, 210-13.
200) .
'Ibid., I, 21 3; Grousset, 195.
'Ibid.
213. 'CA. 1 1 4.
Ki e-lo-na-su-fa-la-na or Karnasuvama
6Beal, I , 213.
. : There were more
'Beal,
30.
'FJ,I, N, Banskhera Plate of Harsa, I. 7.
8HAI, 309.
than ten Buddhist monasteries . . . ; there were 50 Deva 10HAI, 3 1 0.
temples, and the followers of the various religions were very 2
"Haa, 146, fn 1 .
"Ibid. 12SBCI, 3 . ''Ibid., Hwui Li, 82-83.
numerous. (Watters, II, 1 9 1 ; Beal, II, 201 ) . ''Ibid., "Beal, I , 21 3-14. 16Grousset, 196.
32.
"'HA l, 308.
Buddhists. Deva-temples were above 100 in number, an d of
!<Ibid., 287. "Harsa, 1 4 7.
Thus Hiuen-tsang 's above record show us that Buddhism, Brah "Ibd. ,
Sen, 308. 41Hwui Li, 186.
.,d . ,
1 86; HAl, 308. "Hwui Li, 1 86; HAl, 308.
..HAl, 308.
309; Hwui Li, 1 87.
manism and Jainism prospered in the kingdom of Harvardhana UI /, 308. ..HAl, 309; Hwui Li, 1 86.
during his reign.
.
48HWill L'I, 1 87 49Ibid.
"'liAI' 308
.
"SBCJ, "H I L'I , 1 85
52Sen , 1 74.
33.
GENEALOGY
M
"SBCI Ibid. "'Ibid., Sen, 1 71 ; Ha, 145.
"!_' I ,
' 33 57HAl, 31 2. '"SBCI, 33
,..
222.
The Vardhanas of Thiine5warr.f2
"'Ibid. 61Ibid.
"Ibid.
Adityavardhana ( c. AD 565)
Maukharis, Haavardhana and Maitrakas 1 09
]ndiq d,t)hts11'1
1 08 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism ln
. . During
[3u
a the
Mahdvar ,
illustrious Bhatarka-who was possessed
the (go red in a hundred battles fought with the large armies,
64Hwui Li, 183; HAl, 3 1 0; Haa, 1 45. '"Hwu i Li, 1 83.
d )
;t::ni [unequalled strength of the Maitrathe
'"Ibid., 1 60. 68Gro usset, 1 23-24
kas, who had by force
67Ibid.; Harsa, 1 45.
glot)' ac
.
""'be Buddha.
nH=ia, 1 25-27.
"'Watters, I: 1 62.
"Ibid., 1 47.
'11Ibid., 1 64.
'<Ibt'd ., 1 49; HWUi L'
1 1 '15. pos ed
sess their enemies; and who acqui red goddess of royalty
" Haa, 1 76. 76Ibid., 1 82. "HA/, 3 1 1 . 0
bOw h the s ength of tr the array of (his) hereditar y servants, who
s1 HKMC, 168-72.
76Ibid., 310. "'Ibid., 31 1 . aoIbid., 3 1 0.
througen brought under subjection by (his) splendour, and who had
straight
82Harsa,
. 65. MHKMC, 380-81 . b
had e uired by gifts and honourable treaunen t and
"'Ibid., 381 .
been acdnqess and were attache d (to h'1m) by auec cc . . . ."12 I t then
tlon.
THE MAITRAKAS
o
frnerW<lnn/ons that t(the he next ruler was Guhasena, who was the most devout
god) Mah esvara., 13
o hipper ofof king Gu?asena fValabhi14 is}mortan t or a study
Towars the end of the fifth century AD (AD 490) Bhatarka w he grant
. e
Buddh ism in Vala bht. J. Buhler state, It. giVes an mportant
the Mattraka clan of foreign origin, established himselfa;v:hi?f10 ofntri
1 .
schools (of the Hmayana) who have come from various directi_?ns
l8 '015. B J ad estination as the phrase 'riijasthii niyas uraya prasii-dik .rta'
to ys, "The object granted is Va!asth alikiipriiyiyaba h
This grant sa
ortglll
the great convent of Dudda built by the venerable Du dda
situate
d. . . m
order to procure food, clothing seats reme dIes and o
sb iimekutumbisiyii
maneragopakacchenda vakadas akiistray al_t ", "the
.
medI Cin . es for the siCk and so forth '-the following four viiiages-.
and mu gr; (aya) ( to be paid) by the Kaabi Syamaera, ilie herdsman
land which ar common (to all protracting them) , should consent to property granted to the monast ery was
grant
situate
was
d in the village
issued is, as usual
HariyaQ aka. The purpos e for which the
and protect th1s our grant; and he who takes it or allows it to be taken
with Buddhist grants, to provide for tile worship the Buddhas, for
26
of
ay sall obtain the punishments of the five (kinds of) evil acts, and, for
livmg m the three (kinds of) existences, shall be guilty of ilie five the lodging, boarding etc. of the inmatt:s of tile monastery and
mortal sms . as well as the minor sins. its repairs.27 Another two plates of Dharasena II dated ( Gupta)
(It has) lso (been declared) : what good man would resume
Satp.vat 270 (AD 590) were discovered.28 From them we learn that
Dharasena II was the donor of the grant. He granted the village
property whiCh <:>ut of fear of poverty kings have given for pious
purposes nd which resembles leavings and vomited ( food) ?
p k
ta ala a situated n ear Sudattabhatnaka in Suratra- "The grant
Is for the following tilree-fold purpose: ( 1 ) the worship of tlle image
Many kmgs as Sagara and others have enjoyed the earth. T o him ofilie Buddha; (2) tile hospitality ( clothing, food and medicine) of
possesses the earth belongs the fruit thereof. . . . "16
the revered Bhikkhus; and (3) the repairs of the monastery. "29 An
other n t of Guhasena of Samvat 268 (AD 588) was found .l' oilier grant of Dharasena II was found. 30 It informs us that the
In hne 2 there IS a reference to the illustrious king Guhasena who is
ntee was the "monastery called that of Sri Bappapada". The
called Paramopasaka, "Paramopasaka Maharajasri Guhasena ", "the
ardent devotee of the Buddha. "18 This shows that this ruler a ctually
ca Bhadanta Stiliramati constructed it in Valabhi. The purpose
or wh1ch the twovillagesweregranted is, as usual in tile case ofgrants
accepted Buddhism as his religion and was converted to it. Be cause ud dhist monasteries, to defray the cost of the worship of the
ilie first grant of Guhasena, mentioned above called himself Pa
ramamahdvara. This clearly indicates that he s a devout worship-
w:'!e Buddhas, of clothing, food, and medicine, for the reverend
V ag
The donee of this grant was the community of foreign m onks
and Devabhadripallika in the sthali of Dharakailia. Ac
.
belongmg to ilie 1 8 schools (of the Hinayana) and lived in .tbe copra
liathmg to scholars, Hastvapra or Hastakavapra was the modern
bhyantarika vihara which was built by the venerable Mllp.ma, wb0
b. Mahesvaradhasenaka was Mahadevapura which was situ-
ke the venerable Dudda, was a Buddhist nun. 19 The monastery was ated
sitaed close to the monastery ofBharka presented to the Rajas"
n: ilie south-west of Hathab. 52
:asenall was succeeded by his son Siladitya I who acquired the
,
tharuya Siira. This indicates tilat Bhatarka the founder o f tbe secon na
ds me Dharmaditya by the pursuit of wealth, happiness and
Maitraka dynasty of Valabhi, already shwed his great fai tll towar
. Mauknan:>, ...
7Tt [)1.l'f"lng
,.- - -
en
-
. ng ' s actsa
coun t we l
re his visit to Ind ia, was a
f rorn t{ u thron e about 60 year
s under
d n- th, e M
riches illumined by onformity with religion.!!< The Alin a cop a reg io n
;
J?late inscription of Siladitya VII of the year 447 (AD 76 7) re fe er e d t}l. .
e
t
ddhtst. -
m prospere
alw
se ems to h ave
Siladitya I as the devout W?rshipper of (the god) Mahe svara.s. 8 tu oecuPi I
B uddhis
l
Dh annadttya who
Bu aditya
K ng Sil , , ist ve ral .Buddh
A plate of a grant of Siladitya I alias Dharmaditya of (
deVout e of i established se
Gu ona_? in gteux . H e me nts .
41
i reb tablish
:ed with _Aso
e patr h s Buddhist es
thaf) ka
t
:
:
Satpvat 286(AD 606-7) was found i n Vala.35 From it we learn
an d offe red gifts ritori ous deeds he assme
fllonast n r th e pe rform
es h1S
ry i:
a. I t
beneficiary was the Buddhist monastery situated in VatpSakat e o
e a n c and estabhshe .
very probable that the property granted to the m onaste w lar e te mple
situated in th Kalapaka-paaka. But nothing much is known froas
:
probably,
de o
ha .
nnadi tya He _
er c
a m tt.
l
i Kin Si aditya
was in th hb1 t
were mVlte d
the grant about Buddhism in Valabhi. B_ecause the description of rn
dh
asse mblY '1n wh
o
th
Ul" e
seven tUl .
a ge S Of th e B
an nually a
ud
re rtg ' to US
d the king pre
ich
se nte d them th
e
grant is lost- Two plates of the grant ofSiHiditya (alias Dhannad itya
) of r a r an
g
1 g es from all q u art
rs
. ous asse mbly
Siladity a us e d to
ofSatpvat 290 (AD 61 0) was found.36 "This is a Buddhistgrant an d
the lllon kS
a v
the r aluab
les. I n th1S r ;gt r n ts and g old pie ce to
(alias ; m
ga m e
beneficiary is the monastery built by the grantor King Siladitya a re cious and rare rtl
a ce
robes l_l e r of the d o ctr
Dharmaditya) himself, in the Svatala of VatpSakata. . . . The property e \a VISh d p so care l an obs rve
onks and
g iv H w as es, an
sage s.42 ors
granted to the vihara consisted of 2 villages, one of which n amed t}le ii to su pply stram ed wa
ter t his
.
ele phan ts and h
tru cted te mporary res
.
of aht1
(!5
Vyaghradinnanaka was situated in the Saraka (or Aksaraka) dis- as
an an t. H co
ns ,
:,'I: . trict. The name of other village as well as the district in which it was hintscelf n eve
killed even
nde st sea1e a d
mad e pious gtfts.
Ue d Briih ma
,
den es : ;J :
gr a
:i':
d th e ap ura
la est an
.
eluded is illegible . . . " This gran t gives us infom1ation that king JU om siladitya 1 was a small to
: ::
feate d in
ad been de
Siladitya I himself built a Buddhist IJ10nastery near his palace. From :s:O:
::;:;
it we draw a conclusion that King Siladitya I like Guhasena in l ter
n
Iso c
e a u s e a pr _o ud . Briih
c
te log i ian a nd w ell .-ve rse
life embraced Buddhism and played a prominent role for its progress
a eb : :J!
a e 1,- ks B odh
truc t, a co
d hi st Sastras, w ent
. , pit in thts day.
B
. r ' Sun of Mo ral-
in his kingdom.
The Bhadreniyaka Grant of Siladitya I of Gupta era 292 (AD 610- ral Maitraka
rul ers b o r e the e
r
patr ons o Bu dd
.h i sm According
to sev e.ral
. ' d the
gre at itra ka kmg
King y we re the Ma
6 612 .45
unt was
1 1 ) was found.38 The inscription refers itself to the reign of
Siladitya I who was the son of the illustrious Dharasena, who was the hrs, s
.
thi Si adi l tya
tya
of th e aboe
alab h1,; rul ed from AD
to
. a 1tya 1 Dha
S1J_d.
I
rm adi
-
ofV
the t 'Dharma 1 a' ' the
- d'ty
Sun of Righte ots-
STd ' tya B uddhtst
son of the illustrious Guhasena, all ofwhom are mentioned as devout bor e the ept the
I a 'I n t to
refers to a gra
worshipper of Siva. 39 The gran t was issued from the victorious camp
ness . One of his ins crip tion
at Devisaras. According to this grant, two hundred pi.idiivarltasof land ger br?tller of
r aka.
'
46
monaste y of Varp.s
in the village of Bhadreniyaka in the Bara Vanasthali were given for graha 1 who
was the youn
ara er of
er s Kh vo worsh tpp
II.
nex t rul wa
the worship ofthe Sunod established in the village. Out of these two
The ut
I
Siladi tya Dharmadi
ty a. The fo rm er was the de
ase na
by his son Dhar
hundred piirfiv i arttas one hundred lay to the east of the arable land (the g od) Mahes-vara.47 H e
was succee d e d
a I 1 ' w ho was h ts
H
uva sen .
He was a devote e of the Lor
received as a gift and owned by the BrahmaJ.la Prabhandata, to the ? Siva 48 D hr r h
ou t wo s ip
a the most dev
n
49 5
by h'IS
ries are not specified, but it was a piece of land (lava) at the same being the
f ma nk in tha
pervaded by the afie ctton labht
. of Va
II
village originally set apart for the purpose of charity (bha kaka) an rising.
d ruvabhata
m
..n.i.stn /)IJ.
rt.ng Mauk
suaw - .
1 14 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in I'tldiQ
gupta. I t says
the ud dhist monastery of Vnuala
a ran t t o B ucted by e
fer s togn e fi a was the Budd village Kukkuaka. It was sttu
hist mo naster y con str
community of the reverend Bhikkhus dwelling in the mon ast
bllilt
.
t theBhiku t. Jrynalagu pta of thecarya Bhiksu Sthiramati. It seems
a
.
en Du - . Another grant of
inclu d vat 356 (AD 676) was discov
ered.65 It was
he was "an Eternal Warrior" (Dhruvabhata) ' yet he was a devout Ill Gupta Sam
.
. . S't-d 'tya
l a 1 by d'tya Ill and the grantee was the B e Ku
0 f u ddh tst mo
' nastery
. deeply giVen
Budd hist; to the tri-ratna; he convoked a great asse mbt
isS b u e d ST kku raQaka
annually and, for seven days entertained monks from all over th :: X cary aB hiksuVimalagupta ofth
erectedouytskirts of the Ddda vihara in Valabhi. A villagearacal
evi llag
led
ountry and. bestowed on the foo o the best description , choice t. n the
of Sutra was granted o the
h- . Th e
sa in the province
and clothes, with vaneties of medicaments and other ka
V1
Ka
Jewels, beddmg rsh 1p of the Bud dha s,
t was to provide for the wo
things of different kinds.55 Purpose 0f the gran ary expenses of the mmates ofthe monastery.
h: ext ruler was Dharasen IV (AD 645-49) , whowas Dhruvasena t the 6?) :Va!
ditya Ill of the year 347 (AD_
nec ess
ditya.s son He had the titles of Paramabhatraka, Mahaa
: j
ane :r plates ofvillSila age in the Bh avanagar sta te of war.!lu
hmy, paramesvara and Cakravarti.5Q He was the most devout discovered atjesar, a gra nt by the km g h1msef,
is to recored the
worshipper of (the god) Mahesvara. Thesubjectofthese plates of ukkapadra m
The Alina c pperplate inscripon of Silad_itya Vll of the year 447 of one hundred piid
iivarttas of land in the illage h two names
Wit
(AD 767) says: of the son of the Illustrious Siladitya I who was th e the pathaka of rKalapawh ka of Suratra to a rahmaQa
abh_t. The land
elder) brother of,his. father's father (Kharagraha I) and who was as
Val
Sa gala and P akasa o was an inhabitan t of
the largest
It were the (god) Samgapai:li of the illustrious Derabhata-the son nted consisted of threpii4 e pieces of which the fut was
of th e sec >n d
was the most devout worshipper of (the god) Mahdvara,' the illustri measuring seventy-three iivarttas. The boundanes . d piece
of land and the thir
ous Dhruvasena III. "57 The grant ofDhruvasena III was found. 58 It was piece consisted of twelve piitf,iivarttas . The Jesar plates of
isse by kig Dhruvasena III. He assumed no royal titles. Only the consisted offtfteen piiii4 vartta measures of land
Sil:iditya III ofScup.vat '357 (AD 677 ) was foun d
n the villge oJ sar
rehg1ous epithet 'Parama Mahdvara' was used before his name. The;
in the Bhavanagar state ofKa thiiwar .67 "Th
e obJect of the m cnption
beneficiary was the Buddhist monastery which was built by Dudda in m over
the svatala of Valabhi. For the maintenance of the inmates of the is to record the gran t of: (i) a reservoir of water e:ctend land m e
twenty-five pii4iivarttas of land from the r? yal d :' mam
monastery a village named Raksaka included in the Kasahrada was to a B_:.ah nun
granted.59 Medasarasthali in the village of Madasara m Suratra
sne
ho was a Diksita and was the son of Simbadatta of the VaJa
The next ruler was Kharagraha II who was Dhruvasena III's elder who had emi
brother.00 The Alina copperplate inscription of Siladitya Vll of the &ikha of the Yajurveda and of the Kausika gotra and
d and four
year 447 (AD . 767) says, "His elder brother was the most devout t:d from Pua5ambapura and ( ii) ne hundre
nd ry
worsipper of (the od) MaheSvara, the illustrious Kharagraha Il, Pfl4avarttas ofland, in five pieces, situaJed mtlle nothem .bo
(ofthe village) . ... - Another grant ofSilditya III grve s us mdt cauo n
who m a very dear and suitable manner, had the second name of
Drmaditya. He did his worship to the gods and Brahmas and about the existence ofVaisnavism and Saiv
Th e next ruler was Sildity a IV.'0 He assu med the title
ism at Vala bhi.oo
s of
sptrytual preceptors. 1061 He was the
P Paramdvara.
Siladitya II ascendd the throne after !lliaragraha II Dharmaditya aramabha!raka, Maharajadhiraja and .
devot worshipper of (the god) Mah dvara. He was suc eeda d by hts
The nxt ruler was hts son the glorious Siliiditya III. e was a devout
son SiHidityadeva v, who was the most devout worshipper of (the
worshtpper of (the god) Mahesvara.62 A grant of Siladitya III of
(Gupta) Saqtvat 343 (AD 663) was found in Wala (Kathiawar) .li) It
116 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India
. J)urtng Maukhari
. s' Harsavardhana and Maitrakas 117
JJutJdh.tstTI
god) Mahdvara. 71 He had the titles aramabhat!fuaka, Mahar men t of D hruvabhata, the son-in-law of
e govern
dhiriij a and Paramesvara. His son was Siladitya VI, who was the rn 9a.. under th
a:
amou nt sovereign of Northern India. "82 Valabhi
devout worshipper of (the god) Mahe5vara.72 He assumed the tist dhana, par
J-lvar ded as one of the most famous centres of Buddhist learning
of Paramabhattaraka, Maharaja<!hiriij a and Paramesvara. S s gar . AD. From H'men-tsang,
was re
0asn. c 1.wce in the 7th
i! and 8th centunes
dityadva VII succeeded hs father Siladitya 1.'3 He was votee and rno d ther epigraphic records we learn that Valabh1 occupied .
0; an
1-tsing
_
( the modem Khe<;fa or Kaira) .75 For the purpose of increasing the re anation VIZ., the unwarhke character of the peopIe an d
a third expl
ligious merit, the village named Mahilabali with the Udranga and the rs wh ich must have resulted . spread of the
from the w1de
ve the rule
Uparikara and with the revenue of the Bhuta and Vata _to the Bha!a ; dhistic principles, chiefly the principle of ahif!lsii ofwhich Gujarat
AkhaJ_l<;falamitra, the son of the Bhatta Vir:tu who an inhabitant
is"even now the stronghold. Gujarat appears to h_ave imbibed this
of the town ofAnandapura was granted by the king. Siladitya Vll also pri nciple during the rule of many kings including Siladitya of Mo-la-
played an important role for the development of Buddhism in his p'o descri bed by Hiuen-tsang. "83
kingdom. He for the foundation of a library and for the ceremonies ,
Princess Dudda, the daughter of Dhruvasena I s s1ster, con
of the Buddha worship gave grants.75
pura in Wala state of Katbiawar. "80 He also gives an accou nt of imP?rtant scholars who had received higher education in the Uni
Valabhi which occupied an important place in the history of ud ;ersty of Valabhi are known to us; they were Jayasena, a native of
dhism as an important centre of Buddhist studies. He desc nbes li"p<t. Gu r:tamati and Sthiramati; all these scholars subsequently
further: "In his time Nalanda in South Bihar and Valabhi were the ved_ m or around the Nalanda Mahavihara, Hwui-Li says that "the
two places in India which deserved comparison with the m ost famous d na t sys
0 !em studied Valabhi was that of the Sammitiya sch?ol
centres of learning in China and were frequented by crowds of eager at 1?ayana. From 1-tsmg's account we gather that Valabhi hke
students, .who commonly devoted two or three years to atten dance
at N a a
IIDparted higher education on secular subjects also. These
.tb
lectures on Buddhist philosophy. "81 From the above facts V .A. Sm l g We e
:
rn e two academics in India where eminent and accomplished
concludes: "This statement explains the assertion of Hiuen-rs:;o n assembled in
tri crowds, discussed possible and impossible doc
that Mo-la-p' o or western Malava ( Malwa) and Magadha were th nd n and
countries oflndia in whiCh learning was prized, because Valabin8
:r;;.
Opi after having been assured of the excellence of their
by wise men, became famous in India . . . . To try the sharp-
ness
Mo-la-p'owere then politically one, both territories apparendY eir w. n, they proceed to the king's court to lay down before
[[II[
118 The Rise and Declim of Buddhism in 1 1 19
.. . g Mau
m vn..rzn
kharis' Harsavardhana and Maitrakas
it the sharp weapon oftheir abilities; there they present th eir sch
and show their political talent, seeking to be appointed in elllt . wh0 rec
eived appointments in royal courts and govern-
hical evidence we learn that the Valabhi
practical government. On being proved successful, they were the
econollltsts olll epi grap
i Fr(llain tained a li. brary which
!lle ts - .ty
,89
was manced by the roya1
vanced to high rank and could follow whatever profession th ey likad. Vntvers Th ns of V alabhi also contributed largely to the
Their famous names were written in white on their lofty gates. we1albthhi UniVce'tize
sity for the advancement of learning. The Kathii-
arne
account would indicate that these two Universities turned out ts Va a a al so refers to th e great acad ernie c. of
saritJag': 1 i s known that even the Brahmar:t
f So madev
only Buddhist Doctors, but also statesman, administrators,
_
a s of Gangetic plain
Vusalabrhot . en d their sons to Valabhi for higher studies.
ed s
'
The Maitraka Dynasty of Valabht"
REFERENCES
Bhatarka
629: "Th _original nd more_ authentic form of the name is
EHI, 332; pHAJ,
zed spelhng. . -Ib1d., 332, fn 2.
Dharasena l Drmpsirp.ha Dhruvasena I Dharapatta Bhata kka Bhatar
ka is a
s
Sansknu
Ell!, 332.
I EHI, 332; PHAI. 629.
4Ib'd I .
pHAl, 629.
Senapati Maharaja 6 Ibid. 'Ibid.
"Ibid., 629-30, fn 4. H. C. Raychaudhuri says: "Dharasena II, king ofValabhi , left
Guhasena
I lWO sons, viz.,Siladitya andKhara g;.ili a I. The accountofHiuen-tsang seems to suggest
Dharasena II that in his time (i.e. shortly after Siladitya) the Maitraka dominions split up into two
parts, one part including Mo-la-p' o and its dependencies probably obeying the line of
Siladitya-Dharmaditya, the other part, includingValabhi, obeying Kharagraha and his
Siladitya I
sons, one of whom Dhruvasena II, Baladitya or Dhruvabha. who married the
Kharagraha daughter of Hara of Kanauj. The acount of the Chinese pilgrim seems to receive
Dharmaditya I confirmation from the Alina plate ofSiladitya VII (Fleet, aJ, 17lf, esp. 1 82 n) which
I I I associates Derabha. the son of Siladitya I Dharmaditya, with the region of the Sahya
Devabhata Dharasena III Dhrunsena II and Vi ndhya mountains. While the descendants of Kharagraha I are connected with
.
Baladitva Valabhl. The Navalakhi and Nogawa plates, however, suggest that occasionally the
I same ruler governed both Malavaka and Valabhi. In the latter half of the seventh
II
century AD the line ofKharagraha I became extinct, and the Maitraka dominions were
Dharasena N once more united . . . "
"EHI, 630. 9JBBRASNS, I, 1925, 24. '"Ibid., 1 6.
Siladitya Kharagraha II Dhruvasena III " aT, III, 180. "Ibid., 1 80-8 1 .
"lA, IV, 1875, 174 ff.
101bid.
I
"Ibid., 1 74.
"lA, V, 1876, 206.
Dharmaditya 16Ibid., 1 75-76.
aibid. 19Ibid.
Siladi tya II
"'Ibid.
" aJ, III, 181.
2'Ibid. 22Ibid., 217.
I
M'JBBRASNS' I' 1925' 2 1 .
;
25Ibid.
"Ibid.
llllibid., 66.
Sitaditya III
bid.
"''bid.
IA, VI, 1 877, 9.
I
"Ibid., 1 0.
"'b'd
" I .
"aJ, III, 1 81 . "Ibid.
BRASNS, 1, 1 925, 26. 56Ibi
Siladityadeva IV l;, d., 31-32. "Ibid., 32.
I '"Ib:
XX1, 1931-32, I l 6- 1 7. '"Ibid., XXI, l l 6.
1 l 7. 41DBCI, 72. 42Ibid.
Siladityadeva V "Ib
I " II:l;
44Watters, II, 242. .,SBCI, 41 , 72.
EJ, XIX-XXIII, 3, 221; JBBRASNS, I, 33 ff.
Ib
" d
Siladityadeva VI 1 8 1.
48Ibid., 1 82. 49Ibid., 1 62.
I
'"Ibid . 1
"Ibid. ,
82 51/A, VI, 1 877, 12. 52Ibid., 1 3.
Siladityadeva VII "AIJNJ, 3; HCIP, III, 1 03.
1 20 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism zn l
630; CI[, 1 11
l S3.
"SBCI, 72-73; Hwui-U, I 45-50.
51CI[, Ill, 1 8 3-84.
"'PHAI,
58JBBRASNS, I, 35 . 59Ibid., 35.
119J:bid., 1 37-38. 9"lbid., 1 38; KSS, XXXII, 42-43. : tes: "That province included
in the pst, within its own boundaries
_
in the , portions of North Bengal, VIZ., part (1f not whole) of the
west
with the river Karatoya
Kooch-Bihar state and of the Rangpur district,
boundary . Some portions of China and the Himalayan
as the weste rn
reg ions also formed its northern section and a portion of East Bengal
was include d in it towards the south-west. "2 The Rii miiya1Ja, the
Mahiibhlirata, the Harivaf!Saand the Vi1JuPurii1Ja describe Pcigjyoti
as a town.' They do not say that it was a country. Kalidasa in his
H
:_ e Was a very powerful ruler and had a very strong army.13
avarman was his son. He occupied the throne after him.14 He
en succeeded by Gar:tapati who was very virtuous and was
kn
ca::.Wn for his large charities.15 His son was Mahendravarman who
e to the t
hrone after him. He was a great patron of sacrificial
..r--vhem India after
tn. 1vu
1 23
1 22 .
The Rise and Decline of Buddhism ln [114ia Haa
performances Yajiiavidhiiniim-iispada'o/.16 He performed tw would n<;>.t tae a refusal. Afte.r a shor stay at the
cholar, and
sarifiIces. n Hts son was Nariiyal)avarman who succeeded his Oa h01"Se
ffith er a 0o ed
captal 0
Kamariipa, Ha iladttya, the Kana
n-tsa ng shou ld
uJ sovere1g , sent a
be sent to him. The
Hts son was Mahabhiitavarman.19 He captured the throne t h. man ding that Hme
: er is
:
essage
e migh t take his head if he could, but should
va that Har
father. Candramukhavarman who was a son of Mahabhu -
(or Bhiitivarman) took the throne of Kamariipa 20 He possess d klDg r . Ch in ese visitor. However, when
Ha sent a peremptory
good knowledge of vanous arts whtch enabled him to dt. spel tha
to send back his
e
ge t
to e effe ct that he woul
d trouble the king
not
e
. .
ism in the .
kingd om ofKa maru pa. 33 But some people
established an mtlmate friendship with Harsa. Hiuen-tsang re ters c to Buddh
Bh-as karavarman as a Briihmal)a by caste. Most probably he was a
honour and respect from him. He always gave due respect to them.l8 mon astery in the land, and whatever Buddhists there were in it
He was a descndant to the Vail)ava family (Vail)ava-va1[tSa) and a performed their acts of devo tion secretly. "35
do worshiper of MaheSva.ra. 29 He and his people were follower Salasta mba overt hrew the line of Puyavarman or the Varman
ruled in the latter
of SalVlsm. and It came th s.tate rligion under his patronage.30 It dynasty soon after Bhaskaravarman 's reign and
part of the seven th centu ry AD. 35 His son Vijaya succeeded him."
played a VItal role m the rehgwus history of Kamariipa. R.G. Basal: succe ssion.38 Then
Then Palaka, Kumara and Vajradatta ruled
in
says, "Bhaskaravarman is described in the Nidhanpur grant as being after Vajra datta or
Haravarman became king of Kama riipa
rea ted by the creator for the purpose of re-establishing the institu n was an accom plishe d and pious adminis
tlon of castes and orders, ich had for a long time past become Vajradeva. 39 Harvanna
trator, who ruled over his people without oppression becau se he
conused .. He propagated, 1t IS told there, the light of Aryyadharma warrio r and he
regarded them as his own sons.40 He was a great
by d:spellmg the darkness of the Kali age, by a proper expenditllre
conquere d some other countries in eastern lndia.41 H.C. Ray says that
ofhts reve ue o good works of public utility. He caused tl1e deep
loyal o/ of his subJ.ects to be heightened, on account of his power of ". . . Sri Haria, the last prince in the line, according to the Tejpur
keepmg order, display of modesty and cultivation of close acquain plate ofVanamala, is probably the same as Harvarman of the stray
(>te of Harjara."42 The Tejpur plate menti ons that it began th
tance with them. His gifts were bounteous, and he could be com
and salastambha and ended with Sri-Haria. Kielhom identifies Sri
pared with Sibi for offering succour to the needy by self-sacrifice, Hria wiili GauQ-0Qr3.di-Kalirl ga-Kosalapati-Sri-Hardeva of the
m the tter of timely application of the six political expedients he
Pasupati inscription of the Nepal Licchavi King Jayadeva Para
as skilful as Brhaspati himself. His prowess, perseverence and
pnde were well-known. Free from the usual vices o f kings, cakrakama.43
of
Bhaskavannan was always given to performing virtuous deeds. Be SalThe dynasty of Pralambha ruled in Kamariipa after tlte lineThe
astambha.41 The first ruler of this dynasty was Pralambha.
was an tdel monarch of the seventh century in eastern India.
From Hmen-tsang's account w e learn about his visit to tlte kwgr
:t ruler was Harjara, tlte son and successor of Pralbha : Fro
dom of Kamariipa. V.A. Smith describes: "When he was staying o
f H '! pp
ezpur Rock inscription of AD 829 we learn that Hai]ara hved m
esvara-pura. 45 He was a Parama Mahesvara. He was suc-
tlte second time at the Nai da onastery, early in AD 643, ?e earti
eded by his son
his will, to pay a visit to tlte king re Vanamala' who ruled for 19 years. His seal and
mscOp
cmpe ed, muc amst .
father he was a devotee ofStva.46 The
tio
n show us that like his '
( c. AD 925) . The last ruler was Tyagasif!lha ( c. AD 1 000) . porU 0 n the west.58 When Vaidyadeva conquered K.amariipa, he
the
e Pa 0 was succeeded by his brother
as feudatory of the Palas. He
Yllas ty
probable that these o rulers like other members of this d ry caJlle a
be .
were worshippers of Siva.
d dhadeva
Bu h e Assam Plates ofVallabhadeva of the 1 2th century AD
gives the
The rulers, who came to power in Kamariipa after th e dynas
_
Pralambha, were the , Palas of K.amariipa. H.C. Ray states, "As tyJ:r T
genealo
gy of a prince nam ed Vallabhad eva.60
naes of the next group of princes who ruled in the Assam val! e
umformly end in Pala, it is convenient to designate them as the p-t" In the Charul
rava1[l5a
of K.amariipa. The transition of the royal power from Pral amb Bhaskara
success rs to this new group is mentioned in the Bargaon gran t
Ratna f:>ala. Wc:_ are told that when Tgasif!lha, the twenty-fir t
soere1gn o K.amariip, counting from Siilastamba, departed from
Nwa Rayirideva Trailokyasif!lha Vasumati?
th s w?rl Without leaVIng any ofh1s . race to succeed him,
his subjects
thm ng 1t well at a Bhauma (i.e., one of Naraka's race) should be
NiJ:!Saitkasif!lha Ahiavadevi
appomted as therr lord, chose Brahmapala, a kinsman of the desceased Udayakarl)a
ruler, on account of his fitness to undertake the governmen t of th
country. "48 Brahmapala was the founder of this new dynasty. He was
e I
known as Maharajadhiraja. His son Ratnapala succeeded him. He Vallabhadeva Sri Vallabha
had the titles-'Paramesvara-Paramabhat:iiraka-Maharajadhiraja.'l9
The Bargaon gt of the reign ofRatnapala opens in praise of Siva's Vallabhadeva in AD 1 1 84 or 1 1 85 established an alms house near
Tal)c,lava dance, Sankari and Lauhitya-Sindhu.!IO This grant as well as
in the
a temple of the god Mahadeva to the east of Kirtipura
the Sualkuci grant record the gifts oflands to some Briihmanas.51 His Hapyacha Mal)c,lala, and gave the revenue s of certain villages and
inscriptions give us indication that he was a worshipper of Siva. His hamlets as endowments.61 He did it at his father's command and for
son was Purandarapala who probably died before his father. The his mother's spiritual welfare. But the rulers had no imperial titles
nex,t rulerwas Indrapala. His Gauhati plates open with an invocation which gives us indication that they did not occupy a promine nt
<to Sambhu.52 His successor was Jayapala who was succeeded by position in the political history of K.amariipa.
Gopla. The next ruler was Ha11amala (or Ha11apala) . The last ruler The Ahoms, who belonged to the Shan tribe, migrated into Assam
of th1s dynasty was Dharmapala. in the 13th century. It is known from their Buranjis that a section of
The Kamauli grant of Vaidyadeva informs us that a line of kings the great Shan tribe left Maulung in the Upper Irrawaddy valley in
ruled in the valley. 53 It was issued by Vaidyadeva in his 4th regnal year AD 1215 and founded a small principality near the Dikhovalley. They
and recors the grant of two villages with a revenue of 400 to the became very powerful and extended their power not only over the
Brahman Sridhara. It refers to Vaidyadeva as minister of the Pala Brahmaputra valley but also up to Dhubri. In course of time they
kings of Bengal. 54 Kumarapala of the Pala dynasty of Bengal and becam e the rulers of the country. The Muhammedans invaded the
Magadha treated him with great honour. But when he heard Brahmaputra valley on several occasions but they were unable to
Tingyadeva's disaffection, he at once appointed Vaidyadeva as a
conquer the Ahom rulers, who founded a dynasty which ruled there
for several centuries until the arrival of the British in AD 1 825.
ruler in his place.55 The latter with his brother Buddhadeva attacked
the former and defeated him and killed him. Vaidya deva then . Two copperplate grants of a line of kings were found in Bhatera
occupied the throne. It is known that some of the Pala kings included f:.Sylhet.62 They give us the following genealogy of KeSavadeva and
sanadeva who were the donors of these grants:65
this kingdom in their dominions. Vaidyadeva, a minister, was ap
pointed by Ku apala of e Pala dynasty, in the 1 2th c en tury f In the LunarF
as ruler of th1s ngdo w1th royal powers.56 The Kamau li gran t
araval)a
amily
st of (alias Navagirvfu,la?)-founder of the kingdom of
Va1dyadeva ment10ns Tingyadeva as a prince who ruled in the ea
Snhana
,
1 26 1M Rise arul Decline ofBuddhism in l . 1"'orl hern
127
'l'ldia tn India after Haa
]Jutid)Usrn
V'
Samudravarman Ratnapala
I Purendarapala-Durlabha
Balavarman Indrapala
I Jayapala
Kalyal)avarman Gopala
I Harsamala or Harapala
Gal)apati Dhaapala
I
Mahendravarman 5. Tiilgyadeva (c. AD 1 000) 68
I
NarayaQavarman 6. Li ne of Bodhidevd"
I
Mahabhiitavarman-Bhiitivannan Bodhideva (Minister of Ramapala of the Pilla
I dynasty of Bengal and Bihar,
Candramukhavarman c. AD 1 084-1 1 26) -Pratapadevi
I
Sthitavarman I
I Vaidyadeva Buddhadeva ?
Susthi tavarman-mrganka
7. The Dynasty of Bhiiskara ( c. AD 1 1 50-1206)70
Bhaskara
Suprati!}litavarman Bhaskaravarman Rayarideva-Trailokyasiq1ha-Vasumati ?
Udayakarna-Nihasankasimha -Ahiadevi
2. iilastamhha and his Success(ffs ( c. AD 650-800) 6.5
Vallabhadva-Sri Vallabh
satastambha
8. The Dy nasty of Kharavii1Ja11
Vyaya
Pataka Kharavana alias Navagirvana ?
Gokuladva (Golhana)
Kumara
Narayal)a
Voyradatta or Vajradeva
Havarman or Sri-HariSa
Savadeva alias Riiparaja Gopi Govinda
Isanadeva
II ' I !' I I
ang
I HNFJ, 263 %id. him the residents ofKashmir-Gandhara came with
'Ibid., CJI, II, 20-2 1 . were f:ann tng
'Ibid.
6EHJ, 383; HGAJ, 227 .
th ey. offen. ngs for the Nagas, but they offered the same to MaJJ"han-
4lbid.
'HGAJ, 226; KP, ch . 38. 8HNFJ, 264. 9lbid., 265 . thell' o th n delivered to them a discourse on aszvt a (venom of a
10lbid. "Ibid. 12lbid.
tika wh conv erted them to Buddhism. From that day up to the
15Jbid., 267.
pen t an
se r e of )composition of the Mahava1[1Sa, i.e., the 5th century AD, the
14Jbid. "Ibid.
tliJl
16lbid. ''Ibid., 268. 18lbid.
20Ibid., 270. that Kashmir-Gandhara contmue d to be ill umme
d by
author says
19lbid. 21Ibid.
241bid., 272. the activities of the Sarvastivadins, Kashmir
U w ro bes. . . . Through
221bid. 25lbid.
25Ibid. 26lbid., 275. 271bid., 278; EHI, 384. ye o ofBuddhistphilosophicalstudtes
.
.. . . The Kashmman
. .
'lllSBCI, 37; HGAJ, 227; BCAJ, 199; Watters, II, 1 86. becamea centre '
'19HNFJ, 287. "'Ibid., 292. "Ibid., 292-93. his. tory shows thatAsoka built temples both for and Bud?ha a d
. two faiths Buddhism and SalVlsm flounshed m
"'EHI, 383. "SBCI, 37. ,.HGAJ, 227; HK, 304. si nee hts retgn , the .
persons as
"SBCJ, 37. ""HNFJ, 295; DHNJ, I, 238-39. sh
mtr st
' de by side , and even claimed at times the same
Ka th
.
of Bud
"HNFJ, 295. "'Ibid. "'Ibid. their devo tees . . . . The only rule imp ? rtant for : ht tory
..Ibid. "Ibid.
DHNJ, I, 24 1 ; IHQ; December, 1 927, 841 , fn
h' m betw een the reigns of Puyamttra and Kamka ts at of the
I.
.,DHNJ, I , 24 1 ; IA, IX, 1 '79, I. 1 5 ; ]RAS, 1898, 384-85.
r:ek king Menander. The Milindapaiiha is particularly tmportant
44DHNJ , 241. ..Ibid., 243. *Ibid., 245. for the history ofBuddhism of.hmir on ac:ountofe ac that the
"Ibid., 246. 48lbid., 248. 49lbid., 249. seene Of discussions between Milmda and Nagasena ts latd m a-spot
12 tljanasfrom Kashmirand 200ytljanasfromAlasanda or Kalastgama.
"'Ibid. , 252. "Ibid., 252-53. ..Ibid., 254.
"Ibid., 256; FJ, II, 347-58. ,.Ibid., 257. As egards King Milirtda, the work says that he at fi rst b : came a lay
'"Ibid. "'EHI, 384. "DHNI, I, 257. devotee built the Milirtda vihara and then after some time handed
'"Ibid. "'Ibid., HA, 35. 60DHNJ, 259. over th reins of his administration to his son, joirted the Buddhist
..Ibid., 267.
6'Ibid. 6'Ibid.
Sa7[!gha asamonk, and ultimatelyattairted arhat-hood.: . . The u1,1as
64HNFJ, 274-75; DHNI, I, 237. 65DHNJ, I, 268.
66DHNJ, I, 268. 67Ibid., I, 268-69. 68lbid., I, 268-69.
adopted Buddhism as their religion and showed thetr mumficence
"'Ibid., I, 268-69. 71DHNJ, I, 268-69.
by erecting stupas, temples and images ofB_uddh all over northern
"'Ibid., I, 268-69.
India. . . . Since the demise ofASoka, Buddhtsm Wt thsto()d several re
J?ercussions and survived in north-west I ? dia by th pan:onage of the
2. KASHMIR
Saka-Yavanas and the Kusanas. In the retgn ofKamka, tt once more
Kashmir was included in the Maurya empire in the time ofAsoka, and
came to the forefront f indian religions and recovered its lost
glory. . . . The reign of Kanika is of outstanding importance for the
again in the Ku1,1a dominion in the days of Kanika.1 Ha did not history of Buddhism in northern India. It is marked by donations .
annex Kashmir but he forcibly captured the tooth relic of the from
several lay-devotees and monks to the Buddhist Sa1[lgha : Of
Buddha from the king of Kashmir and brought it to Kanauj.2 N. Dutt the successors of Kaniska, we come across the names of only Vastka
:.:;
gives an account of the irttroduction of Buddhism in Kashmir. e d
an Huvika in the everal inscriptions relating to this period.
says, "Moggaliputta Tissa, the religious adviser of Asoka, sen t nus Kalha1,1a mentions the names of three successors Huka, Juka and
sionaries to different countries. Majjhantika was depute d to Kaf Kanika. . . . Kalhana informs us that Huka, Juka and Kanika(II)
shmir-Gandhara. About the time of his arrival there Aravala, king 0 built Hukapura (modern skur) ,Jukapura (modern Zukur) and
U
the Nagas, was destroying the ripe corns of the country by hail-storm Kanik:apura (modern Kanepur) , and that these kings, though
Majjhantika, on account of his miraculous powers, stood o
e
: belonging to the Turuka race, were given to acts of piet . They
y
surface of the Aravala lake unaffected by rain and storm. At thts erected ma!has and caityas at Sukaletra and other places, and the
Naga king grew furious and sent forth storm and lighte nings, an Buddhists of'that
d Were pre
_ time acquired great renown as pravrajitas (recluse)
hurled stones and rocks at him but without any effect. Thus co dominant in Kashmir, defeating their opponents m
o
vinced of Majjhantika's great powers, the Naga king with his fo_ll f s
di putations . . . . Buddhism enjoyed the most prosperous time during
ers submitted to him and listened to his discourses on the eVIls 0
130 ':/'
131
. H
/JttJdhisffl tn UIf<ett
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in I-> ..r....- L India a'--Harsa
"Za
king
Kanika II. "5
known as Lalitaditya.14 Similarly, he was honoured in AD
,
He was also
The Kii:rlw!as or the Karko!akas ( c. AD 630-855) 733 bY t he em peror of China.15 He reigned ..
in Kashmir for about
The seventh century AD is an important landmark in the history
. Durlabhavardhana of the Karko!a dynasty ascended th
of thirty-two year
s. He conquer e d Ka naUJ m th e G .
anga-Yamuna Doab,
Kashmtr. e T kharistan 16
in the upper Oxus valley and Daraddesa in the Upper
throne of Kashmir in the ftrst quarter of that century.4 It marked a
ben Ganga.
(AD 7 33- 55)
He established diplomatic relations with Hiuen
,
era in the history of the country.5 Kashmir had become the predom g
17the Chinese emperor, and defeated the Bhaunas
ered 1 crore of golden money to the temples of
nant part in the north. Because for the first time the valley came (Tibetans); He
(Siva )
o
.18 He bmlt a Marta) <;Ia temple (Sun) with a great
under the administration of a strong line of rulers, whose ambi tious BhiiteSa
and powerful arms soon brought it into conflict with the princes on un cut sto ne-w all which is still famous. He bult a bridge over the
the Oxus, the l dus and the Ganges. By c. AD ?31 Kashmir had already Vttasta at Chhatrapur. He built a town outside Srinagar and at some
absorbed the htll states of Parl)otsa and Rajpuri. In the west it had distance and called it Parihasapura and built there a famous temple
sonquered Urasa (Hazii.ra) and had come into conflict with the to Vi1,1u called Parihara Kdava where he placed a Garu<;la image on
S3.his, from whom it took Tasila (Taxila) (modern Rawalpindi one-stone pillar 54 cubits long. Many gold and silver images ofViI)U,
district) and extended its power as far as Sirp.hapura ( Salt Range) in Variiha etc. are also spoken of. The Parihasa Kdava image was a silver
the Punjab. In the ftrst half of the 8th century Kashmir became one adorned with valuable jewels . . .. The queens also as usual built
of the strongest powers in Asia.6 Durlabhavardhana was regarded as temples to their favourite deities. Cankuna, a Tukkar minister, gave
the founder of the Karkota dynasty during Haa' s life-time7 Hiuen two magical stones to the king and purchased from him an idol of
tsang spent two years in Kashmir from about May 63 1 to April 633.8 Buddh ":hich ad bee brought fom his conquest ofMagadha. He
placed It m a vthara _ whtch he dedicated to the Buddhists. It seems
He was received with distinguished honour by the unnamed reign
ing king presumably Durlabhavardhana. That prince and his son
clear from this as is also otherwise well-known that before Muhamma
danism, Buddhism was the prevailing religion among Turks, Tuk
Durlabhaka are credited with long reigns.9 Durlabhavardhana ruled
karas, and other barbarian s ofTuran.
for 36 years. He was succeeded by Durlabhaka or the younger
!hese temples to Siva, ViI)U, Aditya and Buddha of course
Durlabha. As grandson of the old dynasty King Baladitya, he assumed
the name of Pratapaditya. He ruled for fifty yean. "He was a most ttse e religious cravings of those times. To the modem hist<?
meritorious king and many stories ofhisjustice and solicitude for the an It Is mteresting to note that Lalitaditya had many halls estab-
.
welfare of his people are related by Kalhal)a. He established a matha
fud m hts
called Nona Ma!fla for Brahmins of the Rohitaka country when he
: ' kiI_Igdom for the feedmg of the hungry and for giving
ter the thrrsty. These chatra and prapas testifY to the humane
tsposttton and his care for his subjects. He is also said to
built the temple ofTribhuvana Svami a shoemaker refused to give his
hut which stood in the way of the building. Durlabhaka declined to
cavated wells and springs in the northern sandy regions of the
have
oust him byforce whereon tanner, moved by the king's high sense of
kt here for many miles water is often unobtainable . . . . Thus
in dttya ap ears to have been a true Krtayuga or golden age king
justice, delivered up the land of his own free will. His queen the o p
th<:_se not very happy history of Kashmir. 19
Praka5adevi built a vihara called Prakasika vihara, perhaps a Bud
dhist monastery. She was a Vaisya lady and Vaisyas have throughout va:
Ku ayapt<;la succeeded his father Lalitaditya.20 He ruled for one
Year 00 The ne
Y
Indian history usually shown a predilection for the religion of er<j' seve . xt ruler was his brother Vajrii.di tya.21 He ruled for
and non-slaughter, that is to say Buddhism andjainism . . . . The king
s
Be rta;s. Sangramapiga, h s son, ascended e throne after him.
guru by name Mihiradatta (a Brahmin) built a temple to Siva (Vi I} u
&rand d for se1 years. Hts brother was Jayapi<;la who was also a
_1
probably) by name Gambhira Svami. We mention these tem ples as defeatedn of Lahtadttya.22 H e ccupied the throne of
hmir. He
typical of the practice of these kings, their queens and their m in isters Bis an d dethroned the king of KanauJ. who was Vajr3.yudha.25
coIns Were found
to build temples to their favourite deities. Thus the king enj oyed a with the title Vinayaditya. jayapi<;la became
. ..rurthern India after Haa 1 33
132 The Rise and Decline ofBudhd ism /JfldJhis7Tl m H '
in J?,_.
''l.Q
g and notices the downfall of rather decline of his
more famous than his grand father Lalitaditya as a
patron of 1 f thiS. }on many mnatenes
rei 0 in Rash mir. Therewere still . th ere d_the
He himselfwas a great pa?Z4it; . . . he was asjealous of
of ams as in the field of letters. He revived
a rival in th:ers
eld. religion vell er resided in one of them while m Kashmr. r. Viharas
Chin e seutra bv Kalhal)a as built by queens of the
other countries of lndia. Though a conqueror ed by ancient Kashmu kings and even
he assumed the title
of Vinayaditya or the sun of education. Equal
ly divided between
line . probablyHindu orthodox sentiment had changed. For the non-
erformance ofASvamedha even in the case o fLalita - dttya
who made
valour and learning, as if placed between two reflec i p
t ng mirrors, the di15"':i:J"aya throughout India like Samudragupta . . . cannt be ex
ki ng seeme d not doubl ed only, but made hund a .
red fold. "2 He
worshipped both ViI)U and Buddha and established Pl 10ed on the ground that the K.arko!a kings were not atnyas. The
ViI)U temples, a but Vatsyas
" d Y et
Buddha images and a large vihara in his capital Gayap Guptas indeed were most probably not tnyas
ura. .
Jayapi<,la is said to have ruled for 31 years. He was they perfo r
med the A.Svamedha. Surely the Brahmins of Lah dity
succeeded byhis would have found wars to enable him to perfo a horse sacnfice tf
son Lalitapi<,la, 25 who was on the throne for twelve years.
His brother he had wished it. But it seems general sentiment amongst e
Sangramapi<,la26 ascended the throne after him. He ruled
for seven orthodox Hindus had by this time set in against the re h?nd
years. The next ruler was a minor king named Cippat
a (the lesser) animal sacrifices of the Vedic ritual and thus the Buddhtstlc rehgtn
Jayapi<,la.27
t;numphed at least m
Usually, the K.arkota rulers were devotees of Lord Siva. But they professed by Kashmir so long had by that time
alsoworshipped ViJ)u. The people were both Saivites and VaiI)avites. Kashmir and put a period to these bloody sacnfices. "29
But there were also followers of Buddhism, under
this dynasty THE UTPALA DYNASTY (c. AD 855-50.939)
Kashmir not only maintained but even increased its renown
learning and many noted names in Sanskrit literature belong to this
for
perj.od.28 C.V. Vaidya says that the K.arkoraka rulers were all followers Avantivarman
of Saivism. He says, "That was the usual worship among the Hin dus The Utpala rulers occupied the throne of Kashmir after the
.
Karkotas. The first king of the U tpala droasty was Avan uvarm
t that time. They were also in addition worshipping ViI)U a d n (AD
Aditya. The Buddhistic religion had already fallen into disfavour Ill 855-?6-883) .30 His reign "is remarkably fee fro any amttl. us
Kashmir. The days ofMeghavahana were long gone by. Slaughter o
oegn poliq orwars ofaggression beyond Its froners Buths retgn
f IS Importa
:
animals was no longer prohibited by the state nor were the butchers nt as an era of internal peace and consohdauon. Aided by
.
his able minister of public works, Sura or Siiyya, e initiated a senes
by profession compensated for their loss ofwork by grants fro e
of reforms
state treasury as in his days. The penalty ofthe-profession ofa rehg10n which soon healed the wounds of mtsgovemment and
internal tro
of non-slaughter had already been paid dearly by Kashmir when
Hiil)aS under Mihirakula had enslaved the people for a time. Pra
the ubles ofthe preceding reigns. "51 Siira, his wife vyadevi
and his son Ratnavardhana were all devout worshippers of Siva and
for the pro
varasena a remnant of the Gonardiya line had established Ht_ n du cons tructe
gress of Saivism in the kingdom of Avantivarman they
sovereignty again in Kashmir with Siva about a hundred years or so d many temples and ma!has.52 The king s a votee of
Vi.Qu from childhood.'' But in order to please hts mtmster, he
before Durlabhavardhana. . . . Hiuen-tsang visited the cou ntry in the
TheRiu andD/Jne ofBwld/lis.o 0
; 1bdio JI6Ho!'f4 IS5
NDttftmt Indio
/IOfldl'isfl' "'
bc:c:ame a ipr of Siva and
--.h played his ,;tal role far Sihil o(UdabhiQ4ara. pu A u result the rcigniog Sill
.. A
protpcrityofSoivism.M He built the <empe ors.. ...naw..,. tt.. the and (Simnta ) was defeated by Pr.obbil\aradeva, the
offered gilts and made se-'Ualocherben<factions tothe ternpk,
""4 pos9biJ' sa;" eopatav.uman ancl Lalliya' son T.,....,a,a.Kamaluka
Tripun:f\"M'2. BhUtda and Vljayda. He also con stru ( ed
t A Of .U <':0ascenc!e<l thethrone()(UdabbiQ4apun.Copala,-arman
ni>l
tipura." Anandavardlwla, Ro.mabn. SM.n'imin and_ Muk ( (ou)tl
an and died in AI> 904. A!kr his suppositiow
twO ye
"'t.'rCramowKa"lunirian poetswho Oourisht-dduri ng his ruled whO h:ld been picked Up frOID the highway ...
reiwn. Hi
ft'ign w:u noe:;ablc for hi.s enightened
l patron3.ge oflilerotu:" (
m.:Ooe. But he dted aftcr a rule of teo da)'S- nletl
b(Otbc' the.
ed in AD 88S at the Tri.purcSa (modem Triphar) hill. at the bidding of the wbjecu took the throne." Sh
di t e
cend"!hl
s.r
gan
d Copampura (modem Cauripu r) and also a town after
Sa;rltaraua""u" constrUcteS forthc properltyoftherelig i onbuiltLheGopilam
After thedeath ofAvantivannan,hisson Sarikaravarman c:apcured
rn he
JK:l mple o fGopi L .. She n&led for twoyears nd du:d
'\kt.i.'lY .
rhe throneoftheUtpala dymutywith great dilli<ultyafterdel'ea"ll ti
!94.J>artha.thetcnyearol d &<>n ofNirjllavan'1n 13 {P
ngu) , wa.J
ul ofthe
his r'ivab in hi& &lruggle against them.* The new kil)g cheeked the t
l
throne and the
i11 AD 006 l u cr acted
t.he gu
as adan
r
sovereign power of 8hoj a and dcstro)cd the fortune or t.hco g. ln his" Pirtha anti
:a;
in ove
AD 921 Niljil.a\'ltnnanrth
cnrjatGdhipg., Alakhana.1 He conquered the Takkadt wltich wu occupied the throne M But in AD 923 lie dted. Hls young son
.
loca1c::d betcn t11e Upperwa.ters ofthe Otenab and the Ra.vi. He Catravannan W3$ on the throne under the guardianish p o \ i!
aiJO Jed an expedition toward$ the Indus through the IUJi.mG.Ii
,
mochtrBappaeviand then for ten yearshisgrandmo
ther iki
l
il
de(t.le.u But_ tJ1c king was unable to extend the bouo<lariet ofhU x:led as the guardian." King SO "an
rot. nan J, tl1e son of Pangu by
.
kingdom beyond the linUu of the submomllne regionJ adjoin.ina .
t.he ruler 1n AD 9S! after O\'erthrowmg
Kutuniron the wettan d south... His milituyioontand thdt
{ rginti
).
became
"U11l . c:d inAS>934and again in
an 111But tJ1e fonnr. r wudethron
c:XpetltcS had a bad dft'C:l upon tbe rt:soutut ofKa.shmir. lu Of'dcr But the latter lost his kiog-.
. 9!5 Cakra\-a nnan aook lhe thi 'Ofle:.
10 meet biJ expenses. the king introduet:d many caxo.lie abolOOI; dom. ad ni his place hi.s mini.)kr Sarubhu,oa.rdhana c:a.ptured lbe
(tom the ccmplcs the pro6tsa.ri.singfrom th e sale olinceNC,WM.Ial duooe.Cakra-..am\:ln thw again carne in thepicture: after hehad
wood and other (articles or,.,.rup). He abo ruumed the >iJJocn taUoedSambhmoa.rdha.na. The fonner then became the ruler but he
which .,.,--eregrantedto the templeasAgn:bira.onthe undc.ntandinc ttUtilkd by hissoldit:n i AD 9S7. Then Unmatta.\-anti. the wicked
n
thata lixedamountshouJd bereru.rnedascompensation () tonofPartha. octupied the throne with the help ofthe mitl.iste.rs.
from the income of thes.e villages. Thes.e bndJ re then cultivated kat:.tw)a mentioned thisking as "'wone &han wid.... He not only
directly by the teo, but the- amount of the fwaJiJUira due to the atpri:soncd and Jtarvcd to dcalh aU his half.Orot.hen but also killed
ttmplcsW<\.5 rcduGC<J by dimn i ishing the weight in t11e scale by c bistilher Partba n
i hi!tiremcntatthcJaycodta vibiraat&i"nagara.
tloir<l. He lim> plundered 5traightw.>y 64 temples. through s pe cial lhi$ shows that P3rlha became a Buddhiat monk and joined the
officen (placed ove.- them) under the practice: ofexerdsing .tuper dhist SarrP and led a life ofa lluddh.i.st t;nonk at theja)'enrd
vision.* He "'"'5 _known a.' tlu:: plu nd erer of temple treasurct. 'rht Vl
harawhere he was killed by his MJn,64 It ,mdtc:ttes l11at Buddtusm
king built two 1c::mples ofSiva, S :
.ikarap
u uri$a :,tnd SugandhtL1tn , nourished there. Unmattavanti de i d in AD 9S9.0& The pa..riddc
ci1y k.J1own asSankarapttra (moden1 Pit:tn) .46He ruledfol' ninetc;cn ream king. when his descent to heU wa5 nt:at. placed Oil the
)'Cars.
>bronc ayoung child called $oravarman (II), whom the servanogir!
lluu eragio had procured fromsomewhere andfalselydeclared to
l
Gopalovtrrwran and his Sva:aso bt tht kiogs son." But before the d1ild-ting' position was estab
nte next rule:i w:a.s Copalavannan,., the son o( A\'anti"af"[(loW liob<Q. Kani
alav ard
h ana. theeonunaoder1n-dtief,defeated the royal
Beforehisdeatll beeolru>ted hissunri\ingminorson Copiila'
'" :""" and invitedaU thellrilunutotelecta penonwbo "''Ould be
to the care o his mother, queen Sugandbi. the dau
glucr Q(...:"': best peno
n for the throne. The Brihmet in an assembly
illuJiriout Si')lharlja. the ruler o the northern ...gion. Withcl d th
""" diseuue equestion foror6da)'land .ele<:tedYaia>kara, the
M:lpofthemlni.Mc:rs, Copi.Ja.va.rman was on the tltrone then ""'de... theministcr()(Copilavarmanandthesecn:t
.
the gmsdiansbip orhis mocber. His reign wimused an <Xped ' u:?aoo
r
I
137
136 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism .
is m t ' lu!m J
.n J..rqrt rulia after Haa
ltl /ndia a
ng son, the queen-regent became
paramou_r of Sugandha.67 Thus the Utpala dynasty came to
an end bifll After h
d t e eath of her you
f many meritorious acts. She built
and per ormed
when Yasaskara ascended the throne in AD 939.68
n per=and
ed cities. But she byemploying witchcraft kille d her
975.81 The
ma ndigupta
cha g
tefllP
l e s , in AD 973 and Tribhuvana in AD
Successors of the Utpalas (AD 939-1003) o n s, a died in AD 980-81 .1!2 Didda captured
gran d s
himagupta. He
Ya5askara ruled for about ten years (AD 939-48) .69 Kalh a . ler was B . Kh
n AD 98 81
ru d T .
unga , a youn g , from
t mte
0- and appo asa
giVes
that<Ill
neX
a count of his reign. "The land became so free from rob n e Four
.
o everybo dy.85
mght the doors were left open in the bazars and the roads at
r l aiViidhikari and raised him above
ry the th
P_..., o tsa the S . s. The ctormer mm .
th Were
. n good JOb . tsters,
..., .. ga were also giVe
rs 0 f Tun
func.
secure tor travellers. As he exercised careful supemsIon , e lted und er the
leadnia
revo
c
h e his brot hers ,
ted by Tunga and
b rot
wbo pnnce Vi1graharaja, son ofD"d
. .
tlonanes, who had plundered evervthing ' found no other occu were 0us
-' -
1 d-'a s brother.84
h ' 0 he Lohara
. but to loo_!<. after the cultivation. "70 He also built a m h pa. ft hvipala the
tlon
at a for t. He also def ea(e d Prit
students from Aryade5a.71 Ya5askara as usual with th e IOunder c of
crush ed their attemp
i . Didda died in
. But befo re her death
king f Rajapm a son of her brother Udayaraja, was selected by her
AD 1003
new dynasty proved a capable, nergetic and conscientious kin . Ha
o_f course sent back the Brahmms to their sacrifices and rule Wi. the l Sam. g maraja, YuvaraJa
r of
- 85
ngour and scrupulousness. The poet's remarks here are worth fo the rank
. .
. . "In h.IS days people sleptm their houses with open doo d rsand
quotmg. -177 1)
THE LoHARA DYNASTY (AD 1003
vellers moved without peril on their paths owing to the estruc-
tlon f th"Iev Villagers were engrossed in cultivation and had no i was the
ja
orical records that Saf!lgramari
occ":s1on tovlSlt the court and Brahmins remained engrossed in their It is kn own from hist ara.86 The form er ascendd
of Loh
sty m
ja
studies and had no occasion to take up arms Brahm1n sages on younger brot her ofVigrahara
f . . He thus foun ded the Lohara dyna
the th ron e in AD 1003.
pretex o reCitmg
.
5amans did not dnnk liquor nor did ascetics tend him .88
_ .
I Il
139
hem Irulia after Ha
a
1 38 m in Nurt
.
The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in I?ll.lie
asty came to an
ath the Lohara dyn
year s. With his de
t
and Martal)<;la and spared the two colossal statues of B uddh r ei. gh
which one was at Parihasa built by king Lalitadinn a ( or seven
o
- and th e oth
Q 9)
HARAS (c. AD 1 1 71 -133
Srinagara, known as the Brhatbuddha) at the request ofhis favou en
d
. ORS OF TilE L
O
singer Kal)aka and the srama7Ja Kusalasri. "9!5 Har was killed in succFffi
72) "the
1 1 01 at the age of 43 years by the supporters of Uccala, who was a tideva (AD 1 1 71 -
the death of Van
of Malia. 96 Uccala ascended the throne in AD 1 101. He was a powe : that after ted on e named
Vup
He retg::.: ;f :n:
says esso r elec
f a worthy succ
-Ja
Jonara t Jas saka
wan
5 her
king. Kalhal)a refers to Uccala's consideration for the comm o brot
nth s His
citizen "108 e ruled or 9 year
H
s for
people and his sense ofjustice. The king reformed intern al adm e h n yea s. The next rul er was
stration. In times of famine he sold his grain"stores at cheap price
: :":de ed h
im.
o wa] s assa . e :as succeeded
by his son. R.aja-
r was hts son
109 The next rule
ab out 23 years .
and thus saved his people from distress.97 He was a religious person deva wh
no doubt. Because, he restored many of the temples and mathas Jdas: wh r ule d for
ho was a powe
rful ruler. He terr
ified his en emies as
. km " g as " a
which were destroyed duriQg the reign of Ha and other rule.:S of
ev
a dev a W efers to thts
n t n o Jon araja r
SaJpgfi m
Kashmir.96 He was murdered in AD 1 1} 1 by Ra<;l<;la, who ascende d the t? e e ep h
th lion doeshis coutry a d "a Kalpadruma to posts and
1 lea ed
throne after assuming the name of San!<haraja.99 But soon Qamara benefactor of . Sn-Visala h ouse whi
ch con tain ed
VIjayasvara the .
Gargachandra of Lahara killed Ra<;l<;la-Satikharaja with many of his of cows and B ra - h man.
"1 1 He bui lt at as 1 1 2 He ruled for
men. 1
21 rooms for
the h b" tation
adeva ascen de e t_h throne
fellow conspirators.100 The former then installed Salhal)a, a step
rs (AD ; 2 5-52) . His son Ram
about 1 6 yea was a good administrator. His queen Sn- e.m Sam udra
brother ofUccala on the throne.101 But he was imprisoned by Sussala,
a brother ofUccala, when he had reigned for about four months (AD in AD 12 52 . He i -
. a mark
ed with h er nam He
on the Vttasta a math
1 1 12).102 Sussala ascended the throne in AD 1 1 12. In the meantime built at Snnagara . d . AD 1273 Laksm anad eva , who was h"ts
-
Bhicara, who became the most formidable rival of the king, rule d for 2 1 years a
son , su cce
nd dte
ed ed h
.
tm. e was a l arn
d m"an , but as ' a p
evelo p
ainted
ed the
appeared on the frontiers of Kashmir and after his several attempts ado pted h e never d
beauty of . wel'
occupied the throne in AD 1 1 20. The inexperienced king blundered stone does not take the
uha mad an in vad er n amed
very for 1 3 years
Ym 1286. He reigned no sons to
vigour and bra of a
at every step in the task of government.103 Sussala again occupied the . hun
Kajjala defeated and killed
throne after an absence of six months and 1 2 days.104 But the next
seven years (AD 1 12 1-28) which covered the reign ofSussala witnessed 3 mo nth s. l5 lt is ve
probabl ADLaksman adeva
o
.
rule"rs seems
had
to have com e
ts e f
constant struggles between Sussala and Bhikdira.105 In AD 1 128 succeed hun. With h1s death,
to an end.
Sussala was brutally murdered by Utpala and his associates. Then
Jayashpha, the son of Sussala, ascended the throne. He reigned in
Si1[lhadeva a'TUi His Successors (c. A? 1 2S6-1 i!
Kashmir for about 2 7 years (AD 1 1 28-55) . 106 He patronised literary of the ler Laksmanadeva to
There was none from the family railed for
men. He looked after the mathas and Viharas, the first of which that
attracted his attention was th one built by his queen Ratnadevi. is clai m the throne It is for
. th!s
reaso n a sta o
e
h
:/L
ohara, an d
some time. Then Sal!lgramacan ra, re.U s The
chief mit;tister Ri!hal)a was also very pious. He showed his veneratlo _ a, P ared
_ a the
to both Siva and Buddha and erected a monastery in memo ry ofhiS
Sil!lhadeva, chief of Labdar of Daku;tapru:
latter claimed the thron and eclared htms ? l ki But :r
owing to
deceased wife Sussala. Sussala must have been a great devotee f e e v:-Dey 0 the d ari (m ode rn
Buddha as she erected, on the site of the famous Cankuna vibara
tp.griimacandra, he retgne d m nag a an d
Ananta
L1dar) , which flowed into the Vttasta between
which had been destroyed, a magnificent establishment for the . g
kin d om afte r the
Vlj bror.m B ut he became the ,rule r of the whole
Buddhist monks. Cinta, wife of Jaiqlha's comman der U daya
, a
death of the former The frrst part of h15
suc ces sfu l H e was
c:;:::
. retgn
was
e o fbad
known for his pious foundations. But un d er the
adorned the bank of Vitasta by a monastery consis ting of fiv . evil infl uen ce
buildings, and Dhanya, one of the ministers, commen ced the co
n
h ange d
men his character gradually degneraed n
struction of a vihara in honour of his late wife. Evidently, th ed for
efor:e
er
person. He became devoid of hts belief m i
faith 1 about 1 4 years and d"ted m AD 1 30 1 .119 His brothe -
the reign ofjayasiJpha was marked by a revival of Budd hist . r Su ha d eva sue-
. ed h"ts autho .
nty m
.
Kashmir. 107 The next ruler was his son Vantideva who ruled for ab<>U
He was a powerful ruler and
cee ded him. establish
141
heffl India
after Haa
140 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in l'lldiQ tn in N(JJ't . o doubt' and to some extent, threw
B"dJIUS
d in Ka sh m rn side with this
the whole of Kashmir.120 Suhadeva's reign witnessed two fore Buddhiseathe in digeno faith:oB: ebJ in the valley.
er ligio' a/Saivism, which ;ne ;:S:va
invasions which not only destroyed his power, but also led to r back Brahmani cal rhht gon al its wa y fr om the Indus
destruction of Hindu rule in the valley.121 Suhadeva found very d i iflto de edic
cult to oppose the foreign invasions and took shelter in the hi lls. ke d o ut o concept of the Vduc
develo p e remoter than the intro
reigned for about 19 years and lost his life in AD 1320.122 I<aS Y ou; erhaps, dates back to a eriodaivism in the pre-Asokan days
valitu:n . e ofS
flIfuddhism. Ocofrthd etxeeen widely prevalent throuhn ags
Bhotta Riiicana and His Successors
;re is litemrary ri ongst its followers. Countless shn :
Bboga Riiicana established his rule over the whole valley.l23 He a ny k ngs Hm. dus but also bY
was not only an able ruler but also was a good administrator. During g w er e ere cte not o1 bhthe mir Saivism is,
e istory of Kash
.
clanllll: fSiv a e l f
his rule Kashmir enjoyed a period of peace and prosperity. Abul Fazl bo o
, e. g., b y AS ok a h t m period Jt bel onged to the
Buddhisrtsa chequered one. In the early oun
says that "he was fmous for his munificence, and eventually adopted d duar1sm . lt toof th ka
the religion of Sahamera through intimacy of association with howueveat sect. Based on Tantras, it propwhen,dem . pur suan ce o e
Pas pgarab in about the eighth century monism
,
him. "124 Riiicana died in 1323. It is known from records that durin ors , on
Riiicana administration Sihamerabecameveryinfluential and playedg neW stic . The w
Advaita systenew m, .Jt began was to preach ' dealsse
b ase d , cro
1
d- current as Tn 'ka sastra
a vital role in his administration. Haidarawas a minor son ofRiiicana wh. h the
syst em , . AO'amasii.stra, Spandafsastr
a
and Ko!:idevi. That is why, Sahamera installed Riiicana's relative git self m to th ree br anch es num be ro sue h
ubdividin n_asas -- tra compriseda
tc VIZ., "
.
'
Udayanadeva on the throne. The latter married the widowed queen _ a The Au
d n-at.JabluiJ M_a_1.mt'Titvt >_ ayamala etc The Trika system
amasas was
.
s
Ko!idevi. The queen continued to wield great power while the king . d a clearer expositioa of ththee m
-
spent his time in bathing, in penance and in prayer. 125 The king died o ;;'_l t r :
in AD 1338. Ko!idevi then too the control of the kingdom. Mtel'
c nsi dera n as bly written by Kallat
spanda.5iistra or span nan d a wa s resp onsible for the Pr a
wards she was forced to marry Sahamera, who after a day's married n i th cen tury. ne s
O . busmes om old Saivism bysedysteofmatic and
life, imprisoned her and declared himselfking of Kashmir un der the t:yabhijiiiisiistra. Itwshl.sSo
n
ne the hour ,
title ofSri-Sal!lsadina (Shams-ud-din) in AD 1339 . 126 Islam gradually critical represent. ation
mana a utisewasa ea it ha d to be
became the religion of Kashmir during the fourteenth century AD. because Buddhismghly was n.ow a pow . erf 1 "orce andwith lts abstruse
s stem,
ka /
1'
tloto appC:alTri
sopht l
Then in AD 1561 the Chakk dynasty succeeded the dynasty ofShams combatted. The hi pnly to masses. the
th The result wass
ud-din. 127 Akbar, the Mughal emperor, in AD 1586 annexed Kashmir literature, failed necessa d to the mtt; lltual class' lower clas
during the rule of a Ya'qub Shah, the ruler of the Chakk dynasty. '28 that, while it was confine p-asupa.ta SaJV
S.C. Banerjee says, "Literary evidence points to the prevalence of clung. to the more popularVJsn . u was a1soJsm..dely worshipped. It .
serpent-worship in the valley from a remote antiquity. The Nag.as S1de by s1' de 'th s1va, . . . . fi
'
IS
were held in such veneration that the Karkota dynasty traced tts difficult to asser whe? ValJ}:aVJaseve n ce sixth
Wl
the
descent from Naga Karkota. There is evidence, both literary d Kashmir, but of 1ts exiStence m NumerouP . foagesn sof Visnu were
archaeological, of Kashmir having been a great centre ofBuddhADtsmto century AD there is no doubt. ;: idesthmasses,
which perhaps entered the valley as early as the third cen tury consecrated, and temples built.in honu astieBes also became devo
a great extent overshadowing the Naga-cult. Buddhism gathered : many members of the succe . . ssiVe r?Y . yn combl. n ed in itself the
0
momentum at the time ofAsoka ofwhose empire it was a part, an e tees of this deity. Kashmman Vatsna . _VJsmtra sect, the faith of the
reached the peak of development in the Kur:ta period. lt was at 1 Pan cara
_
'
,a
<?r the god of Love. The worship ofSak in various i31
sarada etc. has been pro ed. T e dlSCOVe o
onns like Durga
, U tpalas
iJ: f lmges of Sapta 2. '[he
Matrkas (seve mothers) 1s an mcontrovertJ.ble
eVIdence of
the
r Jayadevi-Lalitiipic;la
prevalence of Sakta cult. "129 Utpala
I
Sukhavann
GENFALOGY a"
L _
__
__
------ ------ --
------ -- --
Kuvalayapic;la
I Partha
Cakravarman Siiravarman I
Vajrapida
I -
Unmattavan u
Sallgramapic;la
I I
Siiravarman II
Jayiipic;la Vinayaditya
.
usurpa tiOn of Sambhuvardhana (AD 935-36)
I
Sangramapic;la las1 32
Successors of the 1vtpa
Lalitiipic;la
3.
T
Ya.Saskaradeva
Sal!lgriimadeva
145
144 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India . Northern India after Harsa
B'Udt}hism tn
5. sueces
(b) Line ofAbhinava135 sors of the Loharasl55
(a) Lin of
Vupp adeva
Abhinava sahi king Bhima
I r Jassaka
I
Saf!lgriimagu pta
Vuppad eva
I Jagadeva
I
Parvagupta
I Rajadeva
I
emagupta Daughter-Lohara king
I Sif!lhariija Saf!lgriimadeva
Abhimanyu I I
I Didda Ramadeva
I I I I
Nandigupta Tribhuvana Bhimagupta
Lakmal)adeva
4. The Lohara Dynasty34
Sif!lhariija of Lohara '
Vi1graharaJa
- d eVI-17
Bhoga Riiicana-Kota
- (c)
IJI[I
of Lohara
I I I I
H ririij a Ananta Tanvanga Gunga
Haidara
I
I
I
Kalasa Dhammata I ,,
I Malla I
------
--------
Sahamera Samsadina
I I I
. -devi
Kota
I (Shah Mir Sham&-ud-din)
Udayanadeva
Hafl}a Utkal"I)a Vtiayamalla Bhoja
I
Bhoja
I REFERENCES
Bhicara
2Jbid. GM, l , 5-26; MV. XII, 3.
1ERl, 86.
Uccala Sussala Salhal)a Lothal)a 4DHNI, I, 1 1 2. ) 5? rl the ancient Abhisara) EHI, 368.
I
apu (Rajauri '
_
Ib"d
12J id .
'EHI, 386. "Ibid.
Ra<;l<;la-Sarija) Bhoja
10HMHJ, 206-7 . " EHI, 6-
"Ibid . "Ibid.
"Ibid .
Paramanuka "DHNI,I , 1 1 2.
IOHMJi[, 2}2-13.
''DHNI, l , 1 12; IIT'G,,IV, 131-264.
I
2<>1bid.
18Ibid.
Vantideva
The Rise and Dedine ofB
146
]Jutltlhmis in Nurthern India after Har!fa
1
uddhism in India 147
21 1bid.
22Ibirl., 215; Eill' 387
.._HMHJ, I,
'rl
21 5-16. Ibid.,
21EHI, 387.
3. THE GURJARA-PRATIHARA KINGS OF KANAUJ
216.
ts
Ibid. '"Ibid.
lBibid., 21 7.
,DHNI, I, 291bid., 203-4
113. 1
:
'IJbid
115 ; R:rG V, 37-38, 4M I. .
Ib d.,
114
IS very
. probable that the early Gmjaras were foreign immigrants,
Ibid .
"Ibid .,. lU1G, V, 4546
''DHNI, I, I I5. ely associated with, and possibly allied in blood to the white
,
"DHN1. I
' ' 1 15' LH
.,..,G, v, 45-46. Bas.l They es!<tblihed a kingdoi? in Rajputana and their capital
onDHNI, I, 1 15; R:rG, V 32-36 Bhilmal or Srimal, about 50 miles to the north-west of Mount
'!XJDHNI, I,1 1 7. '
..,Ibid . , 1 1 8,. Lu
lYrG, V,
"'EHI, 387. :su.2 VA. Smith describes, "The Gmjara5 are believed to have
ntered India either along with or soon after the white HiiQas, and
<IDHNl l 119. . 1 30-35.
2Jbd.; R:rG V, 1 37-38,
.,DHNj I ' 119 209.
..Ib1d 1 20. 0
,
48Jbid., I, fn 3; Ste belonged. "3 Its one branch m oved towards south and established at
neighbouring territory
49DHN1, I , 123.
in thinks that Simh
. RTG' V' 157.
. ar;y- a was a ruler of the Dard or
some Malava. They gradually became powerful . In course of time they
Kanauj and became the paramount power of northern
"'Ibi d., V, con que red
2394 1.
:
R:rG, 51DHNI, I, 1 23.
d.
52
"Ibid. Indi a.
.. ld. "Ibid., 1 24.
"Ib'd 1 25 . '"'bid. Nagabhata I, who belonged to the Gmjara-Pratihara dynasty, was
"'Ibid.
""IbId., 126.
61Ib'd 127. 601 bid. a powerful ruler. He defeated the Arabs and drove them out of his
62Jbid.
..Ib1d. 65lbid. kingdom. It was he who established the Gmjara-Pratihara kingdom
MJbid.
b d. 66Ibid.,1 28. on asolid foundation. He had the titles ofMaharaja, Maharajadhiraja,
:' . 128; R:J'G VI, 7-8.
"'IbId ,
68Jbid.
""Ibid.,1 28-29.
.,.HJ:fH
Paramabhan:araka and Paramesvara. He was also a good soldier
I, I, 225-26. 71DHNI, I , 128.
,
"DHNJ, I, 1 28. because he himelf led his army towards Broacli. But his successors
Ib1d. "Ibid., 1 29.
"Ib'd were weak rulers. They played a very insignificant role in the political
"''bid., 130;
I .
R:rG II 33940.
.,.Ibid. ' ' '"DHNJ, I, 130. history of ancient India. But another ruler of this dynasty was
aoib'd 81Ibid
b d.
Ibid ., R:rG, VI,
:
8'Ib d:
64lbid.
.,
1 34. Vatsaraja. During his rule Malava and Rajputana became very promi
nent. Gopala, the Pala ruler, suffered defeat at his hands. The next
318-22 333-65
' 86DHNI, I, 135 .
I 142.
.,
"'Ibid.:
91Jbid
138.
1 .
""Ibid.
92Ibid.,
ruler was Nagabhata II. It is said that this ambitious monarch
probably in AD 816 defeated Cakrayudha, the king of Kanauj from
:
Ibid.,
147. "'Ibid:
146 . Bhilmal in R3Jputan3. It was the capital of his successors for many
DHNI, I,
155 . 915GM, I, 32-33.
"''bid.,157.
lf!" 1 58.
.,.D I, I, IOOi
bid.,
1 60.
""Ibid.; R:rG, VIII,
IOI
2-160.
years. During the rule of the Gmjara-Pratiharas it became very
"Ibid.; R:rG, VIII
I Ibid . prominent. It was then regarded as the premier city of northern
191Jbid.,
379480
' 10'DHNI, I, India. Nagabhata established friendly relations with Sindhu, Andhra,
165; 92 ,,.
R:rG' VIII , 164.
106Jb1d.,
"
<..1-\rf .
105DHNI, I, 166.
1 70. 107GM
' 3 3-34. I'
Vidarbha and Kalinga. Itis kn own that during Nagabhata's reign, the
1""DHN1' I ' 1 74;]DR, V. 50 : war between the Gmjaras and the Ratrakiitas (Ra!}lors) of the
the name is Vopyadeva
ll DRNI, I, 1 75;]DR, W.
199 .
u'Nl, I,
68-78. Deccan continued for sometime. Afterwards Govinda III, the
Ibid .,
I .;]DR, w.
non u
I
1 76 . ll tib'd 1 75. Ratrakiita ruler, defeated the Gurjaras in the beginning ofthe ninth
11<Jb'd I . 115Ibid
92-1 08.
IUD HNl I 1 76.
nIbid., ' ' cen tury AD! Nagabhata's successor was Ramabhadra (Ramadeva)
n"'bid.;]DR,
I
IOJbid.
V. 1 23. N
nDH I I 1 77 119fbid
,
1 77.
who ruled between AD 834 and 840.5 He was a devotee of the sun-god.
121Ibid., ' '
.; ]DR,
V. 1 56 ., 1 79. He was a weak ruler. It was because of his inefficiency, his enemies
II
rut?ng lephants. His steeds crossed the unfathoma
ble Yamuna,
which nvals the sea. He completely uprooted the
hostile city f As a resdu1tot ItGh azni
Without
of Sultan Mahmud. But the
fell into the hands
disturbmg the cap
latter
taI . V.A . SI th says,
.
Mahodaya, which is even today greatly renowned amon
g men by ;: re turn e
nam uSasthaa. Acording to scholars, the god p ' lian imous submission of Rajyapala mcensed his Hmdu
si
Mahakala. Mahipala With the help of the Chandel
Kalapriya Wa: "fe o felt that he had betrayed their cause. His fault was sternly
e
Kanauj the capital city.
king recovered
pum
:e
alh s, d by an anny under the command of Vidhyadhara, heir
Te Haddala grant26 which probably belonged to t of the Chandella king, Ganda, supported by the forces of
the reign of
ahipa- l I was found near Haddala in Eastern Kat}liawar. It op
apparedn
.s fet' atory , the chief of Gwalior, which attacked Kanaui:.. in the
_
With an n:lVocation to (Siva) Dhanddvara. It says ens tu .
s r summer of AD 1 019, soon after the departure of Sultan
named Vnnkala was granted to Mahesvaracarya
that the village p;;: d an d slew Rajyapala, whose diminished dminions passed
pillar inscription was found at Asni in U.P. It ment
. The Asni stone M der the rule ofTrilocanapala".32 Sultan Mahmud m about AD 1020
un - ra
ions that in the the ew G'?lJara- pratih
reign ofM a_?ila the inscription "was set up in a certai returned to India and invaded Bari,
capital and also attacked the Chandella temtory WI thout any d IffiI-
.
n caitya of the
god Yogasvamm . It made some arrangements for the
worship of the
g?d by Brama? as, and ascetics of the locality. "ZZ The Hadd cul
.
g.ves us mdica
ala gran t
tion about the prevalence ofSaivism in the kingdo
z: thing much is known about Trilocanapala (AD 1027) and i
of Mhipala I. The As i tone pillar inscription refers m successors. TheJhiisi grant inscription of AD 1 027 was foud a tJhsi
to caitya and hich was situated on the left bank of the Ganges, opposite the City
ascecs. It probably signifies that caitya was a Budd
ascetics were Buddhist _ monk hist caitya and
s. From this we conclude that Buddhism
fAllahabad.M It belonged to the reign ofTrilocanapala. It sas that
flourished side by side with Saivism in the kingdom Trilocanapala having bathed in the Ganes an haVIng worshiped
of Mahipala I. Siva, gave Asurabhaka-viye-Labhu.r:t<;faka-grama t? 6000 Brah
aendrapala II in AD 945-46 ascended the throne of the Gmjara manas.M This shows that Trilocanapala was a worshipper of Lord
ratihara dynasty after Mahipala I. The Partabgarh stone inscrip Si. The Kara stone inscription refers to a prince named YasaQ. pala
tlo28 was ound at Partabgarh in southern Rajputana.
It opens with who reigned in AD 1037 near Allahabad. Proably, he s a G IJara
an mvocatwn to t?e sun-god and it then praises the godde
_ ss Durga. Pratihara prince and was a successor of Tnlocanapa. It IS ve
Il
It men nons that King Mahendrapala gran ted the villag
e ofKharpara probable that after the plunder, destruction and desertion of naUJ
padraka o the goddess Vata-Yaki.r:ti Devi whose temple
was con and Bari, Rajyapala's successors went towards the eastern portion of
nected With the ma!ha of Hari iSvara who belonged
to Dasapur the kingdom. Towards the close of the eleventh cena:"ry AD. Can
(modem Mandasor) . This no doubt indicates the Sun-w
orship as dradeva the Gahadavala ruler conquered and occupied KanauJ.
well as the worship of the goddess Durga and Yaki.r:t
i and other R.S. Tripathi say about the religious conditio? of the ki gdom of
Brahmanical gods became very popular during the reign
ofMahen these Pratihara kings. He describes, "The eclectic tendencies of the
drapala II.
Devapala succeeded his brother Mahendrapala II in about times were remarkably reflected in the religious ideals of the rol
AD 948- family, for although the Pratihara kings were all officially Brahmani
49. The Si>_:adoni stone inscriptior: found in the precin
cts ofthejaina cal Hindus, they did not confine their spiritual allegince to one and
temple of san tinatha atjhansi menti ons a large number
ofdonations the same deity. Nagabhata, the founder of the Ka aUJ ?Y asty; along
made at different times by some feudatories and privat ? ? .
e individuals with Mihira, Bhojaand Mahendrapala I are descnbed m ms:n_rtions
in favour of the god Vi.r:tu and various other Brahm
anical gods at as d evotees of Bhagavati, whereas Ramabhadra and Mahipala are
Siyadoni (modem Siron) .29 He probably was a devotee ofVisn
u. After said to have been devotees of the sun-god. Bhoja II and Mahen
Devapala his brother Vijayapa.Ia occupied the throne ofth drapala II, on the other hand, are respectively represented as
Gurjara
Pratihara kingdom in AD 960. During his reign a Kacch
wiha (Kac Vail}ava and Mahe5vara. Of these, Bhoja I appears to have bee ?
chapaghata) chief named Vajradhamma, the found
er of a local evoted to a special manifestation ofVi.r:tu also, as is clar from his
dynasty, captured Gwalior.30 Rajyapala succeeded his father .
Vyayapala Adivaraha type of coins, and Mahipala had reddections for the
in AD 1 018.31 In january AD 1019 Sultan Mahmud ofGhazni
attacked Worship of Bhagavati as well as of the sun, the unage of the former
Kanauj and Rajyapala did not defen d his capital. He
fled from his Occurring on his seal. Thus three facts reveal themselves clearly; first
capital city and took shelter at Bari on the other side
of the Ganges. Buddhism had now distinctly declined in the MadhyadeSa, and the
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in ].. ..
m in Northern India after Haa
r
152 153
'""l Q
I
I I
GENEALOGY Vinayakapala II ?
I
The G!ujara-Pratihiira Kings of Kanauf" Mahipala II Rajyapala
I
Raghu ?
I I
Lakmar;Ia Vatsariija II
.-------J
Barujaybal Trilocanapala
Nagabhata alias (Name unknown) I I
Nagavaloka Bhimapala Yasal).pala
\
154 The Rise arul Decline of Buddhism
ln ndiq
ption of Vidyadhara of AD
1 1 19-20, mentions that the
by Cunnigham to the inhabitants offuan Chwang's kin-lu-to "which bet in
scri
local rulers of Kanauj on
exactly .th e _X>SttJOn of the district of Kullu in the u
r valle of co rrespolldt !' trakiita-S Gopala and Madana were the
i . ce ing it ut ey e r not
Th postuo mdicated is roughly the modem Kang a dit. The
e. we ; B
. hasy r ver
rnust !Je :G a.:date an d
in the ye ars immediately pre
pla as adup':'radhtpa .14
t
r
ne ghbounng people, as they are placed with Pancanadas in the .
d vi i
e Brhat Sm[thitii and with the Kulindas in the northern divi ion in ::r ?,., t s o n in
the ah qa as.13 This rec
. ord refers to
cauon that he
s uw othing lS known abo
ut Madana. Thi giVeS us mdl
s
. llti4 from the time
t:ryu Pu-
s says that
was a feudatory of the
Gahaqavala s.u H. C. Ray
22Ibid., I , 577-79. !Sakii!as were regard ed as the local
adeva onwards the Ra
Ibid., 577. ..EH/, 395.
of Chandr ugh by reas on of its
: DHNI, I, 582-83; lA, XII, 190-95; XVIII, 1 897, 90.
He me ntions further that "tho
'r>DHNI, I, 580; El, VII, 38.
rulers ofKanauj .16 one of the c pita ls of the
111DHNI, l, 58; lA, XVI, 1877, 1 73-75 . e Kanauj ws regard.ed a
importanc m o th City .
!0DHNJ, I, 585-87; EJ, XIV, 1 76-88. DHNI, I, 587. G ,
ahaq avalas they
habttually restded som e er It sugg
s of
ests
the
was Ben are s."17 Becaus
e several inscript ion
!1Ibid !l!{bid.
: N that this city
EHI, 395.
"Ibid.; lA, XVIII, 33-35 .
Mus lim chr onic les
Ibid., 398. e fou nd n ear Benares. Even
the
DHNI, I, 609.
Gahaqavalas wer
'lADH I, I, 609.
are s.18 The Cha nde lla or
.nHKMC, 290-91 . valas as kings of Ben
describe the Gahaqa wer e rule rs of KaSiY
Chan della inscript
'"DHNI, I , 61 1 ; HKMC, 383-85. ions also mention that they
of the title
umstances, the assumption
H.C. Ray says, "Under the circ that the halo of im
4. THE GAHAI;:>AVALAS OF KANAUJ be explain ed by the fact
'Lord of:Kanyakubja' may ered ets of the forts
perialism probably still
lingered on the batt turr
its sove reig nty cou ld ther efore
acquired
ofKanauj. The person who
Charulradeva
of northern
The rie of a new imperial power took place in the Gan u
- ef that he was the overlord
flatter himself with the beli
valley a httle before AD 1090.1 It had already extended : India. The area under the con
trol of Candrad eva is poss ibly indi
ares to KanaUJ.2 . Its rulers became known as the Gahadaval s
cate d by the daim, uniformly
made in man y Gah aqav ala g ran ts, that
azwars. From the genealogical lists of the kings of the cihad he protected the holy places
(tirtha) of Ka.Si , KuS ik a, Utta ra-K osala
dynasty we learn that one Yasovigraha came to this earth whn the rast han a is to be
n of Hall, that Ind
and Indrasthana. If the suggestio
kigs of the sola race went to heaven.4 This may indicate that be acce pted , this wou ld
or Old Delhi,
identified with Indraprastha
. flounshed after the downfall of the. GuiJara-Pratihara ll of nea rly the
show that Candradeva beca
Y_asovtgraha me prac ti ca y the rule r
kings who belonged to th e so1ar race. There IS no reference to
h.''2<l
ted Provinces ofAgra and Oud
whole area now known as the Uni
,
y.asoVIgraha
as a ryal personage. None of the numerous Gahadavala Several inscriptions of the reig
n ofChandrad eva were disc over ed.
";
ts en. s his royal title. He was "a noble (personage) . . who) . ( The Chandravati grant (I) was foun
d nea r the fort at Cha ndr avat i in
F e nu _I splendour ("':as) as it were the sun incarnate."6 The
the Benares district.21 It begins
with 'Om svas ti' and invo kes the
;fo t of the Vadagaya-grama22 in
_ the
n gtcal lists then men non the name of Mahicandra 7 He de
goddess Sri. It mentions the gran
f: t
at d the ost of his eemies, and by en trusting to his arm t e wh ole h Vavan a-Pattala to the Brahman Var
undvaya (ra ?) Sarm an by Pb.-
ipaty
.
a-Sr i
p.-Parama- Mahe5vara-nija-bhu
ur en o the earth, Se enjoyed permanent comfort.a This su g jopfujit a-Sr i-Ka nyak ub jadh
ges that by the strength of his prowess probably he occupie d the in the
the don or at first bathed
Can dradeva.23 I t also says that
: .
ltlon of a petty chief. Because no grant refers to his royal title. His
neighbourho od of Sau ri -N
aray a 1,1 a and then worshipped the
Sun
UJi ;;.a
Thi s
was Chandradeva. In most of the grants ofthe Gahadavalas there e things he mad e this gift.
and Vasudeva. After doing all thes The Cha n
are efeences t? Chandradeva who conquered and ccu ied Ka kku ra Mah ana inda .24
grant was written in AD 1 090 by Tha
<?
;
:sa
Ka ubJa) or adhipura by the prowess of his ow anns.9
1 P ate of Gondachandra describes, "When on the death
dra vati grant (II) which was enclosed in a
strong box of stone was
Vasudeva and Adi-Ke5ava, which are the two names of Lord Krsna: were found. They are important no doubt. Because they throw flood
&;>me scholars think that a Svetambara Jain temple in Candratl is of light on the social, political and religious conditions during the
still known to the local inhabitants as Candramadho. >36 This suggests rule ofGovindacandra. His inscriptions give us sufficient evidence to
the prevalence of Jainism in the kingdom of Candradeva. But no show the prosperity of Buddhism_in his kingdom. They indicate that
record refers to Buddhism in his reign. it flourished side by side with Saivism, Vair:tavism and the Sun
worship which became very prominent under the patronage of
Madanapiila GahaQ.avala rulers, queens, royal officers and their people.
Madanapala succeeded his father Candradeva in AD
1 104.57 Sev The Saheth-Maheth grant of (Vikrama) SaJllvat 1 186 I.e., AD 1 128-
29 or 1 129-30 was found in a monastery on the site of Saheth (Set)
e) inscritions f his reign were found. The Basah
i grant was
discovered m the VIllage of Basahi two miles to the north on the borders of the Gonda and Bahraich districts.411 lt contains 27
-east of the
heaquates town f th Bidhuna Tahsil (Etawah lines. It records that the donor Parama-bha!laraka Maharajadhiraja
? district, U.P.) .58
The mscnption begms With an invocation to Visnu under Parame5vara Paramamahesvara Govindacandra after bathing in the
the names
of Vasudeva and Damodara. It says that Maharajapu Ganges and Variil)asi and having worshpped Vasudva and oe
tra Govind
candra, who was a son of Madanapala, after taking bath
in the river gods in AD 1 1 28-29 or 1 1 29-30 gave the VIllages ofVihara, Panana,!
Yamuna at Asatika59 and having offered his prayer to Upalaur:ta, Vavvahali,4' Meyi-sambaddha Ghosai48 and Pothivara
the Sun, Siva
and vaudeva an? havin g worshipped them also, gave sambaddha-Payasi49in tl}e Vida Ua)- Caturasiti-Pattala to the 1!1-g
Vasab1 . the ]lavat
_ i-Pattala on
the occasion of the
the village of
UttarayaJ.la of the Buddhist friars (Siikyabhiu) of whom Buddhabhattaraka IS
Saipkcinti to the Braman A!heka in AD 1 1 04.40 The
Kamauli gran t the chief residing in the J etavana-mahavihara.50 The gi! was made
of AD 1 105 was found m the village of Kamauli near by the dopor having been gratified, by the Saugata-panvraJ
.
of th Barar:ta ofBa
the confluence kam_a
I?a and the anges at Benares. The inscription paitasakyarakita, a (resident) ofthe Utkala-de5aand his diClpl.e,
descnbes that MaharaJaputra GoVIndacandra at first the Saugata-parivrajaka-mahapar:tita Vagisvaraita (a residnt)
took his bath in
the Ganges, and then worshipped the Sun, Siva of the Coda-de5a. 1 The inscription says, "The VIctonous and glnous
and Vasudeva.
Mterwards he gave the village ofUsitha (?) in theJiavat
i-Pattala in the king, the Paramabhatraka, Maharajadhiraja, Paramesvara,
159
oqta
158 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in J-> Buddhism in Northern India after Har.Ja
Paramamahesvara Govindacandra whose feet are honoured by th commands you should (continue to) give (to the
listen to (our)
en re cir:le of kings; ho is (another) Vacaspati in investigating th : donees) the bhiigabhagaka ra, the prava'T{lkara, the turukadmy}a and
vanous sciences, who IS the lord of the three kings, viz., the A svapati all the oth er sources of income that are done.
(lord ofhorses) , e Gajapati (lord of el pha ts) and Narapati (lord Under the order of the glorious king Govindacandra tJtis grant
ofmen) ;who meditates on the footofthe illustnousParamabha!fuaka was written by Kayastha Suraditya who is proficient in all Sastras. "52
of two Bud
Maharajadhiraja Paramesvara Paramamahdvara Madanapaladeva This inscription describes that the king at the request
who in his time meditated on the foot of the illustrious Parama mon ks, who belonged to the Utkalaand Co<;la (Cola) countries,
dhist
bharaka Maharajadhiraja Paramesvara Paramamahesvara Can ma de this grant. It suggests that a close religious tie existed between
dradeva who acquired the sovereignty over Kanyakubja by ( the the two kingdoms.
Pandit Daya Ram Sahani states: "In line 19 the Buddhist ascetic
I
strength of) his own arrns,-orders, informs, and commands all the
people assembled, residing in the villages ofvihara in the district of Sakita is said to have been a native ofU tkala, i.e., Orissa and his
YadacaturaSiti, ofPanana, Upalaul)<;la, Vavvahali, Ghosadi attach ed disciple Vagisvararakita belonged to the Co<;la country. . . . The
to Meyi and of Payasi attached to Pothivara as well as the kings, Gaha<;lavala kings of Kanauj appear to have been in friendly terms
queens, heirs-apparent, ministers, priests, door-keepers, generals, with the Colas of Tanjore whose dominions extended into the
1
e it known to you that, h_aving been gratified by the Saugata of the Cola king at that time. We know very little of the history of
panvrajaka, the Mahapal)<;lita Sakyarakita (is resident) of the Utkala Buddhismin theTamil country. But there is n odoubtthat therewere
country, and his disciple, the Saugata-parivrajaka, the Mahapal)<;lita adherents of that creed down to the 13th century AD in" the country
V"agisvararaita (a resident) of the Co<;la country, I have today on a around Amaravati in the Guntur district. B esides, Kumaradevi, the
Buddhist queen of Govindachandra, was the daughter of a chief of
I
Monday, the Purl)ima tithiofthe month ofA<;lha (the moon being)
in the Purva<;lha naatra in the year comprising eleven hundred Pi!}li. Konow says it is possible to identify Pihi with Pit}lapuram in
increased by eighty-six also in figures Sarpvat 1 1 86, a<;lha Sudi 15 the modem Godavari district of the Madras Presidency. If this be the
Monday, after bathing in the Ganges at the holy Varal)asi; propitiat case, it is no matter for surprise that the two Buddhist ascetics who
ing the sacred texts, divinities, sages" men, beings and the group of pleased Govindacandra were natives ofOrissa and the Co<;la country.
the deceased ancestors; adoring the sun, whose lustre can dispel Probably, theywere introduced to the king by his queen Kumaradevi
heaps of darkness; worshipping the moon crested (Siva) ; worship who probably brought about, either directly or indirectly, the gift
ping Vasudeva the protector of the three worlds; and after offering recorded in the subjoined inscription . The sentence "puner api
to (the god of) fire an oblation rich in milk-rice bestowed again by a sasanikrtya gramii ime sad api data-these villages were given again by
charter for the enhancement of the merit and fame of my parents a charter" implies that these villages had originally been granted to
and of myself; by (pouring) from the palm of my hand water the Buddhist vihara by Jetavana, but for some reason or other
sanctified by the gokan;w and the kusa grass with a great satisfaction resumed subsequently. At Samath, queen Kumaradevi restored the
of the heart for enjoyment in the manner of other convents for (as 'Lord of the turning of the Wheel' and erected a vihara for her
long as) the moon and the sun (endure) , the six villages named accommodation. It is not impossible that the same queen also
above, together with water and dry land, mines of iron and salt; infused fresh life into the Buddhist establishment at Jetavana by
repositories (i.e., ponds) offish, pallikaras, pits and deserts up to and sending for the two Buddhist ascetics and introducing the king to
including gardens of Madhuka and mango (trees) , bushes, grass and restore the six villages which once belonged to the vihara. "55
pasture lands up to their proper limits clearly defined by their four The 8amath stone inscription was dug out to the north of the
b.oundaries, with the elevations, and depressions up?n the most Dhamekh Stupa to the south of the raised mound running east and
respectable community (Sa'T{lgha) of Buddhist friars (8akyabhiku) west over the remnants of the old monasteries of the Gupta period. 54
of whom Buddhabharaka is the chief, residing in the great con The object ofthe inscription is to record the construction ofa vihara
vent of the HolyJetavana. Bearing (this) in mind, and being ready to by Kumaradevi, one of the queens of Govindacandra of Kanauj.
161
outJ.d.hism in Narthern
India after Haa
160 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India
, ka, me ruler ofmen , and even
more won derfully an this vihara for
placed
elaborately erected by her, and might be,
Jabuki drew up a copperplate in which she represented to Kum
devi .that the Dharmcakra:Jina originally set up by Dharmas at sthavira was
there as long as moon and sun (end ure) .
.
reqmred to be repmred or set up again. Kumaradevi who was there, stay ce of the world preserves her fame , she will
yon e on the surfa
If an You Jinas shall be
apparently stranger to the country around Benares accepted h on bowing down at his pair of feet.
representation. :he inscription contains 29 lines. It begins with
be intent , then thos e lokapiilas will
es. But if any fool robs her fame
namo hhagavatyaz arya-Vasudhiiriiyi and it invokes Vasudhara and th witness h that wicked man in their wrath .
quickly punis
0 . .
Mon-56 It has four parts. The first three parts refer to the rulers e poet in eigh t
bhii iis known as the trusted fnen d of the Banga
Th
Pi!}li, Ailga
.
and the Gaha<;lavalas.57 Sri Kunda by name, the learn ed, who was
the only lion to attack
king,
ant-like heretics, who was a Rohai_la mountain
the crowds of the eleph gy of
Rulers ofP"14h'f'8 Rulers ofAriga Gliha4avalas poetical composition , he made this eulo
In the Cikkoravamsa ( trakii!a ) I ofthe fleshingjewels of beau tifully arra nged .
gs of lette rs
I her channing with strin
This proiasti has been engraved
of the lunar rae Candra by the silpin Vamana on this
I Mahana I s the Rajavarta. 1161 Thus the Sarnath
I excellen t stone which rival
Vallabharaja Madanacandra evi restored the Lord of the Turn
inscription describes that Kumarad
I kharadevi I
ing of the Wheel62 (Dhannac akra :Jina ) in accordance with the form
I Dharmasoka, "the ruler of men ."
in which it existed in the time of
Devarakita Govindacandra
Kumaradevi raita, the king of Pi\hi of the
Kumaradevi was a daughter of Deva
Cikkora clan and Sankaradevi, who was the daughter of the Aitga
The ourth of the inscription (verses 21-23) specifies the gifts
ruler Mahana of the !fak. ii\'1 family .63 It is to be noted here that the
?f KumaradeVI and .her se is sung in verse 24.Verses 25-26 then an orthodox Hindu like
marriage -of Kumaradevi, a Buddhist, with
mform us that the mscl}ptlon, which is here called a proiasti, was matr imon ial alliances between
Govindachandra proves that the
composed by the poet Sri Kui_lc;la and engraved by Vamana.!l9 The were poss ible at this time , although such
f?urth at says: jambuki having represented that the Dharmacakra Buddhists and Brahmai_las
I! Jma _?ngmally set up by Dharmasoka required to be repaired instances must have been rare.64
years. He waged wars
il Kumadvi resored the Jina (or set up a new one) and placed it i Govindachandra ruled for about forty
s ofBihar and Bengal,
Punj ab, the Pala
against the later Yaminis ofthe
a new VIhara bilt for the purpose. Jambuki was made the foremost rulers. But he established
. by the queen. "60 The inscription desc n"b es, "Ku- the Senas of Bengal, and the Kalacuri
of all pattalzkas of northern India and the
- d eVI, tcrsooth, was famous, with that king, like Sri with Visnu
- friendly relations with the Chandellas
mara was a powerful ruler. He issued
Cho}a rulers of southern India. He
and her praises ere sung in the three worlds and in the splendid s with the figur es of the bull and horse
numerous coins. His coin
harem of that king, she was indeed like the streak of the moon d goddess Lakmi etc.
man, (the seated goddess) trisula, the seate
amongst the stars. st four queens. His inscrip
were foun d.65 Govindacandra had atlea
T?e vihara, an ornament to the earth, the round ofwhich consists thre e quee ns. They were : the
of nme _s gments made by her, and decorated as it were by tions give the names of the
i Naya naka lidev i, the Pan.amahadevi
Pat!amahadevi Mahadijii
Vsudhara herself m the shape of TariJ.li , and even the creator Mahara Kumaradevi.66
jiii
Maharajiii Gosaladevi, the Pa!!amahadevi
himse.lf was taen with wonder. When he saw it accomplished with m as their religion.67
the htghest skill m_ the applying of wonderful arts and looking It is very probable that they embraced Buddhis
of the !a sahasrika there is a
In the colophon of a Nepal MS.
handsme with (the images of) gods. of anot her Bud dhis t quee n of Govindacan
!fVIng prepared t?at copperplate grant which recorded the gift reference to the name
apati -Gaja patirajya-t.ryly
to Sn-Dharmacakra:Jma, for so long a time as moon and sun endure dra.68 lt says, "Sri..Sri-Kaiiyakubjadhipatya-ASv rajiii-Sri
prata pa-va sata
on earth, and having given it to her that Jambuki was made the adhipati-Srimad-Govindacandra-devasya
pravara-Mahayana-Yayinya paramaopa sika raj iii Vasa ntad evya deya
foreost of all pattalikas by her (Kumaradevi). athi men tions that some scho lars try to
Thts Lord .of the Tuing ?f the Wheel was restored by her in dharma'yam. "69 R.S. Trip
Buddhists.70 But it
identify the last two on the ground that they were
accordance with the way m whtch he existed in the days of Dharma-
'
1 63
1 62 . Narthern India after Ha
. 171 trt
a
The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India
/J1l
J,J}!tS
l
' '
d to be eqm. valent t S82
rs refer to the missing wor
99 sl o
ola
I
II e s ch mse.
- as vs 1245 . But that is, however
is generally believed thatVasantadevi was another Buddhist quee n of s m , a mer e sun
ll give date
!I Covindacandra.71
"" ' t}le Gaya stone mscn ' pll'on gives US an account of B
U ddh'ISm lll .
-
n<ld
odh a .
m the d'IS t
Ic
The B lt was fou nd in Bod h Gay
_
o ofja acandra.
Vijayacandra the kin_gm ? ; r with 01!' namo Buddhiiya ad e _praise
s
hisattva Lokdvara, kaJata _
t open s
Covindacandra had at least three sons.72 The Benares grant of AD
iha r. a
l1 , Sng han
a_
of Gay
-Bud dha the Bod as the
1 1 33 refers to the Maharajaputra-Yuvaraja-Asphoacandra.n The the Adt and the' monk S'n- mitra. Thisla stperson ts descnbed
dh a ) s th e
' li Cagana grant of AD 1 143 mentions the Maharajaputra RajyapaJa (B U d - 'ajayacandra.83 The insc .
npu . on reco r d
Dl}(sa-
gurU f the n.;tSIS
0 _ np h an da .
u"
deva.74 The Benares grant describes Asphoacandra as Yuvaraja pur a, "wi th S'
of a large cave (guhii) at Jaya
lll
tru cu on . ds
(heir-apparent) which indicates that he was considered for the con s Ugratara, With her han
morning and (an ':_er
arin therein the images of
fron t and be
,\. I throne. The Kamauli grant of Vijayacan dra says that Covinda
raised upwa .
attatara
ds, ado red in the
range clthes in the vatsara of
candra's successor was Vijayacandra.75 Some scholars think that king Vikramanka
Vedas (4) :yes (2)
Tara) drape n ( 1 ) , 1 24 . . . ?"
Asphoacandra and Rajyapala probably died before their father's
J; 0 , and the moo
ped it. It is t be noted her
su red by - e that like his pre dec es
death. That was the reason why their names were not mentioned for me a
Manoratha c ; lunanism. He was a devout
the throne, and Vijayacandra ascended the throne after Covinda
candra. The Kamauli grant of Vijayacandra of AD 1 1 68 gives us sors Jaya
can ra was a followe r of Bra
his great patronage
na or Vis nu. But he exte nde d
worshtppr of Krs ttvas. Tho ugh the
indication ahout the development ofVaig1avism during the reign of
. d. aid hi homage to Bod hisa
nism , but tey ow
Vijaycandra. The latter records that "with his consent the Maharaja
putra Yuvaraja jayacandra, in (v) Samvat 1 221 (AD 1 168) , on being ::::a;:;; !
a . u rs ere followers of Brahi?
gions. That IS w y'
. to1erant attitude towards . other reli
initiated as a worshipper of the god Kra, after bathing in the thetr . th eir kingdom
s of beliefs flounsh ed m
l erent system
dha! May that smiTmg
Ganges at Varaasi near the (Temple of) god Adi-Kesava, granted d'ff . . . Bud
s Om ado rati on to
the village of Haripura in the Jiavai-Paana to e preceptor of
The mscnpuon
nature ' revealed th u gh
J ' the mark of a cluster of high lustres rising
ge tooth
Vaiava worship, the Mahapurohita Praharaja Sarman, son of mo on, look.mg hke rows of 1 ar
from a cresce nt (lit. young) .
.
Mahapurohita DikitaJagu. "76 b eau ty, th e cau s e of the ema nauon
offully exp and ed and cha nm ng
pon , freemg _ the three worlds
. - with the scripture as a wea
Jayacandra
of SarvaJna,
of ills, by the shoots, manifest all
aroud , of th . ligh t of a mullltu
pro sp
. de
eri ty
wm g With m, con fer
After Vijayacandra, his sonjayacandra ascended the throne of the of pure, noble and great virtues, gro
:
CahaQavala dynasty in AD 1 1 70. V.A. Smith states, "The grandson of up
re o the autumn moon,
Covindacandra was Jayacandra, renowned in the popular Hindi
/ t Lokdvara, the lord with the lust . ow
poems and tales of n orthern India as Raja Jaicand, whose daughter
cause as ifby the radiation ofa mas
s ofli ght spnngt g from the
ng righ t _
m h s he ar :
was carried off by the gallant Rai Pith ora ofAjmer. He was known to
the Muhammadan historian as the king of Benares, which perhaps
of knowledge of the world. Gleami
wonderful sympathy ofwhich the esse
nce IS mecy, shmes fo
, m
rosy nail s, g nt wel are unt o
may be regarded as having been his capital, and was reputed the guise of the beauty ofh is bright, clean,
greatest king in I ndia."77 It is said that he extended his territories you.
from the borders of China to the province of Malava, and from the world floun sh ' who hol ds by her
May Eka'ata . , who has made the . whi
.
te lustre
cy, l'Ike a flag of
sea to within ten days journey of Lahore.78 But according to V.A. the uplifted sword of all-pervadmg mer o fth e grace
min d con sisti ng
Smith, "it is difficult to believe that it can have been really so formed of the eculiar excellence of the good
extensive. "79
A Buddhist inscription from Bodh Caya of the reign of Jaya
to [
devoted th multitu de of dep endent
sen tien t bein gs, bes tow
brough to b
g b y the
are Nagari of the twelfth centry AD. The language of the record is of the class of enlightened siddhas, who was
emg s wer e
the senu ent
Sanskrit. As the first word of the Chronogram is missing, it is not merits of the three worlds and by whom all
possible to make an exact calculation of the date . It is evident, invited for redempti on. .
however, that the date falls somewhere within the period AD 1 183- e of him, who was th e ob'ect of
It is wonder that at the ben evolenc
i
Buddh ism n Northern Ind afte aT!ja
1 64 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in f--' ia rH 1 65
oaz a
t e was
mass of impurities. rac e . . . who
. .
With a mind free from duality and delighting to sport in life wi this eulo gm m .
. .
the maiden of emancipation, he disdainfully looked a little through
th The illustrious Piii"Qadeva, the adored scnbes, copied It d ? (on
slab ) and the patien t artisan (Dharadhara) engraved It With a
the corner of his eyes at the eight charming siddhai* with a passio the "89
n chisel.
for virtues, who, in quest of a lord, went up to him, posse ssing
It is kn own from historical records that Muhamed Ghun or
Buddhism 1 67
and the place, where the inscription was found, was about 1 30 falllily, (an d who) , inasmuch as her lovely body possessed imperish
miles.95 Some scholars refer to this inscription in the reign of nts, who was Lakmi, born from the ocean, where lovely
able orname
Jayachandra. But we know that the latter was defeated and killed by bOdY beautifies Achyuta (ViQU ) .
Sihab-ud-din Ghori in AD 1 193. H.C. Ray mentions its date AD 1 1 19- from these two there was born n o less than six sons, just as the
20 and says further that it belonged to the reign ofGovindachandra. in lligent th
te reny of five called Pippata, who one, with <;me body is
According to him, King Madana was a feudatory ofGovindachandra.
The inscription says: "0! Adoration to him-who is free from endowe Wi SIX faces (was born) as the elder son, from Siva and his
d
consort.
passions! May the illustrious Sakya lion protect you !-he who, having n.eir fifth son of those (six) resembling the five-arrowed (Kama)
.at the rising of truth (first) restrained the eight Maras (and th en) (a tlle rot of no sligt fame who is celebrated for his knowledge
nd}
attracted to himself the lords over the regions, having treated with of wisd om IS named With an appropriate name Vidyadhara 'the
contempt the difficult-to-be transgressed words of command of the hold er of wisdom'. ,
enemy Sambara, full of zeal through compassion exerted himselfto Whoe comprehen sive mind, full of taste (and) attached to the
deliver the world; and who, having reached the Bodhi-tree, attained feet of Siva, Bharati (the goddess of eloquence) never abandoned
the status of a Buddha. just as the swan never leaves the extensive Manasa lake, full of water
To cross the ocean ofworldly existence, I adore the saving Bharati, (and} situated at the foot of the lord of mountains (Himalaya) . Vain
whose eyes have protruding pupils, the goddess presiding over the is the sweetness of honey (and) the proficiency in (creating) joy of
utterances of gods. the cool-rayed (moon) ; a sham indeed is the quality of depth of the
In the race of the Sun there was, surpassing the splendour of the ocean (and) the height of the mountain; (but) enough I by the
sun, the universal sovereign, the first of kings, named Mandhata, excellent qualities of this mountain for the ascent of every single
I 'I
conquering enemies, equal to Indra, ever gladdening well protect excellency, of this unique receptacle of the abundant sparkling
ing the three worlds. nectar of benevolence, everything whatever that is endowed with
Once upon a time roaming about at his pleasure, he saw a pleasant excellent qualities has been surpassed.
lake whose waters were variegated with lines of the pollen oflotuses, Him, who knew the secret doctrine regarding elephants, (and)
(and which was) charming with the cries of flocks of sweetly singing who, unrestrai? ed, bore the burden of elephants that was causing
birds in it; and having strenuously filled it with earth, he who pleasure (to him) , the head-ornament of princes, the lord of the
delighted in good conduct, to make a canopy for his fame, then built earth, Madana, sought to attach to himself by gifts, honours and so
tl1is town of his, namedJavfia, the protection of which was entrusted forth.
to Karkota. The wealth acquired by him, who spread his fame aloft by (build
. temples,-
mg) (wealth) which gave relief to people in distress, (and
In it there were wealthy (and) very fortunate (people) , lights of
the illustrious Vastavvya family by the splendid fame of whose race filled) an bellies uf those filled withjoy at ( the receipt of) food,
the worlds are rendered white eveu now. was suffinent to exceed tile multitude of the twice-born supported
As the moon (is born) from the ocean, so in their family there was (by it) .
a personage shining like the moon w:,">e name Bilvasiva was famous; He was as it were another Bodhisattva, such as had never existed
devoted as he was to the lotus-feet of (Siva) the enemy of the god of befoe, having assumed a human body for the protection of the
love, his wealth was an object of enjoyment to the twice-born , to lllulutude of living beings.
virtuous people, and supplicants. Elevated by the knowledge of the soul, (and) with a mind
He an ocean of benevolence, who was counteracting by his noble aboe the attachment to passion and other sins of which herising was
conduct, had a son Janaka, a unique home of the elevation of e getting rid, having again and again pondered on the indifference
good, a birth-place of fortune, a site of goodness, with a heart kind towards the docne ofSugata, he having resorted
to the good path,
to people, the foremost of the good, the honoured wise counsellor caused to be built and granted to the ascetics, after
5
of the ruler of Gadhipura named Gopal>-:, convents, a dwelling causing joy, a unique home as the manner of
0Wn) fame.
it were of (his
. He, who well maintained the prosperity of his family married th,e
daughter of a noble race Jijja who was causing joy to her motller Taking delight in whatever is clear to him, the unique home of
168 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in b<za
-' ]JtJddhism in Northern India after Har.ja 169
quest of Saugata-parivrajakas Sakyarakita of U tkalad esa an d . dicate that the Gaha<;lavalas flourished when the two great royal families, sprung
ViigiSvararaita of Co<;ladesa granted six villages.114 But it is interest :om the Moon and th un, had perished"-JA, 1889, 15, I. 2: 'The lunar family may
ing to note here that his above mentioned two queens were not m en be the Tripur Kalacuns.
'DHNI, I, 506; !A, XVIII, 1 1-1 2, II. 1-2.
tioned as pattamahiidevi or samastariijaprakriy-opetii (endowed with all 1DHNI, I , 506; II, 361 , I. 2; IV, 100, I. 2; El, IX, 304, I. 2; /A, XVIII, II. I. 2. He was also
kn ow n as Mahiyala, Mahiala and Mahitala.
the royal prerogatives) , while his Hindu queens received this hon
our. Govindachandra's marriage with Kumaradevi was undoubtedly DHNI, I, 506. 9lbid.
of great political importance, for she was the grand-daughter of "Ibid. , 507; !A, 1885, 102-3, II. 2-5. According to some scholars, Bhoja was Paramara
Mathanadeva Ratrakiita and niece of the Pala king, Ramapala. Still Bhoja. The Rahan plate ofGovindachandra says that the Gaha<;!avalas flourished after
she is not found to have enjoyed the rank given to the Hindu queens. the destruction of the lunar and solar royal families. Thus we conclude from it that
Bhoja was the great Gurjara-Pratihara ruler of that time.
This may be due to the fact that in spite of his catholic outlook 11DHNI, I , 507. "Ibid.
Govindachandra, who patronized the revivalist digest-writer and "lbid.;foSB, 1 892, pp. 58 ff. 14DHNI, I , 507.
himself followed the Dharmasastra injunctions, was an orthodox "Ibid.; IH March, 1929, 91. "DHNI, I , 507.
Hindu and as such he could not very well confer the rank of 17Ibid. 18Ibid., 508; HIH, II, pp. 250 ff.
pa[!amahiidevi or chief queen on a wife, who did not share his 19DHNI, I , 508; EI, XIV, 193, II. 1 1-1 2. ""DHNI, I , 508.
21lbid., 508-9. "Now pronounced Chandra uti. It is a village on the Ganges in the
pargana of Katchir, some 14 miles from the district headquarters."-EI, XIV, 192.
religious faith and functions.115
"'DHNI, I, 509: "Modern Baragaon, a village 1 4 miles north-west of Be nares."-EI,
GENEALOGY IX, 304.
"DHNI, I, 509. "'Ibid.; El, IX, 302-5. 'lf>DHNI, I, 509.
The Giihatf,aviila Dynasty 26lbid., "It was bounded by the rivers Gomati, Bhagirathi, and Varul)a. The Pattala
has been identified with modern Katchir, the largest pargana of Benares. "-EI, XIV,
193.
Yasovigraha
I
21DHNI, I, 5 1 0; EJ, XIV, 200-9. 'if>DHNI, I, 510.
Mahichandra
I 29lbid. "'Ibid.; !A, XVIII, 9-14.
"DHNI, I, 5 1 0; !A, XVIII, 9-14. 02DHNI, I, 510.
Chandradeva
I "Ibid.
"Ibid., 510, fn 1 : "A SvetambaraJain temple in Chandra uti is still known to the local
inhabitants as Candramadho. "-EI, XIV, 197.
Madanachandra
I
"DHNI, I, 5 1 1 fn 2: "Probably founded and named after himself by Chandradeva."
"'DHNI, I , 51 1 , fn 1 ; EI, XIV, 197.
Prthvisrika- (Ralhya or Ralhal)adevi )
I
,
own as B undelkhand
O udh, wa!Jajakabhukt
i. "2 Fom the traditions pre rved
DHNI, I , 522. "Ibid "'EI, XI, 191 1-12, 25-26.
of
50
..This
..
frrlikiimyam mahimii latha,- IS'tvam ca vasztvam - ay zta.-DHNI, V, 25, fn 3.
- . -
fam ily Nrpa Na nnuka
s
I
85
n J e of the Buddha-DHN/, V, 25 fn . In thi
IS ferocious form of blue Tara identified wah E!Gyata. According to some
J_l . . -
. .
scholars, she was MahadnaTara "Both he vaneties are, however, believed to be of
Vlikpati
I
the same class of blue Tar a "-!HQ, v , 1929, 1 7, fn 1. I
I
northern origin and belong to
87"! cou 1d trace no mention of this vane of T-
. VJjayaSakti
I
ara el sewhere. "-IHQ, 1 7, fn 2. Jayasakti
88'This description is n o t3.however, defimte enough to identity this Tara with any
_
a small territory known as Khajraho (Kh
ajuraho ) , the Kh arjj
anga,
5 . THE CNDRATRE\1\S OR THE CHAND LLAS OF _ tion s.8 In the Khajra ho ins cription of Dh
vahaka of the inscrip chs ton e to
mentioned as 'a tou
JfjAKABHUKTI OR BUNDELKHAN Nannuka is referred to as nrfJaand is yfu lly dec or ate d
who pla
. test the worth of the gold of the regal order, of his fam e' ,
h the san dal
It is generally believed that the nse of the Chandellas in the south of the faces of the women of the quarters wit like a
:;;
the Jumna was one of the auses at brought the downfall of the and who se enemi es car rie d 'his com ma nds on their heads,
Gmjara-Pratihara kingd om m nor em India. I V.A. Smith says: "The
175
India after Haa
1 74 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in f.-..J
'U
' lQ lJddhism in Northern
th to the Malwas,
garland'.9 An.oth Khajraho inscription of Dhanga refers to Na Mit hi las, (and) was as it were a god of dea
ened th e was to the Kurus
nuka as Mahtpatt Whose prowess reminded the gods of Arju ght dist ress on the shameful Cedis, who
b rou . rching fire to the Gmjara. s.,
Tese o inscriptions indicate that Nannuka was a powerful r:ro wh o
hat a stor
m IS to the trees' and a sco
defeated in battle the C ed"I kmg
Vakp? who was the .son :>f.'annuka, cme to e throne after th W
f fiear'
he impetuouslv
con que re d v 1anJara
eas ily
c es were countless . . . , he
na
latte. Frm the two mscnptlons we get mformat10n about him. The
wh ose for
first mscnpuon says that whe.n Vakpati defeated his enemies in J}lOun talll we learn that 1asvarman p1aye .
d a
. "'23
v. '
which was ruled by Rajyapala, the Gmjara-Pratihara ru er 42 : minatha which was made by Lakhat;ta.
It me ntions the dedication of
latter was killed by the former because he had made terms ith the rmadeva.!l& The Ma u stone
an ima ge in the reig n of Madanava
Muhammedns.43 From the Dubkund inscription44 we learn that a rocky hill in the vicinity of the
inscription57was fou nd at the foot of
refers to the construction of a
Kacchapaghata rulers, of that place, were his vassals and it is very town of Ma u in the Jhansi district. It
ription58 mentions that a
probable that he extended the territory ofhis kingdom. It is said that temple of ViQU. The Ajaigarh stone insc
e le ofGwal _ orwas also a vassal ofthe Chandellas.45 A Chandella certain R.auta Veda of the village of Kar tia erected something in the
mscnpuon men nons that "Bhojadeva, togetherwith Kalachuri-Chan-
1 79
> -Ihis rrt i
n Narthern India after Hars.
a
The Rise and Decline or
.
1 78 '1 Buddh '
..,m tn lndia JJtla
t king
ramardi7u mentions tha
. . grant of the reign of Pa
The
ayau-durga for the use of all. The KhaJraho Jam a image Se mr a ndfa th er to 309 Brah
. wardi refe rs to a gra nt made by his gra
seated on a lotus
mscnpuon dated 1 1 57-58 of the retgn of Madanavannan says that ofLakmi with four arms
sons of Salha Maha- gana an d othe rs "1 ways bow dow n to ra;s. The re was an image
the top of the first cop
perplate of this g rant. The
1' s lll foun d on des tal of a b roke n
on71 was incised on the pe
shoba
Sambhavanatha." All these inscriptio enuon above are impor
tan t from the point ofview of the. P? tticaand rehgiOus history ofthe image inscripti reig n of Para }lla rdi. It
a a statue
ed to the
.
at Mahoba. It belong man.72
ns that danavaman widely J n the Brahman Ratna Sar
country. We learn from c to
ns
e land
entio
; ove KalnJr, Khajuraho th e gra nt of som plate . The
extended his dominions. top of the first
, Ajai
e
ge of Gaja-Larpi on the
garb and Mahoba. The Au si and au scr_tpt.lon s suggest that his
. ; .
; rier w as an ima
stone inscption" w
fo nd near Maho ba. It b <:_long
sud
e t
eva ya
power extended in the Ban andJ asi stncts and the neighbour- Bagha . It op en s With Orp namo bh aga vat e Va
the reign Pa rap ardt of th e
rl: ! : t _ es f Madnavannan were l)U) . The Kalinjar ston
e inscription
mg regions. H.C. Ra sa s " (Vil}
!
r:; e s 'Sa uri' kal) !ha at
probably included or r ag e of which the base was and inv ok the temple of Nila
mardi was found nside only
formed by the Vindhya Bhanrer and Katmur ranges and the two uwe of Para with ' namaQ Siva ' .74 Its first 24 lines contain
sides by the rivers Betwa nd _ d the northern boundary li ne l{alinjar. lt begins add to
ress Siva and Paiv ati. Sev eral insc rip
of Baghelkhand."6o We are :; aaavarman deeated th e an eulogi
stic an d glo wing
ample evidence to sho w that
tions of the reig
n ofParamardi give us the
Par_amara ruler of Malava,eJ the Kalac un kmg of Chedi62 and the shed side by side in
GuJarat King Siddhara'i:.ia In . fiterce fiIght The .Mu mcnuon says that
. . Va i Q.av ism , Sa ivis m and Jainism flo uri
asty during the rule of P aram ardi .
of the Cha ndel la dyn Bud-
kingdom anything about
-
. m:raJ - so of Chan d ipu ra." The Ajaigar h roc k ins cription of
Bardai says thatParamardi maintaine d -very h2s ule attitude towards
n_
a tan k at Na nd
its water an d ablishment of a
AD 1281 of the reign of Vir
avarman81 records the est
the famous Chahamana rul er Prth - ter whose name
. .
VlfaJa III. The latter defeated ) by Viravarman 's minis
him and Kutub-ud-din lbak n 1 202 captured Kalinjar and de- statue ofVinayaka (Gal)da
these inscriptions, there
are also other
l was GaQapati . Apart fro m rei gn of Viravannan.
feated Paramardi in fierce fight. ich belonged to the
II epigra ph ica l rec ord s wh
1 80 17te Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India JJUdidh srn in No-rthern India after Haa 181
worshiPP
.
s
nions. It is known that Kirat Singh (Rai) , the king of Kalinjar, was
. .
manical Parvati and the naked female worshipped to this day by some
tribes of Gol)Qa. In the bardic account of Chand also referenc e is Viu, Hari and Bhagavana Yasudeva; in some recors ther names
also occur, such as Muriiri, Madhava, Puruottama, Narayan, Upen
made to Maniya Devi as the goddess of the Chand elias to whom they dra, Sauri, Sakra, Dait:yarati etc., as well as tlte names of th dtfferent
appealed in times of danger.
forms of his incarnations such as Varaha, Vamana, Nrsll1lha and
The extant epigraphic records as well as the numerous temples of
Rama.
1 82 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in f.--.-> .
Buddhism in Nmthern India after Haa 1 83
'<la
making grants oflands to BrahmaQas, as recorded in the Semra, the Both the BodhisattvaAalokitesvara images are excellently carved
Icchawarand the Mahoba plates. Pratapa, Madana's younger brother, and are regarded as the fmest specimens of Indian sculpture.
who was a very influential person in tl1e court, undertook diverse Iconographically, one ofthem appears to be Si1p.hanada Bodhisattva
works of public in!erest including erection of temples and installa (2' 8" high), and the other PadmapaQi (2' 2") . The former is seated
.
m Riijalilii pose on a conventionally carved lion, whose face is turned
tion of images of Siva, Kamala and Kali . . ..
The devotion of the Chandella rulers to Saivism is defini tely towards the Master. The Boddhisattva holds an aksamiilii in his left
indicated by the assumption of the title of 'Paramamahdvara' in hand and a trident entwined by a serpent is placed beside his right
their official documents, viz., the Nanyaura Plate 'B' (Devavarman), hand. The halo behind his head is carved in a lotus design .... The
Nanyaura Plate 'C' and Kalinjar inscription no. 4 ( Madanavarman) , PadmapaQi is also seated in Riijalilii pose, but on a lotus throne and
Semra Plates, Icchawar Plate, MahobaPlate, Pachar Plate and Ciirkhari the loms stalks rise on either side of the image. Profuse ornaments
Plate 'B' (Paramardi) , Carra Grant (Trailokyavarman), Carkhari ecorate the different limbs of the deity unlike, the Si1p.hanada
Pla!e 'C' (Viravannan) and Girkhari Plate 'D' (Hammiravarman) . lffiage, which has only a simple garland in the form of yajiiopavita.
Siva has been worshipped in the liitga form all over India from a Te thir? image ?t the group is the Buddhist oddess Tara ( 1 ' 9"
very early period. The Chandellas also were adherents to the worship high), With beautiful ornaments all over her body. The goddess is
seated in Vajrasana posmre with legs crossed. The left hand, holding
of Siva in the liitga form. a ilotpala, is in vitarkamudrii and the right one in Varada with a
The worship of Siirya or the Sun-god also appears to be qui te .
popular among the Chandellas . lllintature vajra placed on the plain. The rim ofthe black slab has five
Sfllall images of Dhyani Buddhas. .. . An image of Buddha has also
r
,
1 85
/Jtlddhzsm in Nmthern
. India after Haa
184 .
-
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in ],.,_,.
GENEALOGY
be:_n oun there. He is seated in Pamasana (legs crossed) i
n
Bhum1sparsa mudra_. . . . The find of these Images at Mahoba poin t
t
the prevalence of the Mahayana Buddhism among some sec tion s 0 Nannuka
the people of the Chand ella kingdom. I
Another indirect reference to the existence of Buddhist worship Yakpati
in the region is noticed in the Garkhari plates of Paramardideva I
.
While granting an entire village to certain Brahmai_IaS, particum;
care was taken to exclude 5 hala.s of land belonging to a Buddhist r VijayaSakti alias Vijaya,
shrine. JayaSakti Vljja and Vija
alias J ejjaka
and JJa
Garkhari, the plates of Paramardideva, vs 1 236, provenance un I
known, are preserved in the Garkhari durbar, (Bundelkhand) . In Rahila
cised on two copperplates, with the figure ofGaja-Lakmi on the first I
plate. After usual eulogies to the early heroes,Jayasakti and VijayaSakti, Harsa-Kaiichaka
it records the grant of the village Sagaudo in the Kirayida viaya to a . I
numberofBrahmins of the Vatsa gotra, on Monday, the 7th day of the Yasovarman alias
bright fortnight of Caitra in vs 1 236 by king Paramardideva, whose Lakvarman
ancestors were Madanavarman and Prthvivarman, from the royal
camp ofVilasapura. Five halas of land of the same village previously
endowed to a Buddhist monastery was however, excluded from the Kr1,1apa-Asarva
Dhanga
present grant written by K.ayastha Subhananda ofthe Vastavya family
I I
and engraved by Silpi Palhana, a 'Vaidagdhi-visvakarmana'.
Ganc;la Devalabdhi
I
The Prabodhacandrodaya ( of the time of king K.irtivarman) refers
to the existence of the Saugata sect of Buddhists evidently in the
Vidyadhara
Chand ella country. I t is claimed in the drama that the Buddhist sect I
lost its hold on the people at the rise of viveka ( conscience) .
Vijayapala-Bhubanadevi
I
Jainism had some hold on the people, particularly the trading
community. The Khajraho inscription no. 3 ofvs 1 0 1 1 , carved on the
left doorjamb of the temple of Parsvanatha, records a number of K.irtivarman
Devavarman
gifts and endowments ofgardens, named Pahilava!]ka, Candrava(.ika,
Laghucandrava!}ka etc. by one Pahila, a devotee ofjinanatha, who
claims to have been held in esteem by King Dhanga. The devotion of
.
Sellaksanavarman .
Prthvivarman
i I
the 'Grahpati ' family, to which Pahila belonged, is also evidenced by
the Darbat-Santinatha image inscription of vs 1 1 32, in which it is
Jayavarman
found that during the reign of the illustrious K.irtivarman, son of
Vijayapala, the image of Santinatha was installed by a group of his Madanavarman Pratapa
hereditary ministers (kulamatya vrruJa) , viz., Pahila and Jiju. They I
were disciples of the Jaina teacher Vasavendu or Vasavachand ra. An Yasovarman II
other Grahapati family, devoted to Jainism, is also mentioned in in I
scriptions engraved on pedestal of some Jaina images, at Khajrah0 Paramardi
One of them refers of Sret}li Sri Pa1,1idhara, "Oq1 Grahapatya.nvaye I
Sresthi Sri Panidhara" and another dated in Samvat 1 205 refers to
Sre!h i Sri Paidhara and his sons, Sret}li Ti (Tri) Vikrama Athana
Trailokyavarman
I
and Lakmidhara. This was a family of Sret}lis or bankers and
merchants.
'
'
in Nmthern India after Har.ta
186 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in J.... . . 187
' ""-Za
J3ttddhism
I
of Chedi was Gayakan:ta.
<!Ibid., 71 1. The defeated Kalacuri king
"Ibid.; El, I, 1 98, v. 1 5. "'DHNI, II, 71
Kirat Rai (? Kirtivarman II)
1.
67lbid., 713.
I
"Ibid., 712. ;slbid.
"'Ibid., 719; EHI, 408. IBEHJ, 408.
I
!I
Durgavati-Dalpat of Garha Ma1,1Qala 'lflDHNI, II, 713; El, IV, 1570.
nvHNI, II, 714; ASRC, XXI , 74 .
REFERENCES
'>DHNI, II, 717; ASRC, XXI, 82; lJJ
74DHNI, II, 71S.l9;J1 SB, XVII, 813-1 7; ASRC, XXI, 37-38.
'"Ibid.; El, I, 329, v. 7. 77DHNI, II, 727-28.
15DHNI, II, 727.
'DHNI, II, 665. 2EHI, 405. 'DHNI, II, 666. '"Ibid., 728; CC/M, I, 253. 19DHNI, II, 729.
Ibid., 736. 'Ibid., 666; EI, I, 122 ff. 80Ibid., II, 730-31; ASRC, XXI, 51; El, I, 325-30.
6DHNI, II, 667; Ell/, 405. 'DHNI, II, 668. SIDHNI, II , 731-32; ASRC, XXI, 52. 82DHNI, II, 733.
86lbid.
"'ERK, 184-208.
"Ibid. 9lbid.; EI, I, 1 25, v. 1 0. "'Ibid., I I , 7334. "'Ibid., II, 734.
'"DHNI, II, 668; El, I, 140, W. 14-15. llDHNI, II, 669. 86Ibid. 87lbid., 735.
121bid.; EI, I, 125, w. 1 1-12. fJJDHNI, II, 736.
"DHNI, II, 669; El, I, 141, w. 1 6-1 7. 14DHNI, I I , 669.
"Ibid., 670; EI, I, 126, v. 15.
6. THE KAlACURIS
16DHNI, II, 670; El, I, 14-42, v. 20. 17DHNI, 11, 671.
181bid.; El, I, 1 3, v. 1 7.
The epic and the Purii1,1ic traditions say that the Haihyas were
:
19DHNI, II, 672; El, I, 1 2, v. l. 7.
DHNI, II, 672; El, I , 1 26, w. 20-21 . 'DHNI, 1 1 , 672; EHI, 406. descendants of Sahasrajit, a son of Yadu and grandson of Yayati,
1MEll/, 406. <t!DHNI, I I , 674-75; EI, I, 126-28, 1 32-34. Mahismati2 which received its name after Mahismat, a descendant of
-nDHNI, II, 676. "'Ibid., 676-77. 26Ibid., 677. Haihya, a grandson ofSahasrajit, was their capii.aJ.. Atjuna Kartavirya,
29El, I, 1 235; ASRC, II, 426; XXI 65. , 'JiijDHNI, II, 678; Ell/, 406.
who is also referred to as Samraj and Cakravartin, was regarded as the
DHNI, II, 680-82. "'Ibid., 681. "Ibid. 683.
greatest king of this line.3 Talajangha,4who had many sons, was next
'
DHNI, II, 683-84; El, I, l37-47;J1SB, III, 159-84; NKGW, 441 -62. Avantis and Tu1,1Qikeras, who were all Talajanghas.5 But from inscrip
DHNI, II, 684. "Ibid., 687. ,.Ibid.; EI, I, 21 9-22, v. 99. tions we also learn that there were some other branches of this line.
The kjunayanas, who paid their homage to Samudragupta, the
,.DHNI, II, 687; EI, I, 197, 203, v. 4. ""EHI, 407.
Gupta emperor claimed their descent from the Haihya Atjuna.6 But
41DHNI, II, 688; ATK, IX, l l 5-16.
:a:1,
42Jbid.
407; El, I, 21 9-22, v. 22. 44DHNI, II, 689.
the Kalacuris, 7 who claimed such descent, was regarded as the most
important line. Several inscriptions from the sixth century AD down
:
lb1d., 689, fn 3. ..Ibid., 689; EI, I, 21 9-22, v. 22.
"'bid., 689-90. 48lbid., 697; E1, I, 219-22. to the fifteenth century AD refer to their name. The earliest inscrip
DHNI, 697; El, I, 219-22. tions of the Kalacuris mention that the Avanti-Mandhata region was
"'Di!Nl, 702; El, I, 19S.201 , w. 9-10, 3S.39. "DHNI, 11, 705. their important centre. 8 Their power extended in the south up to the
:
>2Ib1d.; ASRC, XXI 34, pl. X, A
Nasik district Then they came into conflict with the Chalukya king,
,
"DHNI, II, 70S.9; ASRC, XXI 73. and defeated him. 9 This Buddha has been identified with the son of
Sankaraga1,1a.I From the name Buddha it appears that he was a
,
II I
. Northern Indi a after Hars. a
ou dJhzsm n
1 89
I The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in J ..
'""la
1 88 ...
Vit:JU (Bhagavan)-created
I
devout worshipper of the Lord Buddha and was a followe r of Bu
ct.
dhism. The Kalacuris extended their dominions in the west as far
Anand in the Kaira district of Gtarat; and on the east their pow Brahman-created
I
reached up to the whole course ofNarbada including a large porti o Atri-from his eye
of Bundelkhand and Baghelkhand.U But .
the Chalukyas of BadarnI I
pressed them very much and the Kalacuns lost most oftheir sou thern Candrama (the moon)
provinces. 12 The Gurjara-Pratiharas also invaded the region of the I
Kalacuris and forced them to leave Malava in the seventh and eighth Buddha
centuries ADY As a result the Kalacuris stayed in the provi nces I
around the upper course of the Narbada and Bundelkhand.14 In the Manu
meantime the Gurjara-Pratiharas became very powerful in northern I
na
I
India and owing to their heavy pressure the Kalacuris could not stay
in their own land and they then decided to move in different parts
Puriiravas-UrvaSi
I
oflndia. Only one branch of the line decid ed to stay in the Madhya
Pradesh and other branches went towards the nothern and sou them
Ayus
I
parts of India. It is known from historical records that after the
downfall and the disappearance of the Gurjara-Pratihara power, the Nahu
Kalacuris again rose into prominence and became veryprominentin I
North Indian history. Yayati
The various branches of the Kalacuris of northern India can be I
divided under three groups, viz., the Kalacuris of Gorakhpur, the Yadu and four other kings
Kalacuris of Dahala15 and the Kalacuris of Tmp.mat:J a. 16 I
Sahasrada23
I
,
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in lnd .
za
I pururavas-Urva.Si
Sivaraja (II)
I In his family
name lost-Bhiida Bharata-'whosepure fameisproclaimed bythejamuna, hammed
I in by more than a hundred posts of horse-sacrifices (offered by
Lakmai_Jaraja (III) him) .'
Kfulcana
I In his family (anvaya)
II Bhimata (II) The Haihya Cakravarti Kartavirya Aijuna, who praised Ravai_Ja . . .
' !. 1 . He beget the Kalacuri VatpSa..
From the inscription we do not know the name of the king I
whose regn thIS mscnpt10
. ' . . . ll Kokkalla32 was regardd as the founder of the Kalacuri dynasty of
n was engraved. The epigraph recorded
the erecuon of the brick shrine in which the large black stone ima J)ahala.33 The Bilhari stone inscription which belonged to the reign
of e Buddh was originally enshrined and near the doorway
wh1h It.
was d1scovered.25 There is no date in it.
of Yuvaraja says that Kokkalladeva ''having conquered the whole
earth, set up two unprecedented columns of his fame,-in the
Sankaragai_Ja was the foder of the Kasia Kalacuri group. His son quarter of the pitcher-born (Agastya, i.e., the south) that well-known
d successor was Nannar_:ap. Lamai_Ja, who was his son succeeded Kn1,1arajaand in the quarterofKuvera ( i.e., in the north) Bhojadeva,
him. The next ruler was Sivariija I. His prowess resembled the light a store of fortune."!'! The Benares grant of Kafl,la mentions that the
of the flame created by (the sage) Aurvaand who was more successful hand ofKokkalla "granted freedom from ear to Bhoja, Vallabharaja,
even than Kirti.26 This Kirti has not yet been identified. The next the Citrakiitabhiipala Haa, and raja Sankaragal)a. "35 The same
ruler was Bhimata (I) . Then Rajputra Lakmai_Ja (II) succeeded his inscription refers to Kokkalla's marriage with a lady named Nata or
father, Bhimata (1) . After him, Sivaraja II ascended the throne. He Nagadevi (Nakhayadevi) , who belonged to the Chan della dy
produced confusion in the circle of his enemies.27 His son was "the nasty. According to Kielhorn, KfI_Ja-Vallabha ofMalkhed (c. AD 878-
cestjewe ofkins. " La!<mai_Jaraja III was his son. He was praised for 912) , and Har was the Chandella Har ofKhajraho (c. AD 1 000) .37
his VIctones agamst his enemies.28 He was succeeded by his son Knl.la II married Kokkalla's daughtr, 38 who, according to the Karda
_
Bhimata II who earned fame by his fierce prowess.29 plates, was the younger sister of Sankuka.311 A. Cunningham and
Kielhorn say that Bhojadeva of the Bilhari and Benares inscriptions
The Kalacuris ofDiihala or Tripurf'J was Bhoja I, the Gurjara-Pratihara ruler ( c. 8382) . 40 H. C. Ray says,
From epigraphic evidence we learn that the Kalacuris reigned in "But as one of the contemporaries of Kokkalla, the Chandella
Madhya Pradesh for about 300 years. Their records mention that Hadeva, was possibly a contemporary of Mahipala I, the younger
they claimed their descent from heaven. Here is given the mythical brother ofBhoja II (c. AD 908-1 4) , it isjust possible that the Guijara
portion of their genealogy.31 contemporary of Kokkalla may have been Bhoja II, and not Bhoja
I. "41 According to Cunningham, Kokkalla probably reigned in the
Visnu: from his navel period between AD 860 to 900.42 H.C. Ray states that he reigned
(The god) born from the lotus (Brahma) between AD 875 and AD 925.43 He established matrimonial alliances
I th e Ra!J<tkii and the Chandellas and also maintained friendly
Atri tie With the Guijara-Pratiharas ofKanauj.44 The Amo<;la plates of the
I
Haihya Prthvideva ofTutpmai_Ja of AD 1079 describes that Kokkalla
The friend of the ocean (the moon) plun <;tered "the territories of the Karl)ata, Vanga, Guijara, Konkal_)a,
I and Siikambhari kings and also of those born of the Turuka and
Buddha (Or Bodhana)-son-in-law of the friend of the lotuses Raghu families."45 Here the word Turuka wants to mean the Turks,
(i.e., the Sun) Who represented the ruling families of Ghazni and Ghiir, and the
lurks did not invade India before the middle of the 1 Oth century AD.
'
I' The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism uddhism in Nurthern India after Ranta
192
B
in /,.,_.. 193
'<ta
stands close to the great temple of Siva at Candreh e' on the Son river
Nohaldvara. These two inscriptions show us that Saivism prospered
in Rewa. "55 I t belongs to the Mattamayiira sect of the Saiva ascetics.55
' II
in the Cedi kingdom under the patronag<; of Yuvaraja II and his
'
It records the re-excavation and rebuilding ofa well by Prabodhasiva
people. The king was a devout follower of Saivism.
which was formerly excavated by his guru Prasan tasiva. The latter was Kokkalla II succeeded his father Yuvaraja ll. Thejubbulpore and
a disciple ofPrabhavasiva.57 Another stone inscription was found in Khaira plates of Yaal).-Karr:ta describe him "a lion-like prince, a
the ruins of Gurgi which was located near the town of Rewa.58 It progress ofwhose four-fold ( caturanga) armies was checked (only) by
mentions that Yuvacijadeva, son of M ugdhatunga, brought the their encountering the masses of waves of the four oceans. "70 These
Mattamayiira ascetic Prabhavasiva to this part of the country and the inscriptions inform us that the chief ministers ofYuvacija II install d
latter accepted a temple. An unpublished inscription was found at him on the throne.71 This gives us in dication that he was not the heir
Malpuram in Madras. I t iforms us that Yuvacija offered 3 lakhs apparent of his father or at the time of Kokkala' s death he was still a
of villages as a bhikii to the Saiva teacher Sadbhavaambhu of the minor.72 No record gives a detailed account of his reign. It shows that
Dahala-mar:t<;lala located between the Bhagirathi and the Narmada.59 he had a very inglorious reign. Kokkalla II, like his predecessors,
The Bilhari stone inscription says that Yuvacija's wife Nohala n ear probably was a patron of the Mattamayiira Saiva ascetics."
the odem Bilhari built a temple of Siva and also gave the villages Gangeyadeva Vikramaditya (c. AD 1 031-41 ) , who was the son of
Dhangata-pataka Por:t<;li, Nagabala, Khaila-pataka, Vida, Sajjahali Kokkalla II, ascended the throne after his death.74 He was an able and
and Go!hapali.60 She also gave the villags of Nipaniya and Ambi ambitious ruler. He wanted to attain the position of paramount
pataka to 1Svara8iva who was a disciple of Sabdasiva, as a reward for power in northem India, and from his records we learn that he
his Jeaming.61 All these inscriptions inform us about the popularity succeeded to a considerable extent The Piawan rock inscription of
of Saivism in the kingdom of Yuvacija I. AD 1 03875 was found at Piawan which was about 25 miles to the north
Lakmar:taraja succeeded his father Yuvacija I . The Bilhari inscrip east of Rewa. It begins with the name of Srimad-Gangeyadeva
tion mention s that the former was a worshipper of Siva.62 T he Maharajadhiraja Paramdvara . . . Mahamar:t<;lalesra. It contains the
Goharwa grant of Lakmi-Karr:ta states that he conquered the kings word Mahesvara which indicates that it was a Saiva record. This
'
194 The Rise and Dedine of Budhd ism in J-> /JtlJdhism in Nmthem India after Harya 195
<ta
ed some of the sacred Buddhist institutions and killed
inscription says that before AD 1 038 he was on thron
successor of his father. The Goharwa plates ofLami-Ka
e of Dahala as tr0P::eekr five (men) , out of whom four were odained mn and
fl.la76 info a a}tog p- aka. At this time the celebrated Buddhtst monk Dtpankara
us that the kiQg of Kira was imprisoned by Gangeyade
.
rule of Anga, Kuntala and Utkala were defeated at
va and
his hands. Th
: n e u as
snmana \l a)so called Ati5a) who had accepted the post o fH'tgh Pnest
_.--
. rest'd ence at the
e \rikram aSila at the request of Nayapala, was m
Khatrha and the Jubbulpore grants of Yasa-KarQa 0.f _
-
mention h' of Mahabodhi at Vajrasana. When a good deal of church
arne Vikramaditya.n These two ins<::riptions give Gangeyadev h
VIctory over the kmg. of Kuntala. The Ptawan rock inscription as
a: Vl
[urOI re was carried away as booty, Ati5a showed no concern or
as the Kalacuri records mention that Gangeyadev well ange r. But afterwards when victory turned towards (Nayapala) and
the troops of KarQya were being slaughtered by th anmes of
a at the feet of the
holy fig-tre e at Prayaga took up his residence.78
This suggests that
after conquering Allahabad and Varanasi he exten Magadha, he took Kafl.lya and his men under his protection and sent
ded his power up them away. Atisa then caused a treaty to be concluded between the
to Gange s. in the north. It is very possible that
the whole of the
Baghelkhund Agency came under his possession .79 two kings. With the exception of the articles of food that. were
Baihaqi says that . .
when Ahmed Niyal-tigin, the general of the Yamin destroyed at the time of war, all other thmgs whiCh had fallen m the
i king Mas'iid
(c. AD 1 030.40) , attacked Benares in AD 1 034, which hands of the parties were either restored or comnsatd for.
was at that time . . .
under the control of Gangeyadeva.80 The latter has Unmindful of his health even at the nsk of hts life, Asa agam and
been identified again crossed the rivers that lay between the two kingdoms and
with the Kalacuri king Gangeya. The Piirijatamaiijari
that Paramara king Bhoja (c. AD 1010-55) defeated
ofMadana states thereby brought peace to all living beings.89 ng KarQya o the wet
is very probable that Gangeya was a devout worshipper
him in battle.8I It has been identified by scholars With . the Tnpun_ Kalacun Lakrm
. yadeva Vikramaditya of Siva. Kama. The Bheraghatinscription ofAlhanadevi mentions the latter's
Gange was succeeded by his son Lakmi
Kart:ta or Kart:tadeva ( c. AD 1 041-70) . In the latter' victries. It says, "while this king, of unprecedented lustre, gave full
s Benares grant play to his heroism, the PiiQ<;lya relinqished violence, the Murala
there IS. a reference to the forme
r who meditated on the feet of
Parama-bhatraka-Maharajadhiraja-Paramesvara-Sr gave up his arrogant bearing, th _Kunga enered the path of e
Several records of his successors also mention that
i-Yamadeva.82
good, Vanga trembled with the Kahngas, the ra stayed orne hke
the feet of _Yamadeva. Even the later Chandellas
they meditated on a parrot in the cage, (and) the Hiit:ta left offbemg erry. . From the
ofJejaka-bhukti .
adopted thts method from the Kalacuris.84 In the genea above facts we learn that Lami-Kafl.la occupted an tmportant
logial lists of position in the political history of ancient India. After the comple e
the Kalacuris there is no refere nce to the name
of Viimadeva. destruction of the Paramaras and the Chandellas, Central Indta
Though Yamadeva is a well-known name of Siva, but
the reference came under his full control. From the discovery of his inscriptions at
to the epithets Parama-bharaka-Maharajadhiraja-Pa
ramesvara may Paikore Benares and Goharwa (Allahabad district) , the establish
suggest that the predecessor of the reigning prince
is meant by the men t ofhis close ties with the Gmjara, Kart:tata and Gau<;la kings and
1.1 name of Vamadeva.85 Lakmi-KarQa was regard ed
as one of the
I' greatest Indian conquerors. The Riisa Mala descri
bes, "At thi time
the assumption of the titles of Traikalmgadhipati, we conclude that
for some time he extended his dominions from the sources of the
the raja named Karun in Dahul land, the modern
Tipera, and over Banas and the Mahi rivers in the west to the estuaries of the Hooghly
the sacred city ofKa.Si or Benares. He was the son
of queen Demut, in the west and from the Ganges-Jumna valley in the north to the
dstinuished or her religio\}S observances, who lost her
life in giving upper wate'rs of the Mahiinadi, Wainganga, Wardha and T_a pti.91 Bt
him btrth. Bemg born under a good star, this king
temto . ry towards all four points
extended his towards the latter part of his life he was defeated by Nayapala and _!ts
of the compass. One hundred and
thirty-six kings worshipped the lotus feet of Kurun. "86 son Vigrahapala III, the Chandella king Kirtivannan, th
Parara
It is said that ruler Udayaditya, the Chalukya king Bhima I and the Chalkya kin
Lakmi-KarQa with the help of the Chalukya king Bhima
ofGujarat of Kalyani, SomeS\'ara I.92 It is very probable that Lamt-Kafl)a s
defeated Bhoja, the kiJ)g of Malavii.87 From Tibeta
n tradition we
learn at Lakmi-Kafl)a attacked Magadha and
reign probably came to an end in AD 1070.93
destroyed many Laksmi-Karna was a devotee of Siva. He constructed a temple of
Buddhist temples and monasteries.88 It contains
between Nayapala, king ofMagadha and the Tirthi
stories of a war the Mru type t KaSi which became famous as KaTQa eru. There
ka king ofKarQya
are inscriptions which belonged to the re1gn . of Lat-Karl)a. The
of the west. We are told that failing to capture the
city, Kart:tya 's Benares grant was discovered at the bottom of a well m the old fort
196 The /Use and Dedine ofBuddhism in lndza m in Nmthem India after Haa
81Ja' '
,.r.is 197
ofenares. It begins with, '0111 nama}_l Sivaya' and a verse in hon our
Julllna Doab from the Kalacuris.1
02 The Chandella ruler SallakaQa-
of Siva. It mentions that the king worshipped the god (Tril ocan a)
n, the Chalukya Vikramaditya VI and Lakmadeva of the
(Siva) and granted KaSi (bhumy)-anta(r ga)ta Susi-grama to th
Jl)ara dynasty of Malwa defeated Yasa h. -KarQa m battle. 103
learned Visvariipa.95 The Goharwa grant ofAD 1 04 7 was discovered in ra
; ,
, .
order of the king himself."97 The_Rewa stone inscription ofAD 1060- sors
Gaya-Karna ascended the throne of the Cedi kingdom after hts
. .
the seven notes of her stream, sweet like the cries of the intoxicated
flamingo. "101 The holy Bhimdvara has been identified with tl).e
jayasi111ha in AD 1 1 75 ascended the throne ater his br<:>ther
Narasimha. The Tewar stone inscription of the retgn ofjayas1111ha
rather handsome two-storeyed shrine of the god Bhime5vara-svamin refers t the erection of a temple of Siva by the Nayaka Ke5ava in AD
at Drarama (Godavari district) . The Andhra king was probably 1 1 77.noThe Karanbel stone inscription was found at Karanbel near
the Chalukya Vijayaditya, who reigned in Vengi from about AD 1064 j_ubbulpore in the Madhya Pradesh.111 }t opens with '0111 nama}_l
to 1 074. We are told that in the reign of Ya5a}_l-KarQa, Candradeva, Sivaya' and also refers to the blessings ofiva, Gajanana and Sarasvati.
the Gahaavala king ofBenares and Kanauj, conquered the Ganges- Jayasil1lha was a devout worshipper of Siva.
in Narthem Ind
199
/J!Jdt}hislll
198 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in 1- ia after Hara
".ua
distri
. uris of Kalac
ar_t_d ges a genealogy of the dynasty from Brahma d own to Zari s of Turp.mal)a were the feudatories of the
V ayasrp.ha. The oplpur stone inscription of the rei gn of the reign of Yasa!:t- Kan Ia,
. the forme r became
oa
hala but during 3
ompietely m
':JJayasiip.ha ol?ens With Orp. nama bhagavate Vasudevaya'. It m en depen dent . 12
al)a
J{amalaraja ascended the throne of the Kalacuns o Turp.m
.
son
family. The Bheraghat stone inscription mentions that Mah y ;{ . The Arno<;la plates
after his father Kalingarajaformer efeated te tkala nrpa and
of his grand
Vijayasirp.hadeva ad Srimad Ajayasirp.hadeva da,ily saluted the Prthvid eva I says
that th
prospenty. 24 RatnaraJa who
of the god Vaidyanatha.11 3 deavoured to equal Gangeyadeva m
ented Turp.mal)a with the
The Rwah stn e insc_ription ofAI? 1 192 in the reign ofVijayasirp.ha cce eded his father Kamalaraja/25 ornam
eSa, Ratndvara and other gods and also
opens With an mvocation to ManJughoa, the Buddhist god of temples of the gods Varp.k
_
learning. It mentions "the excavation of a tank by a Malaysimh with gard ens of flower
s, and fruits, palatial dwellings and a charming
grove. 126 He found ed_ the city f Ratnapura a? d built
under the superintendence ofHarisirp.ha, at a cost of 1 ,500 tanhka high mango
sa succeeded h1s father
stamped with the figre of Buddha (Bhagavat) . "l l4 This inscription many temples there. Prthvideva alms Prthvi
II _ the Cedi kingdom under the was Ja jallade va. The Ratnapur stone
shows us that Buddhism prospered m Ratnaraja. 127 The next ruler
1 1 14 mentio ns the establi shmen t ofa monastery for
patronage of the Kalacuris. inscription of AD
and a lake and
From the Kumbhi inscription we learn that Mahakumara ascetics ( tapasamafha) , the construction of a garden
atjajal lapura and also the grant of
Ajayasirp.ha who was one of the sons of Vijayasirp.ha, succeeded his also the foundation of a temple
father. The Batihagarh stone inscription of AD 1 328 as well as the two village s by kingj ajallad eva.128
the
Bamhni Sati record of the reign of Ala-ud-din dated AD 1 3 Q9l l 5 inform The nextrulerwas Ratnadeva II. He is referred to as the lord of
grants of his son. Prthvid eva I I ascend ed
us that from the middle of the 1 3th century AD to the first quarter of whole Kosala country in the
after his father Ratnad eva II. Severa l inscrip tions of his
the 14th century AD the Muhammedans had extended their power up the throne
to the Bhanrer Range. The Kalacuris of Dahala probably as a minor reign were found. The Rajim stone inscription of AD 1 145 was found
.
power maintained their existence in thejubbulpore region for some at Rajim in the Raipur district.l29 It opens with 'Orp. nama Narayaaya'
tirneY6 But the Gonds in order to establish their position in Jub The Amo<;la grant was found in the village of Amo<;la which was
bulpore overthrew the Kalacuri dynasty in the beginning of the situated in the south-east of Bilaspur in Madhya Pradesh. It opem
with 'Om Om nama Brahmana'.
fifteenth century AD 1 17 .
Jajalldev II succeeded his father Prthvideva ii. The Mlhar stone
inscription of AI) 1 167-68130 opens with 'Orp. Orp. namal:t Sivaya' and
invokes the god Sambhu and Gl)apati. It records the construction
The Knlacuris of Tu7[tmii1Jall8
The Kalacuris of Turp.mal)a claimed that they descended from
II of a temple of the god Kedara (Siva) at Mallala (modern Malhar or
Kokkalla I who was regarded as the founder ofKalacuris ofDahala or
Malar) by the Brahmal)a Somaraja. Ratnadeva III ascended the
I Tripuri. Because they trace their pedigree to one Kalmgaraja, who
throne after his fatherJajaUadeva II. The Kharod stone incription of
claimed descent from one of the 1 7 younger sons ofKokkalla I.119 We a Siva temple
AD 11 81-82 belonged to his reign. I t was found inside
know further that in order not to impoverish the treasury of Tri at the small village of Kharo<;l in the Bilaspur district.m A Ratanpur
tasaurya he abandoned that ancestral land and acquired by his two stone inscription132 ofAD 1 189-90 describes the reign ofking Prthvideva
arms the country of Daiakosala. Since Turp.ma[,la had been made who, according to scholars, was Ratnadeva III's successor. It opens
royal resdence by his ncestors, therefore residing there, he' with ' Orp. namal:t Sivaya' and invokes the gods Rudra and Gal)apati.
mcreased h1s fortune, causmg the destruction of his enemies.120 But It is generally agreed that the Muslims never established their
schoars still find_ it very difficult to identif)' Tritasaurya. They suggest power in the Chhattisgarh region because the Khalari stone inscrip
that It was a portion ofTripuri and its aqjoining regions which were tion of the Kalacuri king Haribrahmadeva of AD 1 4 1 5 153 and Arang
the ori inal territories of the Kalacuris.121 H.C. Ray says, "Dakil) a plate ofthe Haihaya king Amarasirp.hadeva of AD 1 735134 show us that
_
Kosala Is generally taken to represent roughly the modern division
/3fJddhism in Nmthern India after Haa
200 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India 201
2.
the Kalcuris ruled over the Chhattisgarh region in the 18th century J(asia,Branch
AD.But m AD 1 750 they were overthrown by the Bhonslas ofNagpur.us Saipkaragal)a
I
GENEALOGY Nannaraja
I
The Kalacuris of Gorakhpur36 Laksman. a i
I
1 . Kahala Branch
.
Sivaraja I
I
Lakmal)araja
I
Bhimata i
Rajaputra I
I Rajaputra Lakmal)a II
Sivaraja I
I Sivaraja II
Sankaragal)a I
I Bhiida
Gunambodhideva I
. .
I Lamal)ariijadeva III
Kaiicanadevi alias Gul)asagara Madanadevi I
I Kaiicana
I
Bhamanadeva
I Bhimata II
t The
Dehattadevi
" " Kalacuris of I)iihala or TripunP7
Kokkalla
I
Sankaragal)a II Mugdhatunga
I Mugdhatunga
Vidya
Balaha Yuvaraja I Keyuravar
Gul)asagara II Uival)yavati I
I I Nohala
Rajava Vyasa I
I I Lakmal)araja
Sivaraja II Bhamana Sidhadeva I
I Rala<;la
Suggaladevi
I
Sankaragal)a III Sankaragal)a ( II ?) Yuvaraja II
I I
Ya.Solekhyadevi Kokkalla II
I I
Bhima Gangeyadeva Vikramaditya
I
Demata
I
1
The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in India IJtlddhism in Northern India after Har!ja
202 203
REFERENCES
Laksmi-Kama
. .
I DHNI, II, 738; FJ, I I , 229 ff; XII, 268 ff.
Avalladevi vHNI. II, 738---Modern Mandhata on the Narbada, Nirnar district, Madhya
I pradesh .
Yasah-Kama
4Ibid. 'Ibid.; AIHT, 41 ff.
DHNI, III, 738; CII, III, 1 0; BG, I, II, 293 .
'Ibid.
. .
I 'DlfNl. II, 738, fn 4-There are several variants of this name, viz., Ka!acciiri (FJ, IX,
Gaya-Karl)a 296) , Kataccuri (ibid., VI, 5, 297) , Kalatsiiri (/A, XIX, 1 8) , Kalacuri (ibid., XVI , 22)
I Kalacuti (FJ, II, 228 ff) and Kulacurib (jASB, VIII, I, 481 ff; IA, XVII, 1 40) .
Alhanadevi vHNJ, n, 739. 9Ibid. Ibid.
, Hibid., 740. 12Jbid., 741. 13Jbid.
"Ibid.
"Ibid., 742. fn !-"usually known as Kalacuris of Tripuri." "')hahala is possibly
Narasirp.ha Jayasirpha
I
another variation of the name spelt as Qabhala ( aJ, III, 1 1 4) , Qahala, Qahala, Qahala,
Dahala, Dahala etc. In Kanarese sometimes Qhala. "-DHNJ, II, 772.
Gosaladevi "DHNI, II, 724, fn 2-Popularly known as Kalacuris ofRatanapura. But the dynasty
I even after the foundation of Ratanapura claims to be rulers of Tmpm3.!).a.
Vtiayasirp.ha "Ibid., 742. 18Ibid. 19Ibid., 742-44.
I
20Ibid., 748; NKGW, 300-2. 71DHNI, II, 748.
Mahakumara Ajayasi111ha
22Ibid.
"Ibid., 748, fn 2-"In Purai:Jic tradition the name is spelt Sahasrajit"-AIHT, 1 44.
24DHNI, II, 748, fn 3-The inscription omits 8 kings between Haihaya and
The Kalacuris of Tutrtmiitta or Ratnapura1'8 Klirtavirya (Aijuna).
Kokkalla of the Qahala branch "Ibid., II, 749. '"Ibid., 750. "Ibid.
A younger son, lord of a matttJala "'Ibid. "'Ibid.
50Ell!, 405-"Westem Cedi or I;>ahala with its capital Tripura nearJubbulpore."
Kalingaraja
Kamalaraja
"DHNI, II, 75 1 .
"Ibid., 753, fn 2 . "Among the variants of this name may be mentioned Kokkalla."
Nonalla-Ratnaraja I or RatneSa "COHN!, II, 753, fn ! -Sometimes the family is said to have arisen in the Atreya-
Prthvideva or PrthviSa gotra (/A, XVII, 210). At other times the family is called Hai haya-kula (/A, XII, 265, I.
Jajalladeva I 16) , Cedi-kula (FJ, I, 46) and Sahasrar-vat!'Sa (ibid. , I , 42; XII, 250, 1.16) .
Ratnadeva II "COHN!, II, 753; FJ, I, 264, v. 1 7.
Prthvideva II "COHN!, II, 753; FJ, II, 300, 306, v.7.
Jajalladeva II
"'COHN!, II, 753; El, II, 300, 306, v. 8.
Ratnadeva III
"COHN!, II, 753; El, II, 301 , 304.
"'COHN!, II, 753; !A, XII, 250, 295. "'COHN!, II, 753.
Prthvideva III 40Ibid., 754. 41lbid. 42Ibid.
45Ibid. 44lbid., 754-55. 45Ibid., 755.
The Kalacuris of Raipu1m 46Ibid. 47Ibid. 48Ibid., 755-56.
(a) Sil!lhal)a 40Ibid., 756-57. '"Ibid., 757. "Ibid.
'2Jbid.; FJ, II, 306-7, v. 1 3.
Ramadeva "Ibid., II, 760.
Haribrahmadeva
54Ibid., 762. "Ibid. 56Ibid.
"Ibid. "'Ibid.
(b) Amarasirphadeva "'Ibid., 763; ABO!, 1 927-28, 288-90. "'COHN!, II, 763.
61Ibid. 62Ibid., 764. 65Ibid.
6'Ibid., 767. "'Ibid. 66Ibid., 768.
"'Ibid. '"Ibid., 768-69; !A, XVIII, 215-1 6, 1. 7.
"'COHN!, II, 770. "'Ibid., 771 . 71Ibid.
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India
205
204 Bu ddhism in Nrnthern India after Haa
721bid. "Ibid. 74lbid., 772. THE PARAMARAs OF LATA AND MALAVA (MALWA)
"Ibid. "'DHN/, II, 772. "'bid.
of the tenth century AD were the
The Paramaras about the id le .
781bid., 773. '"Ibid.
80lbid.; 774, CHI, III, 29-30. 81DHNI, II, 774.
ories of the Ragrak utas I Gujara t. The Harsola pltes :_
feudat
82Ibid., 775. "'Ibid. 84lbid.
to otherre ords, was VpaJa
8'%id., 776. 88lbid., 777. 87lbid. tion thatBappairaja who,accordng
genealogy. The NavasahasaiiJUJ
sh ege (dhra) f hi sword.22 It seems that Dhara and portion s persi tenta d b tter hostility to the
fbis explains to soe exte t his
Chalukyas ofKalyiir;tt
of Malwa re!Jlameq m hts possession for some time.23 He probabl and hts repea ted Irruptions mto Deccan to oust
rule betwe n AD 920 and 945, and was a contemporary of th: me usurp er Tailap a from the posses sions of his ancestors."33 The
as Utpala- . The Napr
-
<?u!Jara-Prauhara ruler Mahendrapala whose Partabgarh inscri Navaslihasii:nka-carita mentions . him
tlon belonged to AD 945-46.24 This record informs us that Gu rJara.
. pra.SastiofNaravarman refers to his other name, MunJaraJa.35 Dhanika s
bes "the illustrious king
.Muilja in another place :
Dasari i
p a descri
Prau'h-aras took the possesston of Mandu, Ujjain and the regi on com mentary on the
round artabgarh and Mandasor. This may help us to form an idea V"'akpatirii j a at one place and the illustri ous
tht.ong the heavy pressure of the Gurjara-Pratiharas ofRanau ti became known as Munja
The Prabandha-cintiimar,U says that Vakpa
ling by Sif!lhadanta-bhata
VatSif!lha m the latter part of his eign left Malwii and wen t t
GuJarat.25
because "he was picked up as a
( Siyaka) from the midst of a thicket
found
ofMuii ja reeds. "37 In Abul Fazl's
Ha, who was also known as Siyaka II and Sif!lhabhata, ascended A 'in-i-AkbaWB there is a refere nce to this story.
ful and
the throne after. his fath r Vairisif!1ha II.26 The Harsola grant of AD. Vakpati II was not only a great warrior but was a very power
says that "his lotus feet were
949 was foun m the VIllage of Harsola in the Parantij taluk of ambitious ruler. The Udaipur pra5ati
Ahedaba dtstnct . of Gujarat. It opens with an on the heads of the Kafl)a tas, Uitas, Kerala s
invocation to coloured by the jewels
Nrslf!lha (Vtgn) . It states that Siyaka "after worshipping Sivanatha He also conqu ered Yuvara ja, and slaying his genera ls,
and Co}as. "!19
Jayavarman I (AD 1 1 92-1200) succeeded his father Y<lSovarman. ! 21 5 '18 men tions that Arjunavrman while resident at the
The next rul erwas his brother Ajayavarman. He was succeeded by his ardvara tirtha zranted the village of Hathinavara-to the jlurohita
Pa 9ita Govina Sarman. He also worshipped Bhavanipati,
f.l
brother Lamivarman. Harikandra who was the son of the latter Orpkara
ascended the throne after him. The Piplianagar grant ofAD 1 1 79 was and Lakmi pati there.
found in the village of Piplianagar in the Shujalpur pargana of Devapala (AD 1 2 1 8-36) succeeded Arjunavarman. The Harsauda
Bhopal in the Madhya Pradesh. It opens wit 'Orp Sri-Gaf.lesaya stone inscription of A? 1 21 8 o th_e reign ofDevapala w.as found in the
nama' .72 Then there are two verses in praise of Siva (Vyomakesa and village of Harsauda m the d1stnct of oshangabad m the Madhya
Smararati) . The inscription says that Hariscandra gran ted two shares pradesh ."' It opens with 'Orp nama} Sivaya' and praises th<: gods
(a'rlS_a-dvayam) of the Palasavada-grama to the donee PaJ.lqita Dasara Heramba (GaJ.leSa) , Bharati (Sarasvati ) , Brahma, ViJ.lU and Siva. It
tha Sarman. I t mentions further that the same do'noralsomade some says that on the eastern sde of Harpura the merchant KeSava
grants to the PaJ.lQita Malnna,Sarman. It informs us that Harikandra constructed a temple of Sambhu together with a tank and also
was a devout worshipper of Siva. establi shed figures ofHanumat, etrapala, GaJ.leSa, KrJ.la, Nakulisa
The next ruler was Hariscandra's son Mahakumara Udayavarman and Ambika. The Mandhata grant of AD 1 225 was discovered at
(c. AD 1 200) . The Bhopal grant wich belonged to his reign was found Mandhata in the Nimar district of the Madhya Pradesh.80 It says that
at the village of Uljamun in the SamsgaQh pargana of Bhopal in the Devapala while staying at Mahimati (modern Maheswar) worshipped
Madhya Pradesh.73 The inscription begin with 'Orp Ganeya nam.' Siva and granted the village ofSatajuna to the Brahman Gangadhara.
There are also two verses in praise of Siva in it. Udayavarmandeva Jaitugideva (AD 1 239-43) , wo was the son and successor of
granted the village of Gunaura to the Brahman Mula Sarman. The Devapala, ascended the throne. ASadhara, the J aina scholar, used to
references to GaJ.leSa and Siva and the figures ofGaruc.I a show us that live in his court. He finished the Siigar-dharmiimrta in AD 1 239 and his
the Brahmanical gods and goddesses occupied important places in Anagara-dharmiimrta in AD 1 243 in his reign.Jayavarman II succeeded
the religious history of the kingdom of Udayavarman. his brother Jaitugideva. From epigraphical evidence we learn that
Ajayavarman's son and successor was Vindhyavarman. He proba the former ruled at Dhara for about four years ( c. AD 1 25(:}.60) .
bly recovered Dhara from the hands of the Chalukyas. There is a According to some scholars, he was also Jayasirpha III. He was
reference to it in the grants of Arjunavarman and Devapala.74 succeeded by Arjunavarman II. The next ruler was Bhoja II. Then
Subhatavarman ascended the throne of Dhara after his father Jayasirpha IV (AD 1 3 1 0) ascended the throne. Some scholars think
Vindhyavarman. The former was also known as Subhata and Sohada. . that he was the last ruler of the Paramara dynasty of Malava.
The Paramaras became very powerful at that time d wanted to The reign ofArjunavarman ( c. AD 1 2 1 1 -1 5) witnessd the decline ol
invade the torritory ofthe Chalukyas. Merutmiga says that during the the Paramara power of Malava. In the reign oflltutrnish of Delhi (All
rule of Chalukya ruler Bhima I I , "the Malava king Sohac.la advanced 1 2 1 1-36) the Muslims became very aggressive and destroyed man}
to the border of Gujarat, with the intention of devastating the temples and cities of Malwa. The Tabaqiit-i-Niisiri 61 says that "shortl}
country. "75 after the capture of Gwalior, the Sultan in AD 1 234 led the hosts ol
Subhatavarman's son and successor was Arjunavarman ( c. AD Islam towards Malwa and took the fortress and town of Bhilsan and
1 2 1 1 -1 5 ) . The Piplianagar grant of AD 1 2 1 1 was found in the village demolished the idol temple which took three hundred years in
of Piplianagar in the Shujalpur pargana of Bhopal.76 It opens with building, and which, in altitude was about one hundred eUs. From
'Orp nama pururtha-ciic.lamaJ.laye Dharmaya'. The four verse s thence he advanced to Ujjain-Nagari, and the temple of the Maha
then praise the moon, the lord ofthe twi!=e-bom, Parasurama, R;'j,ma kala Diw. The effigy of Bikramajit who was sovereign of Ujjain
ad Yudhighira. It recors that king Arjunavarman granted the Nagarl , and from whose reign to the present time one thousand, one
VIllage of Pi<,lvic.Ii in the Sakapura-pratij agaraJ.laka to the purohita hundred, and steen years have elapsed, and from whose reign the}
Govinda. The Bhopal grant77 of AD 1 2 1 3 mentions thatAijunavarman date the Hindu-1 era, together with other effigies besides his, which
granted to the priest Govinda a section ofbuildings belonging to the Were formed ofmolten brass, together with the stone (idol) ofMaha
DaJ.19adhipati in the city ofMahakala (i.e., Ujjain) . It says further that kala, were carried away to Delhi, the Capital. "
Arjunavarman while residing at _Bhroach granted the village of Farishta gives the same information and also says that "the temple
UttarayaJ.la to the priest Govinda Sarman. Another Bhopal grant of of Mahakala was 'formed upon the same plan with that of Soma
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India
Buddhism in Nmthem India after Haa 21 3
212
'
natha' and that the images conveyed to Delhi were broken at the During the period, Malava was one of the chief centres of the
rahmanical religion. The caste-system was at the basis of the Hindu
door of the great mosque. "82 B
cial structure. The Paramara kings lent their power support to the
H.C. Ray thinks that this expedition took place dunng the reign
::
ofDevapala (c. AD 1 2 1 8-36) .83 But in AD 1 292 "Ala ud-din Khalji, in the ain tenance of its integrity. Udayaditya and Naravarman declared
reign of his uncle Jalal-ud-din Firuj (AD 1 290-96) invaded Malwa, that their swordswere ever ready to protect Va77Ja (caste) . There were
caputred the town ofBhilsa and brought much plunder to Delhi."114 numerous Hindu monasteries which fostered the study of the relig
In AD 1 305 "Ala-ud-din sent his general Ein-ool-Moolk Mooltany. . . ious scriptures. . . .
Side by side with the Brahmanical religionjainism also flourished
in Malwa, though not with equa! vigour. In the early part of the
with an army to effect the conquest of Malwa. He was opposed by
Koka, the Raja of Malwa, with 40,000 R.ajpiit horse and 1 00,000 foot
eleven th century AD the great Svetambara teacher, Ammadeva,
In the engagement which ensued, Ein-ool-Moolk proved victorious,
flourished in Khandesh, in the southem division of the Paramara
and reduced the cities of Oojein, Man do, Dharanuggury and Cun
kingdom. He preached the d octrines of Jainism, and converted
dery. Mter these successes, he wrote acc unt of the same to the
. many people to his faith. Numerous jaina temples were erected in
king, who, on receiving it, commanded lllummattons to be made for
that province, in one .. of which was installed the image of Mu
seven days throughout the city ofDehly. "85This shows the end of the
nisuvrata. A number ofjaina fanes which were built in the middle of
the eleventh century AD, have been discovered at Un, in the Nimar
rule of the Paramara power in Malwa. Koka has not yet been
identified with any ruler of the Paramara dynasty.86 The Udayapur
district. This proves that during that periodJainism was not limited
inscription ofjayasiqlha ofAD 1 3 1 0 gives us indication that the Hindu
to Khandesh, but had extended further east, in the Central Prov
ruler still maintained
- its existence in Malwa even after the defeat of
inces, within the boundaries of the Paramara dominion.
Koka.87
Jainism also made considerable progress on the north of the
D.C.,Ganguly states, "the Paramara king were d_evout worsip
Vindhya mountain. Its teachers always tried to assert their influence
pers ofSiva. The sovereigns who supprted thi worship y onattons
over the Paramara kings. The Jaina teachers, Amitagati and
include SihakaHar, Vakpati, BhoJa, Jayasup.ha, Aijunava!"l"an,
Devapala and Jayavarman IV. Udayaditya built a temple to Siva at
Dhandvara lived in Malwa during the reign of Munja . . .. The king
Naravarman was favourably disposed to the Jaina religion.
Udayapura. The god was known under various names such as
_ Samudragho studied 'Tarka Sastra' (logic) in Malwa. Naravarman
Sambhu, Srikat;tt}la, Bhavanipati, Amaresvara, Of!lkara, Mahakala,
became greatly inclined to him on account of his vast leaming. . .
Kalakalewara, Siddhanatha and Gohade8vara. Carcka was the fa
Subhatavarman was an enemy ofthejainareligion. During his reign,
vourite goddess of Naravaan, and Devapla has great rverence
it seems to have received a severe check in Malwa and Gujarat. . . .
for Limbarya. Visvesvara Sambhu was a resident of the VIllage of
After the accession ofArjunavarman,Jainism again raised its head in
Piirvagrama in R.ac;lha. He igrated to Qahla at;tc;lala and estab
Malwa. Asadhara tells us that the territory of Arjunavarman was full
lished a large number of Saiva monastenes m the central and
of Jaina sriivakas, and that he himself lived in the city of Nalakac
southem India in the 1 3th century AD. Malwa kings are said to have
capura in order to advance the cause of the Jaina faith. Asadhara
been his disciples.
lived until the middle of the thirteenth century AD, and was patron
The contemporary records tell us that the following gs and
ised by the kings Devapala and Jaitugi . . . . Jainism continued to
goddesses were also held in great veneration by the people: :
flourish in Malwa for a long time. During the whole course of the
Paramara rule, though theJainas spent much effort in an attempt to
Durga 0 R.adha Gat;tda
Lakmi Yagdevi Bharati Loligasvami further the cause of their faith, they never succeeded in attaining pre
Bha!dvari l-Ianumat etrapala dominance over the Brahmanical religion. M erutunga tells us that
Nakufi8a when the flag of the Mahakala temple was hoisted all those of the
Vidhyadhari Ambika
Jainas had to be lowered."88
The Four-faced Markandeya.
The images of all these deities were bathed and anointed with
perfumes and incense.
<za
214 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in ],.,_, . 215
JJuddhism in Northern India after Har!ja
GENEALOGY
I I
The Paramiiras of Lii!a and Miilwfff9 Mahakumara Udayavarman Devapala
Paramara I I
I Jaitugideva Jayavarman II
Upendrarii.ja alias Knr:tariija Qayasirp.ha II ?) Qayasrp.ha ?)
I
.
Vairisimha I Arjuna (Varman) II
I I
Siyaka I Bhoja II ?
I I
Vakpatiriija I, alias Bappairii.ja Jayasif!lha IV ?
I
Vairisirp.ha II, alias Vajratasvamin
I REFERENCES
Hacyt alias Siyaka II
XXI ,
'DHN/, II, 841.
2!bid.; TAAR, I, 1 12 ff; ASBC, I I , 254 ff; AA, 214-15; BG, IX, 481-85;.JBBRAS,
Vakpati II alias Utpalariija
'DHNI, II, 841; RMR, 1927, 2-3; NSC, XI, 64 ff.
428-29.
Munja, Amoghavaqa, Prthvi 4DHNI, II, 841 .
6lbid., 843. 'Ibid.
9lbid., 844.
vallabha, Srivallabha 'Ibid.
"Ibid. '"Ibid., 844.
Mrr:talavati "Ibid. 12lbid.; FBI, 410. "DHNI, II, 844.
Sindhurii.ja alias Navasahasatika ..Ibid., II, 845. "Ibid. 16lbid.
''Ibid., 846. 18lbid. 19Ibid.
20Ibid. 21Ibid. 22lbid., 847.
I
Bhojadeva I Udayaditya ..Ibid. Mibid. 25lbid.
I 2'Jbid., II, 848-49; PFOCJM, 1924, 303 ff.
26Ibid.
'llDHNI, II, 849 "'Ibid., 850. "'Ibid., II, 852, 927.
Jayasimha
I I
"Ibid., 853-54.
I
"Ibid., 852-53. ,.Ibid., 853.
"Ibid., 854. "Ibid. "Ibid.
Lakmadeva Naravarman Syamaladevi-Guhilaputra "Ibid., PCMA 30. , 58DHNI, II, 854; AA, II, 215.
VJjayasirp.ha 5DHNI, II, 854. 40Ibid. 41Ibid., 854-55.
I 42Ibid., 855. 4'Ibid.
44lbid.; PCMA 33; BG, I, II, 432. <>DHNI, II;857.
4"'Ibid.; AA, II, 216.
Momaladevi Alhanadevi-Qahala ,
I
46lbid. 48FR/, 410.
.Kalacuri Gayakari)a 411Ibid.; DHNI, II, 856. '"DHNI, II, 859; NSC, VI, 1 1 .
Yasovarman "DHNI, I I , 860. '"Ibid. "Ibid.
'%id. "Ibid., 861-62. "'Ibid., 862.
"Ibid., 863. '"Ibid., 864. '"Ibid., 869.
Jayavarman Ajayavarman Mahakumara Lamivarman 80FH!, 4 1 0-1 1 . 61DHNI, II, 871 . 62lbid., II, 873-74.
I I "'Ibid., 875.
. 64Ibid. 6"Ibid., 881.
Vindhyavarman Mahakumara Hariscandra 66Ibid. 67Jbid. , 882. 68Ibid., 883.
I
80Ibid., 884. "'Ibid. 71Ibid., 887.
"IIJbid., 892. "Ibid., 892-93. 74Ibid., 894.
Subhatavarman "15Ibid., 895. "'"Ibid. ; 896. ""'bid., 896-97.
I .,..Ibid. 19Ibid., 900. 80Ibid., 900.0 1.
Atjunavarman
216 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in India ]Juddhism in Nmthem India after Har!fa 217
:
8. THE CI-IA.HAMANAS OR THE CHAHUMANAS (s:imbhar) in Rajputana to which Ajmer was attached.U Vasudeva
regarded as the founder of this dynasty.12 It is difficult to say
OR THE CHAUHANS
thing about the exact date of the establishmet of the ncipality
f Sakambari by Vasudeva. The next ruler was Samantaraja. He was
From the bardic tradition ofthe Raj puts we learn that the Chahamanas so known as Ananta. The Bijolia inscription 13 refers to him as a
J
(the Chauhans) l were regarded as one of the four fire-bord races Vipra and says further that he belonged to the Vatsa-gotra at Ahich-
(agni-kula)-2 B.C. Ray states, "With the founders of the Pratiharas hhatrapura, which probably was situated near the borders of the
(Pariharas) , the Chalukyas ( Solankis) and Paramaras (Pavars) , their
aipur and jodhpur states.14 It seems that Samantaraja ruled in the
founder is said to have sprung from the fire-altar ofthe sage Vasit}:la middle of the seventh century AD. But nothing is known about the
on Mount Abu. He is said to have been quadriform (caturanga), rulers who ascended the throne between Samantaraja and Dur
whence his name Chauhan.3 V.A. Smith says, "A familiar legend labharaja. Probably, they had inglorious reign and contributed noth
appearing in the Chand Riiisa and other late documents in variant
forms groups together four Rajput clans-the Pawar (ramara) ,
j
ing to the political history of eir country. The P.'"!_vir a-vijay sars
_ Ia
that Govindaraja succeeded his father DurlabharaJa I. Th BIJO
Parihar ( Pratihara) , Chauhan (Chahumana) and Solanki or Cha inscription refers to Guvaka after Durlabha.16 Some scholrs Ien tifY
lukya-as being agni-kula or 'fire-born ', originating from a sacrificial the former with Govindaraja.17 Vigraharaja's Ha stone mscnption _
fire-pit at Mount Abu in southern Rajputana. The myth seems to traces his descent to prince Guvaka.18 According to scholars, these
express the historical truths that the four clans named are relted, two Guvakas were one and the same person. lt is said that Guvaka I
and all arose in southern Rajputana; and further, as Crooke JUstly was a feudatory chief (siimanta raja) of the Gurjara-Pratihara ruler
observes, it 'represents a rite of purgation by fire, the scene of which Nagavaloka or Nagabhata II. 19
was in southern Rajputana, whereby the impurity of the foreigners The Prthviriija-vijaya and the Bar mscnption mention Chan
.
was removed and they became fitted to enter the Hindu caste draraja II as the successor of Govindaraja.20 The Bijolia inscription
system' ."4 Mahimafi on the Narbada was known as the first seatofthe
refers to Sasinrpa. 21 It is to be noted here that "the meanng of both
government of 'Anhal, the first created Chauhan '.5 According to the names is the same, 'moon-king'.''22 Guvaka II was his son. The
some scholars, the Chahamanas probably originated from the Upper former's son was Chandanaraja. The Ha inscription says that a
Ganges:Jumna valley in the middle of the 1 2th century AD.6 But e Tomara prince called Rudrena was defeated and killed by him in
author of the Jtthviriija-vijaya and the Hammia-Mahiikii:vya mention
fierce fight.23 In the ninth century AD Delhi was ruled by the Tornras.
the rise of the Chahamanas from the lake Sakambari (Sambhar) Tamvravafi and Sekhavati were the two divisions of the presentjaipur
which was located on the borders of the jodhpur and jaipur states.7
stat.24 Probably, the Rajput tribe Tarpvar and the Tomaras of the
It is very probable that the Sambhar region was the cradle-ln d of the inscriptions were the same and Ta111vravap is ?erived from T111var.25
tribe.8 I t is said that the earlier Chahamanas captured Delhi from the Thus Rudrena was ruler of this locality and Sakambharl reg10n was
Tomaras and killed their ruler.9This seems to indicate the beginning
not very far from it. B.C. Ray states, "This conflict and the death of
of the long rivalry between the earlier Chahamanas d the T<;>mara Rudrena may then be regarded as the opening act of that grim
chiefs and in course of time the Chahamanas established therr rule
struggle which in the middle of the 1 2th century was to extend the
over Delhi. This no doubt gives us indication that the tribe fro
arm s of the Chahamanas to the foot-hills of the Himalayas. "26 The
Sambhar moved towards the Ganges:Jumna valley.1 From the bardiC P,thviriija-vijaya informs us that Chandanaraja's queen Rudrani
tradition and epigraphic evidence we learn that the Chahamanas (Atmaprabha) established 1 ,000 lingas on the banks of Pukara,
were diVIded into many branches. Among them, the Chahamanas of "which shone like lights in darkness. wn The next ruler was Chan
Sakambharl was regarded as the most important branch and un danaraja's son Vakpatiraja who was also called Vappayaraja and
doubtedly occupied a prominent place in the political history of
Vindhyanrpati.28 The Bar inscription describes him as Maharaja.29
India.
]Jtl4dhism in Nurlhern India after Haa
218 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in
I-> .
<ua
219
The H . The P,.abandha-lwsa mentions his victory over Sulta Mahmud.:40 The
like a Kal- .
Siwalik Pillar inscriptions ontain three short inscriptions. 56 The first sarasi e rected a monastery near the temple of Nityapramoditadeva
f< r th e residence ofKapalika ascetics from foreign countries.57 The
belonged to the reign ofSakambhari king Visaladeva. It is dated
1!.64. The seoninscip.tion c?ntainsashortpra.Sastiofking Vigrah ;evasatem
J
ston e inscription was found on a pillar in the Sabha-ma'!Z4afa
raJa. The third mscnpuon gtves a praiasti of Visala. He not only f the ple ofJin-mata in the Sambhar Nizamat of Shekhii':_<lp m
conquered the whole region from the Vindhyas to the Himalayas but aipur state. It says that in the reign of Some5vara one Alhna
:Uso etroyed repeatedly the power of the Mlecchas. From these r econs tructed the ma1J4apa of the temple. 68
mscnpuons we learn that the Chahamana dominions had spread from the Jtthviraja-vijaya we learn that when Somdvara died
orthwards to the foot-hill of the Himalayas, and perhaps may have prthViriija was still a minor. So before leaving this world he had
mcluded s bstanti. P<?ron oth Punjab lyin between Sutlej and appoi nted the Devi or the_q.ee .( Karpiiradevi) to protect his son in
the Jumna. The Boha mscnpuon of Somesvara mentions the his childhood. 69 The JtthmmJOrVZ)aya giVes an account of the prosper
onqet of I;>hillika and Asika by Vigraharaja, and the Siwalik pillar ity of the Chahamana kingdom during the queen 's rege cy. 70 When
mscnpuon say1' that Chahmana ruler made Aryavarta once more the Prthviraja reached the age, he took the charge of the kmgdom. At
bode of the Aryas by exterminating the Mlecchas.58 Some inscrip that time he was ably assisted by his two ministers Kadamba Vasa and
tions of the 4th century say that the town of Delhi and the neigh Bhuvanaikamalla.
bourmg. regwn, then known as the 'land of Hariyanaka' were Several inscriptions belonged to the reign of Prthviraja III were
conquered by the Chahamanas from the Tomaras.59 In the south found. The Madanpur stone inscriptions w!tich were three in num
west VIgraharaja extended his power up to the valley of the river ber were discovered in the large temple of Siva at Madanpur.71 They
Sukri.60 The Bijolia inscription also says that he reduced Pallika and mention the name of Prthviraja of the Chahamana dynasty, who
Naddiila and burnt the town ofjavalipura which was modemJalor in came to the country ofKing Paramardi. They also described that he
jodhpur.61 conquered the country ofjejaka-Bhukti in AD l l 82-83 and give the
The next ruler was Apara-Gangeya. He was succeeded by names ofChandrasekhara Trayambakaand Tripurantaka. This ndi
Pflhvibhara (Prthviraja II) , the son of the eldest son ofjugadeva. The cates that the temple where his inscriptions were placed was a Saiva
Menal stone inscription of the reign of Prthvibhara was found at shrine. The Visalapur stone inscription was discovered on a pillar in
Menal in Udaipur state in Rajputana. It records some endowments the temple of Gokafl).anatha at Visalapur in the Jaipur state.72
made by Maharajiii Suhavadevi, queen of Prthviraja II to the god Visaladeva (Vigraharaja IV) founded the temple as well as the town
Suhavesvara.62 The Dhoc;l stone inscription was found on a pillar in in the reign of Prthviraja. The object of this inscription is to register
th temple ofRii!}li Ral).i at Dhoc;l in theJahagpur district ofMewar.65 some donations to the temple of the god Gokafl).a at Vigrahapura in
It Is ?ated AD 1 1 69. It says that during the reign ofPrthvideva, the lord the Sapadela country.75 The Bajta image inscription was found on
of Sakambhari, his feudatory Adhiraja Kumarapala erected the the pedestal of an image of Gal).eSa, kept in a niche in a temple of
temple ofNityapramoditadeva atDhavagartta. The Menalgarh pillar Miam, Mata, near Bajta in the Estate of Savar in Rajputana. 74 It
inscripon was foun on a pillar over the northern gateway of a mentions that the image was made by one Rajala in AD I I 89 . The
palace m Menalgarh m Mewar. It refers to the erection of a monas Madanpur inscription of Prthviraja informs us that Prthviraja in
tery ( ma[ha) by Bhava Brahma.64 vaded and counquered a large portion of the Chan della territory
The next ruler was Somdvara. The Bijolia rock inscription was beyond the Betwa.75 The l)ayoga Parlha-Parakrama mentions hostili
found in the village ofBijolia in Mewar.65 It isJaina record and begins ties between Prthviraja and the Chaulikya ruler Bhima II (c. AD 1 1 78-
with salutations to Pacivanatha and other Jaina gods. It is dated AD 1241 ) .76The Tabaqat-i-Niisi:ri says that in AD l l9 1 Prthviraja defeated
1 1 70 and it belonged to the reign of Somesvara. The Dhod stone Sul tan-i-Ghazi (Muizz-ud-din) at Tarain or Talawari between
inscription was found on a pillar in the Riihi Rani temple at Dho<;i Thandwara and Karnal.77 But a year later in AD 1 1 92 the Sultan
in jahazpur in Mewar.66 It says that in AD 1 1 71 during the reign of returned with an army of 12000 well-armed horsemen and met
Somdvara, the Karanika Brahmana Mahantama Cahada sold his Pfthviraja at Tarain. This time the latter was defeated and was killed
house to the temple ofNityapramditadeva for 1 6 drammas (coins) by the Muhammedens.78 This battle practically brought the downfall
ofAjayadeva. Another Dhoc;l stone inscription ofAD 1 1 72 records that of the Chahamanas of the Sakambhari.79 The TiifulMa 'iithirsays that
when Somesvara was ruling atAjayameru-durga, Bhanaraka Prabha- after this battle Qutb-ud-din captured Ajmer from Kola who was
IIII
jJuJdhism in Nurthern India after HaT!ja 223
222 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in I->
'<ta
Prvi ja's natural son.-80 They also captured Delhi and Meerut. V.A
Smith g1ves an account ofthe conquest ofHindustan by the M uh
Durlabhariij a
medans, he says, "In AD 1 1 93 Delhi fell . Kanauj does not seem to h: I
been molested but must have come under the contra! of the invad Govindariija (Guvaka I)
er. Benaes, the Holy citadel of Hinduism in AD 1 1 94 became the i
pnze of VIctors .... The surrender of Gwalior in 1 1 96, the capture Chandraraja II (Sa5inrra)
1 1 97 ?f hilwara, the capital of Gujarat and the capitulation
Kalan)ar m 1 203 completed the reduction of Upper India. "SI He Kalavati-king of Kanauj
descnbes further, " . . .Prthviriija, Prithiriij or Rai Pithora, lord of Guvaka II
Sambhar and Ajmer, famous in song and story as a chivalrous lover I
an doughty hampion. His fame as a bold lover rests upon hi Chandanaraja
danng abductiOn of the not unwilling daughter of Jaichand, the I
Gaharwar Rja of Kanauj which occurred in or about AD 1 1 75 . His . ja)
Wkpatiraja I (Vappayarii.
reputation as a general is securely founded upon his defeat of the I
Chandella riija, Parmal and the capture of Mehoba in 1 1 82, as well I I
as upon gallant resistance to the flood of Muhammedan invasion.
Sirphariija Vatsariij a
Indeed, Rai Pithorii may be described with justice as the popular
hero of northern India, and his exploits in love and war are the I
subject of rude epics and bardic lays to this day. "82 Vigrahariija II Durlabhariija II Candrariija Govindariij a
I
The Hammira Mahiikavya of Nayachandra says that Haririija suc
ceeded Prthviriija. The former reigned for sometime and then he Govindariija II (Gum.J.u)
I
was killed by the Muhammadans.83The Tamtoti image inscription in
latter also gives us indication that Prthviriija's son who was over 'v'akapatiriija II
thrown by Haririi.ja was most probably Govindariija. I
I I
GENEALOGY Viryariim a Chamui.Iqariija
'
225
224 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in India
,.Ibid. 77Ibid.,
"Ibid., I 085. I087; FHI, 403.
18DHN1, II, I 089; FHI, 403. 79DHNJ, II, I 09 1 .
""Ibid.,
Ibi d.
402.
"'
atFHI, 404.
3 84Ibid. ,
"'DHNI, I I , I 09 .
Jugadeva ? Vigraharaja IV Sornesvara--KarouradeTI 1 1 37-38.
alias Visala
I I
PrthTibhata Apara Gangeya
Govinda.aja Harird.ja
PfthTiraja III Pratapadevi
REFERENCES
1DHNI, II, 1 052, fn 1-'There are variants of this name-Chahamana (El, XI, 70,
fn 4); Chahaviil)a ( 7DMG, XL, 38 ff); Chahuvata (JA, I 890, 2I6, fn 5); Chahumana
(ASRC, XXI, 1 73 ff, no. 99) .
2DHNI, II , 1052. 'Ibid. EIJJ, 428.
'DHNI, II, 1052. 6Ibid., 1 054. "'bid.
8Ibid. 9Ibid. 10lbid.
11FHJ, 400-401. 12DHNJ, II, 1 06 1 . "Ibid.
"Ibid. "Ibid., 1 062. 16lbid.
"''bid. 18Ibid. '9Ibid., 1 062-63.
20Ibid., I 063. "Ibid. 22lbid., I 063, fn 1 .
..Ibid., I 063. D.R. handarkar says that he was 'Rudra'-CA, I9I3, 58, fn "'
B
24DHNI, II, I 063. "Ibid. 261bid.
"''bid.; PV, vv. 37-38;JRAS, I923, 268. 'JbDHNI, II, 1 063.
""Ibid. 10Ibid., I 064. "Ibid.
121bid. "Ibid., 1065. "Ibid.
151bid., I 067. '"Ibid. S?Jbid., 1 067-68.
'"Ibid., 1068. "'Ibid. 40lbid.
"Ibid., 1 069.
"'Ibid., fn 4-"Narwar, situated in Kiseng'lfh territory at a distance about 15 miles
from Ajmer. "-JR1.S, 1913, 272.
45DHNI, II, 1069; PV, v. 68 .
..DHNI, II, I 069.
"Ibid. ..Ibid., I 070. 'IJbid.
48Ibid. "'Ibid. ""Ibid., 1 1 71.
"Ibid., 1 1 72. '"Ibid., 1073. "Ibid .; FHI, 401 .
"'DHNI, II, 1076; RMR, I 923, 2. ""DHNI, II, I 076.
'"Ibid. "''bid., 1 077. ...Ibid., I 077.
59lbid. 60lbid. 61Ibid., 1 077-78.
62Jbid., I, 1 079; ASJWC, 1906, 59-60, no. 2I91.
"'DHNI, II, I079-80; RMR, I923, 2.
64DHNI, II, I 080. "Ibid., I OSI-82. 66Ibid., 1 082.
"''bid. "'Ibid.; ASJWC, !910, 52. .,DHNJ, II, 1 083.
"'Ibid. 71Ibid., I 084. ?!Ibid.; RMR, 191 1-I 2, 2.
"'DHNI, II, 1084; ASJWC, 192I , 55-56. 14DHNI, II, I 084.
JJUddhism During the Reign of SaSiinka of Gawf,a 227
1.
located in Gafliam district, south of Orissa.u From the two Midna Verses no. 748-49) . He passed away leaving probably n o successor, his
pore copperplates of J5.ing Sasanka, it is known that he was a great
. the
own kingdom of Kart:tasuvana slipping into the hands of the neigh-
ruler m east/2 "Sri-Sasanka mahim pati chaturjjaladhi-me bouring king of Assam. The kings of Assam could not retain it long
khalam. "13 Thus Sasanka as a great ruler made himself master of ' for we know how Bengal and Magadha gradually grew into a great
,i
228 The Rise arui Dedine ofBuddhism in ],.,..
' <la
Buddhism During the Reign of Safiiitka of Gatuj,a 229
empire under the Pala kings about a century later. "2BR.C. Majurnd
a
describes, "Although sufficient data are n ?t available fo; f i ng
.
correct esllmate of the character and achievements of Sasanka h
North Bengal (Pul)c;lravardhana) had a flourishing population
th ' tanks, hospices and flowery groves.' . . . Besides the Buddhists
' e
must be regarded as a great king and a remarkable personal
during the first half of the seventh century AD. He was th e firs
ity :d the thas
Brahmal)as there lived in north Bengal many Digambara
Qainas) . . ..
t Nirgran
historical ruler of Bengal who not only dreamt imperial dreams, hut East Bengal, then called Samatata, situated on the sea-side con
also succeeded in realising them. He laid the foundations of the
ta ed adherents of the Sthavira school of Buddhist monks and
in
imperial fabric in the shape of relished hopes and ideals on whi ch Digambara Nirgranthas and lo fol.lowrs of Devas . . .. As r:gards
the Palas built at a later age. "29 sasanka' s own centre of admimstrallon m central Bengal, VlZ., the
Sasanka was a persecutor of Buddhism. The bull-emblem on his country ofasuvaa it is described as being 'well-inhabited', full
coi!ls and Hiuen-tsang' s accounts indicate that he was a worshipper ofriLh people and having a temperate climate. The people were men
of Siva.30 The Maiijusrimulakalpa refers to him as 'dvijahavaya}:l', i.e. 'of good character' and 'patrons of learning'. The adherents of
Brahmanic31 which suggests that he was a follower of Brahmanism. Buddhism belonged to the Sammitiya school. They were followers
He was a great enemy of Buddhism and tried his best to destroy it of various other religions with Deva-temples in large number. In
wherever he went for his victorious campaigns.32_ Hiuen-tsang says three of the Buddhist monasteries of this part of Bengal, milk
that "at KuSinagara he felt distressed because by Sasanka's extermi products were not taken as food in accordance with the teaching of
nation of Buddhism, the groups of brethren were all broken up. "33 Devadatta. By the side of the capitai city was the L<?-to-mo-ti
The pilgrim also mentions that "in recent times King Sasanka, having (Rakta.mrittika-Rangamap) monastery which was a magnificent and
tried in vain to efface the foot-prints, caused the stone to be thrown famous establishment the resort of illustrious brethren. "40
into the Ganges. "34 This probably indicates the stone with the foot
prints of the Buddha at Pataliputra; The pilgrim describes further
that at Bodh-Gaya "in recen t times Sasanka, the enemy and oppres REFERENCES
sor of Buddhism, cut down the Bodhi tree, destroyed its roots down
to the water, and burnt what remained",35 and that the king had "the 'HB, I, 59. 2HNFJ, 1 60. 'Ibid., I60.
image ( ofBuddha) removed and replaced by one of Siva. "36 But R.D. 41bid. 'Ibid., I56-57. 6lbid., I63.
Banerjee and R.P. Chanda do not agreewith the Chinese pilgrim and 7lbid. 8Ibid., I66. 9Ibid., I67.
they do not believe his statements.37 R.P. Chanda mentions that "at 10fbid. "Ibid. 12Ibid., I69.
the root of Sasanka's ill-feeling towards the Buddhists was probably "Ibid. 14Ibid. "Ibid., I70.
the fact that the Buddhists of these places in Magadha and elsewhere '"Ibid. 171bid., I71. 18lbid.
19Ibid., 1 72-73. 20lbid., I83. 21lbid., I84.
entered into some conspiracy with Harvardhana against him, and
221bid., 186. 25lbid. ..Ibid.
he therefore wanted to punish them by such oppressive persecu 25Ibid. 26lbid., I87. 27Ibid.
tion. "38 The Maiijusrimulakalpa39 describes, "the person Soma '"Ibid., 188. '19HB, 1, 68. "'HNFJ, I8S.S9.
(Sasanka) , who will be a heroic king in countries on the bank of the "Ibid., 189. "Ibid. "Ibid.
Ganges even up to Benares, will destroy beautiful images of the great
"Ibid. "Ibid. "Ibid.
teacher (Buddha) . Relying on the heretics he will also cause to be "''bid. '"Ibid., I90. "'Ibid., I90-91.
burnt many a holy trace (or relic) . Then this irascible, greedy, self 40lbid., 191-94.
sufficient and ill-esteemed man will break down all monasterie s,
gardens and shrines and also the dwellings of the Nirgranthas on THE PALAs
earth, and thus put an obstacle to their religious profession."
R.G. Basakgives us an account of the religious condition ofBenl The Pala rulers never claimed their descent from any mythical or
at the time ofSaSanka. He says, "In Bengal, there were both Bud dhist epic hero. From the Khalimpur plate of Dharmapala we learn that
monasteries and Brahmanic Deva-temples. The Buddhists in Bengal "the family sprang from DayitaviQU, who is called Sarva-Vidyavadata
belonged to both the Hinayana (Sammitiya) and the Mahayana (sanctified by all sorts of knowledge) . His son Vapyata (Bappata) is
schools . . . . described as Khal)c;litarati; and the latter's son Gopala was forced to
I .II!
i
230 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in I-'
ouza /Jft tJdhism During the Reign of Sa5iinka of Gautf,a 231
Il
I
I
accept the hands of the Goddess offortune in order to put an en [th e Deccan. Although he was defeated by both of them, yet he wa
d
0b to establish his position. In course of time, by his campaigns he
I'
the conditi n of anarchy (miitsyanyiiya) then prevailing in nor
le
eastern India. ,1 In the commentary of the Riimacarita there a
references to the Pa.las, "who are said to have sprang from the sea
r cam e the ruler of nearly the whole of northern India. R.C.
says, "His career was indeed a remarkable one .. He
Maj um dar
The Kamauli grant ofVaidyadeva says that "they are said to have be inherited a small kingdom from his father, but his prowess and
born in the family of the sun (Vap.Sa Mihirasya) . "5 In the comme :
tary of a Nepal MS of the A!asiihasrikii,-Prajii iipiiramitii !farbhadra
diplomacy, aided by good fortune, enabled him to establish a vast
empire in northern India. He had to fight many battles, and some
refers to Dharmapala as Rajabhadi-Vap.S<t-patita.4 The A 'in-i-Akban tiffies suffered serious reverses. On more than one occasion his
mentions the Palas as a "Kayeth family."5 posi tion appeared precarious. But his undaunted spirit triumphed
over all obstacles, and he launched Bengal into a career of imperial
Gopala glory and military renown o whih ere has been no parallel befpre
For more an a century after Sasanka's death, Bengal was in great or sin ce. "12 He took the Impenal titles of Paramesvara, Parama
trouble and It suffered very much during this period. At that time bhatraka and Maharajadhiraja.
there was no strong political leader in Bengal. The Khalimpur A Tibetan tradition refers to Dharmapala as a great patron of
coppeiJ>lte of Dhannapala says that the general body of people Buddhism. 15 His seal as well as his title 'Parama-saugata 'indicate that
(prakrtz), m order to remove anarchy and confusion, requested he was a Buddhist. The Khalimpur copperplate ofDhannapala says,
Gopala (the son of Sri Vapyata and the grandson of Dayitavi_r:Iu) to "May the ten powers of Vajrasana (of Buddha) who has firmly
ascend the throne of Bengal. 6 Gopala occupied the throne in AD 750 attained, as to fortune, to omniscience ( those powers) which cher
and founded the Pala dynasty. This was an important event no doubt ished by his consort-great compassion, conquer, the regions where
in the political as well as in the religious history of Bengal. The new many hosts of the Evil one are, seen protecting you. "14 This record of
ruler not only removed anarchy but also brought about the end of Dharmapala gives us some Mahayanic concept of Buddhism. It indi
the state of Matsyanyaya ("a great fish swallows a small one" or cates that Mahayana Buddhism developed in the kingdom of Dhar
"whenever there is a failure of law of punishment") which existed in mapala. Dhannapala was the founder of the VikramaSila vihara in
Bengal for some time. From Taranatha's account it is known that Magadha. In it there were 1 14 teachers who used to give lessons on
Gopala belonged to a triya family near Pu_r:J<;}ravardhana.7 Accord different subjects. Among these teachers about 1 08 were renowned
ing to Taranatha Gopala first reigned in Bengal and then brought scholars. It had a central library which was surrounded by 107 others.
Magadha under his rule.8 The Monghyr grant ofDevapala says that They were enclosed by a boundary wall. It is said that this monastery
Gopala extended his power up to the sea.9 After his accession to the had the life-size image of the Master, fifty-three smaller temples
throne, Gopala played a vital role for the progress ofBuddhism in his belonging to the Guhya Tantra and fifty-four ordinary temples.15
kingdom. The Tibetan tradition refers to Gopala as the founder of Every month a festival was organised for the discussion of the
the Odantapura (or Odantapuri) Mahavihara near Nalanda.10 But doctrines and on this occasion gifts were distributed. But some
other traditions mention Dhannapala and Devapala as its founder. traditions mention Devapala as its founder. 16 R.C. Majumdar states,
From Taranatha's account we learn that several Buddhist scholars "The reference to the vihara as Srimad-VikramaSila-deva-mahavihara17
flourished during Gopala's reign. This shows that his reign witnessed shows us that VikramaSila was another name or biruda of Dharma
the Buddhist activities and the development ofBuddhistliterature in pala (or Devapala) who founded it. "18 Bu-ston mentions that Dhar
his kingdom. mapa.Ia was the founder ofa monastery at Odantapuri. 19 But Taranatha
says that Gopala or Devapala built it.20 From a short inscription on
Dharmapiila some clay seals found in Paharpur, it is known that Dharmapala built
Dharmapala, the son ofGopala, ascended the throne ofBengal in the Somapuri vihara.21 Taranatha mentions that Dhannapala built
AD 770.U From the Khalimpur copperplate it is known that most 50 religious schools.22 It is known that under Dharmapala's patron
probably he ruled for at least thirty-two years. He was a powerful ruler age fifty educational institutions for the development of Buddhist
no doubt. Shortly after his accession to the throne, he was involved studies were established. Here Buddhist scholars used to study
in warwith the Pratiharas ofMalwa and Rajputanaand the Ratrakiitas :Buddhist doctrines. Dhannapala took keen interest in the study of
/JUtlt}hism During the Reign of Saiiinka of Gawfa
'
233
232 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in ],.,.,
' .K.I. lQ
Vtkalas,
Hiinas, Gmjaras and Driivias.33 It is said that under his rule
Pala empire reached the zemth of . I gIory and Buddhtm
'
e
wo was D vapala's younge cousin. From it we co!! elude that Sura. (iii) The image containing Buddhist inscription, belonging to
pala .s cousm was Vtgrahapala I. Most probably, Siirapala was su - the 32nd year of Rajyapala.
ceeded by Vigrahapala I and after latter's reign, Narayanapala hIS (iv) Inscribed image donated by Gauka, the second wife of
Goamalahina of Apaaka monastery.44
son, ascende d th e throne. It seems that both Siirapala and v gra
'
hapala I did not rule for a very long time. They came to the th one ;.
fior a very bne f peno
d. This shows the prosperity ofBuddhism during the rule ofRajyapala.
kingdom. The
There is a reference to Siirapalaas Paramasaugata in the Mirzap But Brahmanism also became very popular in his
copperplate. He also had usual royal titles. The epithetParamasauga Bhaturiyastone inscription describes thatRajyapalagave one hundred
and the Buddhist dharmacakra antelope symbol suggest that he wa Puraa s ad the revenue of the village named Madhusrava to the
a devr_ee o! Buddhism. The Mirzapur copperplate mentions tha tem ple of Siva.45
_
King Surapala from Mudgagiri at the r_equest of queen Mahadevi After Rajyapala's death, his son Gopala II ascended the throne of
Maheobhattaril? v: some villages in Sri-nagara-bhukti (Patna) as the Pala kingdom. Buddhism flourished in the reign ofGopala II. An
donation to the Satvacaryas ofBanares. The Badal Pillar inscription inscription on the pedestal of a Buddha statue was found at Bodh
S<_tYS that when Kedaramisra eerformed the sacrificial ceremonies Gaya.46 It refers to the consecration of the Buddha image (muni) by
(t.e., the Homa ceremonies) . Siirapala came to attend it and for the a person named Dharmabhima who ?escribes himself as Sindhud
welfare of his people apd his empire he poured holy water over his bhava (native of Sindhu) and also as Sakrasena when Gopala II was
own hea. Although Srapala was a follower of Buddhism, yet he on the throne of the Pala empire. The colophon of the Manuscript
soed hts tolerant pohcy and allowed other re!igions to develop in Afasiihasrikii-prajiiiipiiramitii describes-"Pa_ramesvara Paramabhattii
hts kingdom. Two other records of the reign ofSiirapala were found raka Parama-Saugata Maharajadhiraja Srimad-:9opaladeva P!a
in Bihar.41 There are two inscriptions on the pedestal of two images varddhamana-Kalyaa vijayarajye tyadisaJ!lvat 15 Asvainadine 4 Sri
of the Buddha. They sa that Piiradasa, a Buddhist monk ofSindin mad-VikramaSiladevavihare likhiteyaJ!l. "47 It indicates that the
the rd regal year of Siirapala established these images. VikramaSila Mahavihara flourished under the patronage of Gopala
V1grahapala ruled for a very short period. Narayaapala took the II. It also informs us further that the religious texts like the
throne after him. But no record refers to the development of A!asiihasrikii-prajiiiipiiramitiiwere written there during his reign. But
Buddhism in his kingdom. Thus from any record we do not know it does not say anything about his role for the development of
anything about the progress of Buddhism under his patronage. But Buddhism in his kingdom. A palm-leaf manuscript of the Maitreya
we presume that he followed the religious policy of his predecessors. Vyakaraa bears the date year 57 ofGopaladeva 's reign. It refers to
From an inscription it is known that Dharmamitra who belonged to the life of Maitreya, the future Buddha and his teachings.48
Vigrahapala II ascended the throne after Gopala II. He was a weak
d_hra ws Buddhist monk. He in the 9th regnal year of ruler. He was extremely busy with his political activities. Due to the
Nayaapala mstalled an image of the Buddha in Magadha.42 The
haga_lpur grant ofNarayaapala found in Bhagalpurin Bihar opens political crisis he could not devote his time to the development of
m pratse of Lokanatha Da5abala (Buddha) .43 Buddhism. A manuscript of the Pancaraka,49 the Kurikhar images
Narayaapala's successor was Rajyapala. He took the throne in AD and some terracottas50 of the reign ofVigrahapala II were found. It
908. Four image inscriptions were found at Kurkihar (near Patna}. is difficult to say anything about Vigrahapala Il's role for Buddhism.
They describe the names of individuals, who in order to attain Mahipala I ascended the throne of the Pala kingdom after Vigra
religious merit, installed Buddhist images. They are: hapala II. He was an able ruler. He brought the political stability of
his kingdom. He expelled the Kamboja-Palas, who, during the later
part of the tenth century AD occupied some part of the Pala empire
gift of the image by one named Narasimha Caturvedin, a
(i)
Vedic Brahmaa, who became a discipie of the Sthavira and established a kingdom in West and North Bengal (i.e. Raha
VairocnasiJ!lha in the 28th year of the king Rajyapala. Varendri) and mentioned their chiefs as kings. 51 VA. Smith states,
(ii) mage mstalled by Miilaka, wife of Mahiaru, a resident of "'fall the Pala kings he (Mahipala) is the best remembered, and says
in his honour, which used to be sung in many parts of Bengal until
Apaaka monastery in the 31st regnal year of Rajyapala.
recent times, are still to be heard in remote comers of Orissa and
i
236 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in [...<-za r ouddhism During the Reign of saJanka of Gawf
a 237
., .
in Magadha. V.A
Kuch Bihar. "52 Rajendra, the Coa king of Kanci, attacked his kmg. onJin ent roles for the progress of the Tantra
r ith states that MahipalaMagad
. the religious inter-
dom. I's reign witnessed
During the rule of Mahipala I Buddhism flourished to a great coC:rse between Tibet and Magadha at th.e invitation of the former
ha.68D harma pala and several other
extent m h"Is ki ngd om. Maipala I wa a follower of Buddhis m . H e onks went to Tibet from
Ill untry and n;ed to popularise Buddhism there.69
. . Mahipala I showed
played a sigmficant role for Its prospenty. The Sarnath inscription f
l!lvat 1 083 (A_? !026) opens with '01!1 namo Buddhaya '. It me s liberalof his reign that Brahmanism prosperedknown
attitud e toward s other religio ns. It is from two
in his kingdom
tlons tha Mahipa1 I requested his. two brothers, Sthirapala an d ecords
Vasantapala to repatr and to construct different religious buil dings nder hisalpatron age. The Belwa land grant' 0 which belong ed to his
5th regn year and the Banga rh or Banga d grant' 1 of the 9th year of
at Siirna-th.55 HIS. two brothers repaired the Dharmarajika, the Dhar-
macakra, i.e, the place where the first sermon was preached by the his reignhisreferkingdo
to his important role for the prosperity of Brahm an
Budd and also constructed a "new gandharku!i (shrine) made of m. The Bangad inscrip tion menti ons that
ism in bat.IJ.ing in the
stone , I.e., the Buddha's temple. 54 We are told that the king's two Mahipaladeva in the name of Lord Buddha afteritya Sarman the
brothers most probably repaired the Dhamek Stupa at Sarnath.55 Ganges gave to the Brahm ar:ta Bhana putra Krnad
village of Kura pallika in the Gokul ika-ma r:tQala in the Kovar
The Nlanda stoe in_scription56 of the 1 1 th regnal year ofMahipala
_
I m_en tlons that Baladitya, who was a follower ofMahayanism and was viya in the Pur:tQravardhana-bhukti.72
reIdent ofTiadha, repired the Nlanda monastery during the Nayapala, who was the son ofMahipala I, ascend ed the throne of
an impor
reign_ fMahipala I. The Tibetan traditlon . refers to the flom;shing the Pala kingdom after his father. The former's reign was Pala king
tant period no doubt for Buddh ism. It prospe red in the
co_nditlon of the Somauri monastery uring his reign.58 K.N. Dik his reign the Vikram aSila
shit says, "The prospenty of the establishment was reflected in a dom under his great patronage. During
and the Somapurl monas teries becam e very famou s. Monks not only
wholesale renovation of the main temple and in the monastic cells Tibet used to come to
where a number ofornamental pedestals seem to have been installed from differe nt parts of India but also from
these monasteries to study there under the guidan ce of teache rs. 73 It
and at the shrine ofTara in the Satyapir Bhita numerous votive stupas in these monas teries
were constructed. "59 is known that one Lochab from Tibet resided
A stone inscription of monk named Vipula.Srimitra was found at and wrote Buddhist texts, copied the Buddhist manuscripts and
translated them into the Tibetan language.74 During Nayapala's
reign. a Buddhist mission under the leadership ofAtia went to Tibet
Nalnd. 50 It mentions that Karur:tamisra, who was a Vajracarya, used
o he the Somapuri monastery. The Bodh-Gaya stone image
mscnptlon on the pedestal of a Buddha image informs us that from Magadha and they not only popularised Buddhism there but
PamabhanarakaMahipaladevain the l l thyearofhisreign erected also played their vital part for the re-establishment of Tibetan Bud
the nnag f the Budh i the_ Bhumisparia mudrii and he gave two dhism.75 These Indian monk-scholars with the help of local scholars
gandkuzs_alon_ !h It: 1 It Is learnt that one manuscript of the translated many Buddhist texts in Tibetan.76 Many copied manu
Af!asas_rikii-praJnaP_aramttii was written in the 5th year of the reign scripts of the reign of Mahipala and Nayapala were sent not only to
of!UP.aia I. Itdescnbes-"Paramdvara Parmabha!3-raka Maharaja Nepal but several Buddhist texts were also despatched to Japan.77
dhiraJa Sriman Mahipaladeva pravardhamana vijayarajye 65 a.Svini This shows that the eleventh century AD was an age ofgreat devotional
kr?e : "62 This anuscript is now at the library of the Cambridge activity and Magadhawas regarded as its important centre. Thus the
Unrsty, mbnde.63 other manuscript of the Af!asiihasrikii reign of Mahipala I and Nayapala were important no doubt in the
frr_aJnaparaw! WC: wntten m Mapala I's 6th regnal year.64 From the history of Buddhism. This period witnessed the rise and develop
Tibetan traditlon we learn that kmg Mahipala I not only showed his ment of Tanu;cism. Buddhism saw a great change in its doctrin es
eat reverence to Prajiiapalita, the monk-scholar, but requested and philosophy and it turned more and more towards Tantricism. It
him to stay at the Otsayana CiiQamal_li memastery near Jyalaguha in is to be noted here that Tantric gods and goddesses not only began
the south of Magadha. The reign of Mahipala I witnessed the to appear in Buddhism but soon they were accepted in Buddhism
development ofTantric Buddhism:66 Taranatha gives us the name and were regarded as incarnations of the Buddhas and Bodhi
of several aciiryas who wrote commentaries on the Guhya-samiija an d sattvas.'s
other Tantras.67 He mentions further that these aciiryas played their
ana llectzne oj Buddhism in 1
239
t.e LUSt:
ndz a . ' ]Juddhism During
the Reign ofSaiii:n ka ofGaUtja
. . Wnt II and
R-ma soned h'IS two
and It was wntten m the 14th regnal year of Paramasa e 1t when he became king, he at once Impn
lo. d Butdid
br :ndintern
Mahariijadhiraja Paramesvara Sriman-Nayapaladeva and th e ugata not rule the country prop erly.9 1 Taki g the opp_?
bore.all expenses qeen Divya o Divyo ka, th ch1ef ofthe casi
. . . Weare told thatNayapalaacceptedAtisa-nIpan kara ni of this al troub le,
e very
tu . tyrta tribe or
as hIs spmtual teacherBO and used to rule the country accord'mg Mahi sya caste , whiCh at that time becam
the Iatter' s a.dVIC to Kaiva st Ki ng M ah -
Ipa a II .92
werful in northern Bengal, revolted sagam
-1
Gau<;fa and other pnnces. "82 The Bheraghat inscription of Alh:. of the Ratrakiitas who were d by marn ge an cam With a
ndevi, tl_le queen. of Gaya-Kan:ta, the grandson of Lakmi-Karna, ted Bhim a who was also killed . Rama pa then
?m.95 A. Snuth says,
huge force and defea
gves us mforma.tion that "when the latter gave full play to his was able to occupy the throne of the Pala kingdssmg a VIgorous under
her1. m, the Vanga trembled with Kalinga."83 From the Tibetan "Ramapala is described by Tariinatha as posse
tradition we learn that failing to capture the city, Lami-Kal'Qa's standing and widely exten ded powe r. 96 He conqu ered Utkala,
troops sacked some of the sacred Buddhist institutions and killed Kalmga and K.amarupa. . _ .
altogether five (men), out of whom four were ordained monks and Ramapala was a devout Buddhist. The Riimacanta (IV, -3) of
?n_ "!.,piisaka. At this time the celebrated Buddhist monk Dipankara Sandhyakaranandi mentions that Rama vati as the capita l of
_
SriJnana (alo called AtiSa) who had accepted the post of High Priest Ramapala.!11 Here lived many Budd hist m nks. This place had also an
of Vikramasda at the request of Nayapala, was in residence at th e image of Avalokitesvara. The Riimacanta y at acco t we e Jagad dala
vihara of Mahabodhi at Vajriisana. When a good deal of church vihara was erected by Ramapala.96 From Taranatha sthe
ana
furniture was carried a booty, AtiSa showed no concern or anger. learn that Acarya Abhayakaragupta became the head of ndVaJras Nalan d
But afterwards when VIctory turned towards (Nayapala) and the (Bodh-Gaya) as well as the head of the _Vdam aSila
troops of Kan:ta were being slaughtered by the armies of Magadha, monasteries under the patronage of Rama pala who JUSt afer his
accession to the thron e took the initiative to appoint him.99 Acarya
he took the king ofKan:ta and his men under his protection and sent
them away. AtiSa then caused a treaty to be concluded between two t
I
Ratnakarasa nti-pa was anoth er renow ned figure ofBud dhism .100 He
kings. " . . . Unmindful of his health even at the risk of his life AtiSa I lived during the reign of Ramapala. . . .
again and again crossed the rivers that lay between the two kindoms It is to be noted here that Buddhism declmed m many placesage of
and thereby brought peace to all living beings. "84 India. But it prospered in the Pala domin ions u. n der the patron
Vigrahapala III, who was the son and successor ofNayapala, took ofRamapala. l01 During this period the monastene ofMagada ::_vere
s. An Image of Tara was
the throne of the Pala kingdom and defeated Laksmi-Karna of crowded with thousands of Buddhist monk
Cedi.85 No records refers to his contribution to Buddhism. Fro an installed at the ancient Uddal,l<;lapura fortre ss in the second year o_f
inscription on the pedestal of the image of the Buddha we learn that Ramapala's reign. Graha 1 o2 l,lakul,l <;la, who belon ged to Nalan da,
on Suvafl,laka Dehaka in the 13th regnal year ofKing Vigrahapala copied the Atasiihasriki-i pra_jfiapiiramitii in the 1 5th regnal yar of
III mstalled the Image of the Buddha.86 This no doubt gives us an idea Ramapala.to3 A merchant name d Sadhuaha ral,la of the llage
bout the popularity of Buddhism in the Pala Kingdom. Brahman called Etraha within Rajagrha installed the Image othe B_odIsa tva
in the 42nd year of Rama
Ism also prospered during the reign of Vigrahapala III. Two land pala's reign .104 ! hus R mapa la s reign
ts were ound at Belwa87 and Amgachi. 88 They say that Vigra marked the revival of the greatn ess of the Palas and It opened a ne
hapala III did these land-grants for the benefit of individual era of peace and prosperity.105 He like is. predecessors showewas d his
a
Briihlllaf.las. 89 The Gaya stone inscription refers to the construction great tolerant policy towards other religiO ns. tho gh he.
of two temples by Visvariipa V!Svaditya for Siva.90 Buddhist, yet he committed suicid e by drowm ng himse lf m the
240 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in lndlQ
Buddhism During the Reign of Sasii:nka of Gauif,a 241
Ganges fter offering iweal to he Brama1_1as in order to occu
a plce m even.106 1 h1s also md1cates h1s great faith in the Bra r. from any source about the contribution of some
of its rulers to its
mamcal religiOn
prosperity: The Pala ngs al o played prominent role in the
Tariinatha an several Bengal auhors mention Ramapala as the of ancient lndta. VA. Smith says, "The Pala dynasty
last ruler of the Pala dy asty:_YA. Sm1th says, "Taranatha and certain political history
es remembra nce as one of the most remarkabl e of Indian
Bengal authors trat Ramapalaas the lastofhis dynasty, or atany rate, deserv
dyna s ties. No other royal line in an important kingdom, save that of
the last who exercised cons1drable pwer, ut th: iscriptions prove four and a half centuries. Dhar
that he was followed by fiv kmgs ofh1s famdy."10' lt IS quite true that the Andhras, endured so long, for
mapala and Devapala succeeded in making Bengal one of the great
he was the last powerful king of the Pala dynasty. Kumarapala wh not the control of
was Raapala's ldest son, ascended tJ:te throne ofthe Pala kin do powe
realm
rs
s
of
so
India,
wide or
and, although
possessed
later
influence
kings
so
had
extensive, their dominion
after h1s father s death. The next kmg was Gopala III who was
, was far from being contemptible . . . . The Palas seem to have half
'
ditya.14 After him Samacaradeva took the throne.15 He becam e :a k states, "This Praptapaiica-maha5abda ruler of Samatata,
known as Maharajadhiriija. He reigned for several years. Because on
e Sri d ara Qa-Rata-d eva, was approached by his Mahasandhi
copperplate grant was issued in his 14th regnal year. The bull vi dhilq-ta (the Chief Minister of Peace and War) . Jayanatha,
graha
sta!ldard of coins ofSamacaradva suggests that he was a worshipper
thro ugh the crown-prince Yuvaraja-priiptapaiicamaha.Sabda Bala
ofSiva.16 It is very probable that Saivism flourished in the kingd om of dharaQa-riita-bhattaraka, praying for the grant of 25 paakas of land
these three rulers. No record refers to the prevalence of Buddh ism situ ated in two viayas named Guptinatana and PataHiyika which he
there. desired for some sacred purposes. He wanted to be favoured by the
kingwith the grant of the land to him, so that he might himself make
GENEALOGY a divisi on of the granted paakas ofland between two different kinds
of religiously worshipped objects. The first purpose was to provide
Three Rulers of Samatata17 for the garlands, incense, light and unguents for the great merciful
Gopachandra and all knowing lord Tathagata (Buddha) . His second purpose was
Dharmaditya to meet the expenses for the study and recitation of the Dharma of
Samacaradeva which thewaywas taught by the Lord, and his third purpose was again
to provide the various requisites such as robes and food-lumps and
other materials for the noble Safttgha. The applicant minister
REFERENCES Jayanatha's fourth purpose was to make a distribution of certain
portions of the granted land to Senegal (name and number of them
'East Bengal. 2HNEI, 229. mentioned along with the shares allotted to them) . BriihmaQas,
'Ibid., 229, fn 10. lhese are: (a) GrantofGopachandra, year 3; (b) Second Grant versed in lores, for performing the five mahayajfias. The king
of the same king, year 18; (c) Grant of Dharmaditya, year 3; (d) Second Grant of the SridharaQa granted the prayer ofJayanatha to whom 25 pii!akas of
same king; (e) Grant ofSamacaradeva, year 7;and (f) Second Grant of the same king, demarcated land were given. The rulers of the Rata dynasty of
year 14. A seal of Sarnacaradeva has been found at Nalanda; "-1\MS/, no. 66, 31; Fl. Samatata cherished the spirit of religious toleration which prevailed
XVIII, 155; XXX, 161-63; /A, XXXIX, 1910;}\SB, VI, 429;}\SBNS, VII, 476; El, XVIII, among most of the rulers of different states during all periods of
Indian history. This copperplate serves as an example of that kind of
74 II; SAMSJV, Ill, 485 II.
4HNEI, 236; El, XVIII, 79-80;}\SBNS, XXI, 20 II; CCIM, 1 906, I, 120; CCBM, 149.
,
'HNEI, 230. 6Ibid. 'Ibid. toleration as we find SridharaQa granting land simultaneously for
Ibid. "Ibid., 230-31. '0Ibid., 231 . the purpose of worshipping the Buddhist triratna and also for the
"Ibid. '2Ibid., 232. "Ibid., 233. maintenance of sacrifices by learned BrahmaQas,Jayanatha wanted
14Ibid., 234. "Ibid., 236. 16Ibid., 237. to perform this relgious act for the enhancement of the merit of his
''Ibid., 230-3 7. own parents and his sons and grandsons and also for (all beings of)
the world. "9
THE RATA DYNASTY
GENEALOGY
The Kailan copperplate refers to the Rata dynasty.1 This copper
plate grant ws found at a village called Kailan of the Tippera The Riita Rufers1
district.2 King Sri-dharai_la-Rata issued this copperplate grant m the JivadhiiraQa-Rata-Bhattaraka
8th year of the administration of Samatata at a place called De SridhiiraQa-Rata
vapariivata.3 In it there is a reference to him as Samatate5vara , the
ruler ofSamata!a. 4 His father's name wasJivadharai_larata-bhat?ra
who was also known as Smatatesvara.5 His mother was Bandh ud eVI
This first verse of the copperpiate grant invoked Hari, the god, which
'
246 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India BtJ,Jdhism During the Reign of Sa.Siinlca of Gawja 247
REFERENCES
aflllY of King Lokanatl1a's father. Although the grant refers to
J{e5ava, the father of Lokanatha's mother as ParaS<tva, but the grant
'HNEI, 248. 'Ibid. 'Ibid., 249-5 0. 111en tions the great-grand-father and grand-father of his mother as
'Ibid., 249. 'Ibid. 6lbid. J)vijavara and Dvijasattama respectively.17 This indicates that the
'Ibid. 8lbid. 9lbid., 249-50.
anuloma form of marriage existed in Hindu society in the seventh
10Jbid.
century in East Bengal. Lokanatha had a good reputation as a ruler
"whose soldiers depended for victory chiefly on their own swords and
THE NATHA DYNASTY on the intellect of his ministers. "18 Lokanatha was a feudatory chief
just a fe years after Haqavardhana's death.19 R.G. Basak thinks that
R.G. Basak giVes us the names of several rulers with the surname un der Adityasena of Magadha he was a feudatory chief in East
Natha of a dynasty of East Bengal.1 This dynasty came to power in East Bengal.20
Bengal between Har's death and the rise of the Kha<;lga dynasty.2 From Lokanatha's copperplate grant we do not know anything
Probably, these rulers acknowledged the lord-paramountcy, either about the prevalence of Buddhism in East Bengal. Lokanatha's
of the East Bengal rulers of the Farldpur grants or that of the later ancestors were devout worshippers ofSankara, i.e., they were Saivas
Gupta dynasty of Magadha.5 The copperplate grant of Lokanatha in religion.21 His BrahmaQa officer was PradoSarman. He esta
found in the district of Tippera mentions the name of a dynasty lished an image of Anantanarayal)a.22 This indicates the prevalence
which ruled in some part of East Bengal and showed its allegiance to of Brahmanic religion in this part of Bengal when the Natha dynasty
4
some imperial rulers. This grant refers to Lokanatha as a feudatory ruled there.
chief, "a saman ta with the Kumaramatya title. "5 R.G. Basak says, 'The
seal attached to this plate, bears on the obverse a figure of the GENEALOGY
rulers of Sarnata!a and most probably, they accepted the lord and is not an outlandish name. "14 Jatakha<;fga, who was the son of
paramountcy and suzerainty of the last three or four rulers of the l{hadgodyama, was the second king of the Kha<;fga dynasty. He was a
ruler and had to fight many battles against his enemies. He
later Gupta dynasty ofMagadha.2 R.G. Basak says, "In our opin ion th powrful
Kha<;fga dynasty of four rulers reigned during the last three quane
of the seventh century AD, and must not have lived long beyond the
annih ilated them "by means of his prowess, just as wind destroys a
straW and an elephant a number of horses. "15 The next king was
first quarters of t!te e1hth century; and they ruled in East B engal, Devakha<;fga. He was the son of Jitakha<;fga. He was a maker of
contemporaneously With the last . three or four rulers of the Later dona tions (diinapiitiJ.t), majestic (pratiifi), and possessed a sword
Gupta dynasty of Magadha, rulmg from about AD 650 to 730. "3 which could subdue his foes (jitarikhacjgaJ.t). "16 He enjoyed a very
The Kha<;fga dynasty began its rule in East Bengal just after the peaceful reign.
death of Ha and before the establishment of the Pala dynasty of From the two copperplate grants found atAshrafpurwe learn that
Bengal, i.e., the period between AD 650 to AD 750.4 From the palaeo the rulers of the Kha<;lga dynasty were devout Buddhists. The donee
graphy of the Ashrafi:mr and Deulbari inscriptions and the Chinese in both these plates were Sanghamitra, the famous Buddhist teacher
evidence, R.C. Majumdar opines that the Kha<;lga dynasty was not and his monastery. 17 King Devakha<;fga for the longevity of his son
only able to establish its supremacy but maintained its authority in Rajarajabhat!a or Rajaraja, did the first gift. He gave lands to
East Bengal almost immediately after the rule of Havardhana.5 Sangharnitra and his rnonastery.18 The second plate refers to this
Two coppe':Plate grants found along with a bronze caitya inAshrafpur grant. It says that the pious prince made it "for the sake of ratna-traya
about 30 miles north-east of Dacca and about 5 miles from the Sital (the Buddhist triad) , in order to destroy 'the fears of three bhavas'."19
Lakhya river and the Sarvani image inscription of queen Prabhavati The grant also mentions four monastic institutions (vihiira-vihiitrika
found also in or near a village called Den! bari situated abon t 1 4 miles catushtaya)ro which in9ii::ates the development of Buddhism in East
south of Comilla in the district of Tippera give us an account of the Bengal at such an early period. From Plate A it is known that
Kha<;fga rulers.6 N.K. Bhattasali says that these Kha<;fga inscriptions Prabhavati, the cpreF queen, under her possession had some land
do not belong to a date posterior to the beginning of the 8th century which was given by King Devakha<;fga to the Buddhist monasteries.21
AD.7 But G.M. Laskar and R.D. Banerji think that this dynasty The second plate describes Brhatparamesvara (the overlord) and
flourished in eastern Bengal in later period. 8 one Udirl)akha<;fga, the first disposers of some land to other don
From several inscriptions we known the names offour rulers ofthe ees.22 But Rajarajabhatta, the heir-apparent again gave it as gifts.2!
a<;fga dynasty. They were Kha<;fgodyarna, his son Jatakha<;Iga and The Sarval)i image inscription refers to these kings mentioned
his son Devakha<;fga. Rajaraja or Rajarajabhatta was the son of above. It also describes that Mahadevi Prabhavati, the queen-consort
. Devakha<;fga.9 The latter issued both his copperplate grants at ofking Devakha<;fga, out ofdevotion made the image of Sarval)i, the
Karman tavasaka and Piiradasa, a Buddhist writer, wrote them. 10 The goddess, with gold.24 This eight-armed image of Sarval)i was a
opening verses of both the plates invoke the Buddha. The second goddess of the Brahmanic religion. This indicates the liberal attitude
plate describes that Kha<;fgodyama, the Kha<;fga ruler, became suc and the tolerant policy of queen Prabhavati and king DP-vakha<;fga.
cessful in his conquest on earth after he showed his great devotion Seng-chi, the Chinese pilgrim, came to Sarnata!a in the 7th century
towards Sugata (the Buddha) , the Dharma and the Sa'ftlgha.U This AD.25 He says, "The king of that country named Rajabha!a (patu), . . .
shows that he was a devotee of the Buddha. The Sarval)i image greatly reverenced the three objects ofworship, and devoted himself
inscription refers to Kha<;fgodyarnaas overlord ofrulers (nJPadhiriija). to his religious duties.0026 This Rajabhata of Seng-chi was Rajaraja,
R.C. Majumdar tries to connect these Kha<;fgas with Kha<;fgis, who who was Devakha<;fga's son. There is a reference to him as
flourished in the 14th century AD. 12 R.C. Majumdar says, "this dynasty Rajarajabhatta in Plate A, which describes "by whom, the destroyer
of the Kha<;lgas carne to eastern Bengal in the train of the Tibetans of the fears of the three bhavas, the gift of his own land was given to
and the Nepalese during the troublesome days that followed the the triad. "27 It is very probable that Devakha<;fga and his son
death ofHarvardhana. "13R.G. Basak mentions, "In the absence of Rajarajabhatta reigned towards the end of the seventh century AD
definite evidence regarding this point, we should hold this view of and the latter also lived sometime in the first quarter of the eighth
the learned Doctor as tentative, and think that the surname Kha<;fga century AD. Thus the Kha<;lga rulers were great patrons of Buddhism.
may have represented an indigenous triya family of East Bengal , Hiuen-tsang and Seng-chi found the flourishing condition of Bud
dhism in Sarnatata during the rule of the Kha<;Iga dynasty.
\
The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in I_, . Butkfhism During the Reign of aa:nka of Ga'U{la
S 25 1
250
cuta
1 MASB, I, 85-9I ; El, XVII, 357 ff. 2HNFJ, 237-38. 'HB, I, I91.
'Ibid., 238. 4Ibid., 252. 'Ibid., 253. I ; DUS, I, II, I 3 1 .
61bid. 'Ibid.; FJ, XXII, I53; IH XV, 511; DHNI, I, 3 1 1 , fn
7Ibid. 8lbid., 253--54.
6HB, I, 191; VJI, 1 72.
'HB, l , I 9 I ; GRM, 37. HB, I, I91 .
91bid., 254. 10Ibid. llJbid., 255.
'Ibid.; IH XV, 5 I I ; DHNI, I, 309, fn 2.
'2Jbid. "Ibid.
t
"Ibid. 1HB, I, 1 91 ; El, XXIV, 45. 8HB, 1, 191; ICJC, 278-79.
"Ibid. 16lbid., 256. 11Jbid.
9HB, I, 1 91; BAB, 54. 10 BAB, 54.
:r
181bid., 256-57. 191bid., 257. The Buddha, the Dhanna and the Samgha.
.
b d., 257. "Ibid. 22Jbid.
I
lbtd. "'Ibid. 25Jbid., 258. THE HARIKELA KINGDOM UNDER KANTIDEVA
'"Ibid., Hwui Li, XL-XU.
"'bi 258. Th Buddha, the Dhanna and the Sat[lgha. "dattam ratnatrayaya tribhavrr
.
The Palas gradually lost control over East and South Bengal. There
bhaya-bhida yena danam svabhftmeh." . are definite evidences to show that several independent kingdoms
existed in these parts of Bengal. From an incomplete draft of a
"'Ibid., 254; DHNI, I, 384.
to establish an independent kingdom. Most probably, he n Gopala may be plaed about the middle of the eigth cen t:ury AD.
ded
during the period AD 850-950.13 It seems that Kantideva came _
'fhis fairly agrees With the chronology of the Pala kmgs whtch has
t
power in Bengal just after the death of Devapala, whose successo
were all weak-rulers. Taking advantage of it, he established
be en derived from independent date. 1
"1
vin<!achandra probably was the ruler of the whole of the dominions 20BAB, 5 I ; PIHC, XXIII, 1960, I , 36. 24BAB, 5 1 .
itoMP, 21 II; BAP, IV, 1 367 B.s., 25 ff; PIHC, XXIII, I , 1960, 36 ff.
""Ibid.
of Srichandra.32 R.C. Maj umdar says, "But, as in the case
c;lahachan?ra ere is no evidence to connect Govindachandof ra 21MP, 21 ff; BAP, N, 25 ff; PIHC, XXIII, I , 36 ff; BAB, 5 1 .
With the family ofSrichandra, though it is not unlikely that either or '"BAB, 5 1 . 29Ibid. '"Ibid.
both of thm were members of that royal family. At all events, the six "HB, I, 196. <2Ibid. "Ibid.
Chanra kings, known from inscriptions, may be regarded as having "Ibid., 1 96-97. "'HB, I, 193; BAB, 49; DHNJ, I, 385.
ru ed m eastern or southern Bengal (and some over both) during the
pnod between AD 900 and 1050. "33 THE SORAS (c. AD 950-1 100) 1
The above facts make us quite clear that the Chandras were
followers ofB ddism an ? in their kingdom Buddhism prospered There were Sura rulers in western Bengal. In the genealogical lists of
no doub ut It 1s_ mteres ng to note here that they also patronised Bengal match-makers (gha[akas) there is a reference to the Sura kings
other religions an contnbuted very much to their development. ofBengaP Ral)asura was regarded as the ruler of the region located
in the north of Dal)c;la-bl_mkti.3 The Kulapaiijikas_ of these gha!akas
rom the Kalacun records we learn that several Kalacuri king give the names of the Siira kings. They were Adisura, Bhusura,
mvdd the Chandra kingdom. Karl)a (AD 1041-70), the great Kala
cun kmg, destroyed the Chandra kingdom in the middle of the itisura, Avanisura, Dharal)iSura and Ral)a5ura.4 According to sev
eleventh century AD.34 eral scholars, Ral)asura possibly was the ruler ofDail)a-Rac;lha.5 The
commentary of the Riimacarita (II, 5) mentions one Lamisura, the
GENEALOGY ruler of Apara-mal)c;lara.6 He was one of the chief feudatories of
Ramapala. Some scholars locate Apara-mal)c;lara in western Bengal.7
Thehandra ru Lakmisura is mentioned as "Apara-mal)c;lara-madhusudana and
Purl)achandra samanta-cakra-cuc;lamal)i. "8 The Barrackpore (grant) ofVijayasena
Suvarnachandra married Vilasadevi who was a daughter of the Sura family.9 This
Maha;a_jadhiriija 1railokyachandra-Srikaiicana indicates the existence of the Sura dynasty in western Bengal.
Mahariijadhiriija Sri chan dra
Kalyal)achandra GENEALOGY
Ladahachandra
Gondachandra The Siirasio
Ral)asura (c. AD 1021-25)
Lakmisura (c. AD 1084-1 1 00)
258 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in lndla f ]Juddhis m During th Reign of Sa$iinka of Gawfa 259
Harivarman rinces who ruled over the surface of the earth, but beyond thesf
samalavarman ue genrank
eral phrases, there is nothing to indicat that they reall)
of independent kings. Several records, belonged tc
Bhojavarman held the
"6
further struggle with the Senas. Lakmal)asena died in AD 1 205 28 the a reference to him as Parama-NarasiJ!1ha.43 All these grants
Mter him Visvariipasena and Ke5avasena his two sons, rule d i.n e iswith
n 'OJ!l namo Nariiyal)a.' He also had the title Parama
begira ,
sau
Vikramapura one after the other.29 Visvariipasena not only assumed 44 Thus in the kingdom of the Senas the three Brahmanical
the imperial title Mahariijadhiraja but also called himself 'Ari rija
Vrbhanka-5ankara-Gaw;lesvara.'30 Ke5avasena also used the impe religion sects--Saiva Vail)ava and Saura45 became very pr?min nt
d flourished under the patronage of the Sena rulers. Th1s penod
rial title 'Mahariijadhiriija' as well as the epithet 'Aririij a-asahya.
5ankara-Gaw;lesvara.'51 Both the kings applied to themselves the
:s regarliteded also as the high-water mark of the development of
rature.46
San s krit
epithet 'Saura'52 which suggests that tl1ey were sun-worshippers.
Both Visvariipasena and Ke5avasena probably ruled till AD 1 230.55 GENEALOGY
From Visvarupasena's record we get the name ofKumara Siiryasena
and Kumara Puruottanlasena who donated lands to Briihmal)as.34 The Sena Dynasty"
We are quite sure that they were members of the Sena family but we Virasena ( c. AD 1 050-75)
do not know from any evidence whether they ascended the throne Siimantasena (c. AD 1 075-95)
of the Sena dynasty. Due to much pressure of the Muslim invaders Hemantasena
and to the rebellion oflocal chiefs, the Sena power became weak and Vijayasena ( c. AD 1 095-1 1 58)
soon it declined. It is very probable that the rule of the Sena dynasty Vallalasena (c. AD 1 1 58-79)
I
came to an end towards the close of the thirteenth century AD . Lakmal)asena ( c. AD 1 1 79-1205)
It is interesting to note there that the colophon ofa manuscript Madhavasena
of Pancaraka refers to a king, who was Madhusena.55 1t says, "Para Visvariipasena (c. AD 1 205)
!
mesvara-parama-saugata-parama-rajadhiraja-srimad-Gau9esvara Ke5avasena (c. AD 1 225-30)
Madhusena-devakan<Up-pravardha-nama-vij ayariijye yatriin kenapi
5aka-nara-pateQ. 5akabdaQ. 1 2 1 1 Bhadra di 2. " It mentions him as
'Parame5vara-parama-saugata', which indicates that he was a wor REFERENCES
shipper of the Buddha. He ruled in AD 1 289. But from any record we
do not get any detailed account about him. It is difficult to say 'HB, I, 205. 2lbid.; FJ, I, 305; IB, Ill, 46-50.
anything about his dynasty and his kingdom. It is very possible that 'HB, I, 205; /B, III, 1 1 0-13. 4HB, I, 205.
he ruled somewhere in southern or western Bengal or after captur 1 'Ibid. 6lbid., 206. 'Ibid.
ing eastern Bengal from Dasarathadeva or his successor, he estab 81bid., 210. "Ibid. 10lbid.; /B, III, 62.
lished his rule there. 57 11lbid., I , 210. 121bid., 210-1 1 . "Ibid., 219.
From historical records belonged to the Senas it is clear that the " :bid., 215. "Ibid., 216. 16lbid.
171bid., 216-1 7. 18lbid., 219. 19lbid., 218.
Senas were followers ofBrahmanism. The Deopara stone inscription 20lbid., 219. 211bid . , 220. 22Ibid.
of Vijayasena refers to the construction of the high temple of "Ibid ., 222. "'Ibid.; /C, I, 679. "HB, I, 223.
Pradyumnesvara Siva and the excavation of a lake.38 Vijayasena was a "Ibid. 271bid. , 224. ""Ibid. , 225.
worshipper of Siva and had the title Parama-Mahe5vara. His two '"Ibid., 225, fn 1 . "'Ibid., 225. "Ibid .
inscriptions--the Deopara stoe inscription and the Barrackpore >Jbid.
"HB, I, 228.
"Ibid. , 227. ,.Ibid.; /B, III, 1 47.
grant begins with 'Orp namaQ. Sivaya'.59 Ballalasena, like his fathe, '"Ibid.; DCSM, I, 1 1 7. "'HB, I, 228.
"'DHNJ, I, 361 -62_; JASB, XXXIV, I, 28-154; E/, I, 305-1 5.
was a worshipper of Siva. He had the title Parama-Mahesva. s "'HB, I, 362-63; JASB, XXXIV , 128-54; FJ, I, 305-15, XV, 276.
Naihati grant found in th; Katwa sub-division of the Burdwan dttrJct
opens with '01!1 namaQ. Sivaya.'40 It invokes Ardhanarisvara (Siva _ "'DHNJ, I, 366. 41lbid. , 375-76.
42Jbid., 376-77; JASB, XLIV, I. 1 1 ff; FJ, XII, 6-1 0;J4SB, 1900, LXIX, 61 -65.
From the Madanaparii and Mymensing grants of mal)asena s .,HB, I , 376-78;JASBNS, I, 467-76. 44HB, I, 376.
son inform us that Laksmanasena was a devotee of Siva because he .,Ibid., 225. 46lbid . , 229-30.
assumed the title Madaakara.41 But his Tarpandighi and Anulia "HB, I, 230-31; FBI, 435 , fn 1 ; DHNI, I, 386.
grants refer to him as Parama-Vail)ava.42 In the Madhainagar grant
264 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India IJtlddhism During the Reign of Saiiinka of Gautf,a 265
(Mahipala II) from the part of North Bengal which still remai GENFALOGY
under the Palas.' ahi pala II was de!eated and killed by Diwoka . The Chikkoras of Pih'{l
next ruler was Bluma, the son of Rudoka, the brother of D iwok 1
is .said that the Mahapratihara Sivaraja, the nephew of Mathan o : In the Chikkora-vam5a of the lunar race
Ailga defeated Bhima in fierce fight and for a time was so su ccessf l
.
that the whole country appeared to be free from the control of thue I
Kaivartas. 4 Vallabharaja
I
GENFALOGY Devarakita--Sankaradevi
I
The Kaivartas" I I
Bhimayasa Kumaradevi-Gahadavala
Diwoka Riidoka Govindachand
I
Bhima
REFERENCES
I,
'DHNI, 528, 387.
1DHNI, 387. 2Ibid., 337. 'Ibid.
4Ibid., 340. 'Ibid. , I, 387.
THE KINGDOM OF PITH!
THE CHIKKORAS OF PqHI
Several kings with names ending in Sena reigned in the kingdom of
Pi!hi .1 An inscription discovered at Janibigha near Bodh Gaya refers
It is very probably that the Senas ofPi!hi succeeded the Chikkoras of
to the gnt ofa village to the Vajrasana ( i.e., the Mahabodhi temple)
Pi!hi (c. AD 1 050-1 1 50) . 1 Vallabharaja was the lord of Pi!hi. He
by king AcaryaJayasena who was not only the son ofBuddhasena but
belonged to the Cikkora family.2 His son and successor was Deva
was the lord of Pi!hi .2 Buddhasena has been identified with Acarya
ita. 3 This ruler was a very important feudatory of the Palas. "In the
Buddhasena, who was lord of Pi!hi .' An inscription found at Bodh
list of the Samantas of Ramapala, the lord of Pi !hi is placed first."4
Gaya mentions hirn.4 It states that he gave directions to the inhabi
Mthana-Mahana, who was the feudatory ruler of the principality of
tants of the Mahabodhi. Because some grant was made to Sri
Ailga defeated Devarakita, the Pi!hapati.5 We are told that the
Dharmarakita, who was the preceptor ofASokacalla, king ofKama.5
former, after defeating this prince, gave his own daughter. BhimayaSa
These two inscriptions make us quite clear the kingdom of Pi!hi of
was a sucessor ofDevakrakita.6 No record says anything about the Buddhasena was located in the district of Gaya.6
.
contributiOn of the rulers to the religious world.
The Riimacarita refers to Bhimaya5a who was a feudal chief.7 He
gave Ramapala his support when the latter attacked Bhima. The
Riimacarita mentions BhimayaSa.s as Pi!hipati, lord of Pi!hi and
Magadhadhipati, the lord of Magadha.8 K.P. Jayaswal and N.G.
Majumdar think that "Pi!hi and Magadha are practically identical. "9
K.P. Jyaswal says that "there cannot be any doubt that in the early
Sena times Pi!hi denoted the whole of the province of Bihar (except
Mithila) . "1
269
268 Buddhism Du
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in 1ndaa .
ring the Reign ofSasaitka of GaUtf.a
ru.Je
m the Gaya regiOn, I.e., about AD 1 200 and hence Jayasena' s r g The Devas descended from the moon and they were VaiI)avas by
falls in AD 1 283. "12 K.P.Jayaswal thinks that Buddhasena andJay n a: faith.4 Puruttama was regarded as the first member of the Deva
-
a
were the members ofthe Sena family in Bengal.13 But R C. Majumn family. But no grant refers to his royal title. From it we conclude that
does n t support it.14 He states, "there is nothing to support th robably Puruottama was not the founder of the Dea family and he
contentiOn that Buddhasena and Jayasena of Pi !hi were related in s not a king. His son was Madhumathanadeva who IS mentiOned as
any way to the Senas of Bengal, though this can not be regarded as a kin g. Probably, he was the founder of the Deva kingdom. His son
altog ther beyo d the bounds of probability".15 H. C. Raychaudhuri was \'asudeva. Damodaradeva was Vasudeva' s son. The former occu
mentions that king Lakmal)asena, the founder of the Pit}li dynasty pied the throne of the Deva kingdom in AD 1231 , and ruled till AD
founded an era which started in AD 1 1 1 9 and Buddhasena an d 1243 when the Chittagong copperplate of Damodaradeva dated
Jayasena belonged to this dynasty.16 Saka 1 1 65 was issued. 5 Damodaradeva assumed the epithet 'Ariraja
The rulers of the kingdom ofPi!]li were Buddhists no doubt. The Qiniira-Madhava. '6 He ruled over a kingdom which most probably
nscripon found atJinibigha indicates that Buddhism prospered compri sed the modern districts ofTippera, Noakhali and Chittag
m the kingdom of Pi!]li under the patronage of the rulers of Pit}li. ong.7
From the grant no. III we get the name of another king of Deva
GENEALOGY dynasty who was DaSC1rathadeva. The grant refers to him as 'Para
meS\'ara Paramabhattaraka Maharajadhiraja Ariraja-Madhava, the
illustrious DaSC1rathadeva. ' 8 It also mentions him as 'Devanvaya-ka
The Kingdom of Pi!hi; The Senas ofPi!hi (c. AD 1100-1270)17
mala-vikaSC1-bhaskara. '9 This signifies that Dcciaratl1a belonged to the
Buddhasena
Jayasena Deva family and was a VaiI)ava. Vikramapura was the place where the
grant was issued.10 It shows that Dcciaratha occupied the Sena king
dom in East Bengal.11 He also took possession of a portion of North
or West Bengal.12 VaiI)avism flourished in the Deva kingdom under
REFERENCES the patronage of its rulers.
Two copperplates13 found at Bhatera, about 20 miles from Sylhet,
give us the names of several kings. They were:
'HB, I, 259.
'Ibid.; ]BORS, IV, 266 ff, 273 ff; lA, XLVIII, 1 9 1 9, 43 ff; DHNI, l, 383 ff.
'Ibid., 259.
In thefamily of the Moon
'HB, I, 259. 4lbid.
10Ibid., 259, fn 5.
%id. 'Ibid. 8Ibid.
"Ibid. "Ibid., 260. Kharaval)a (Navagiravvana)
'2Ibid. "Ibid. 14Ibid. Gokuladeva
"Ibid. 16Ibid., 260.0 1 . 17DHNI, I, 387. Nariiyal)a (Narayal)adeva)
KeSC1vadeva (KeSC1va-deva-deva alias Ripu-raja-Gopi-Govinda)
THE DEVA DYNASTY isanadeva
From three copperplate grants we get the names of several Deva From the palaeographical grounds the plates may belong to
kings.1 The Mehar copperplate of Damodaradeva dated Saka 1 156, earlier than the 1 3th century AD14 or may be even somewhat later.15
and the Chittagong copperplate ofDamodaradeva, dated Saka 1 1 65 The names of all the rulers, except no. 1 , ended with 'deva'. From it
mention a dynasty.2 Here is given a genealogical list of its rulers.3 we conclude that they all probably belonged to the Deva dynasty.
Purusottama
Madhumathanadeva
1he Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in 1 of Sa5iin ka of Gautf,a 271
270
ndza
. Jjtlddhism During the Reign
eat prin ce of the family; for, in all the subsequent _grants the
n ha Mahara
ealo gy begins with him. His full title was "Satyasraya Sri PulakeSi
ehirn
'a!lab ja. "8 His son K.irtivarman ascended the throne after
He was a powerful ruler no doubt. Because the Mauryas of
Chapter 1 0 othem Konkan, the Kadambas ofBanavasi in north Kanara and the
alasg wereordefeated
Mn
by him .10 He was succeeded by his brother
Mangalaraja. Because the fonner had ree you
Buddhism in Southern India galda
sons. Mangalesa conquered Revatidvipa (modern Rec.h, Ratnagm
district) and defeated the Kalacuris of northern Deccan. An inscrip
tion in the 1 2th year of the reign ofMangalesa refers to a cave-temple
1 . THE CI-IALUKYAS OF VATAPI (BADMn) ofVisnu and on the occasion of it consecration granted a village out
of threvenues of which a ceremony called Narayaabali was to be
The Chalukyas appeared in the political history of the Deccan in th performed and sixteen Brahmas to be fed every day and the
middle of the sixth centu 9: AD.1 R.G. Bhandarkar says that Bilhana residue to be devoted to the mamtenance of recluses.H
th author of the Vzkramankadevacarita or Life of Vikramaditya, (a The next ruler was Pulakesin II, the son of K.irtivarman . He was
pnnce ofthe ter or estord Chalukya line) , gives an account ofthe
.
so known as Satyasraya Prthvi-Vallabha Maharaja. It is very
Sri
legendary ongm of thts family. He mentions, "On one occasion when. probable that he ascended the throne in AD 61 1 . By his policy as well
Bra?madeva was egaged in is morning devotions, Indra came up as valour, he became the supreme lord of the three countries called
to him, and complams of the smfulness of the world in which no man Mahararakas containing 99 thousand villages.12 He conquered
performed the sacrificial rites or gave oblations to the gods. Brah Vanavasi (Banavasi ) , the capital of the Kadambas. The Gangas of
deva looke at his Chuluka o the ha?d hollowed for the recep Gangavadi were afraid of him and he subdued the Mauryas who
tion of water m the course of hts devotional exercise and from it belonged to northern Konkan. The Las of southern Gujarat, the
sprang a mig?tywarrior who became the progenitor of the Chalukya Malavas and the Guijaras, the kings of Kosala and Kalmga also
race, some time after two great heroes of the Lana of Hariti and surrendered to him.15 Even Haravardhana of Kanauj also was de
aavy were born in the family and they raised it to very great feated by him. 14 He also defeated Mahendravarman I, the Pallava
dtstmctton : The original seat of the dynasty was at Ayodhya and in ruler of .Kanci (Conjeeveram) . Not only the CoJas, the Pac:.lyas and
corse of time a branch of it established itself in the south."' V.A. the Keralas but also the fortress of Pipura (modem Piapuram)
Smtth also describes, "The Chalukyas claimed to be a race ofRajpiits surrendered to him.15 He also established diplomatic relations with
from the north, who imposed their rule upon the Dravidian inhabi Khusru II, king ofPersia. 16 He appointed his younger brother Kubja
nts of the Deccan table-land, which had already been largely Viuvardhana-Viamsiddhi in AD 61 5 to govern the eastern territo
mfluenced by e Aryan ideas of the northerners before the appear ries from Vengi.17 In AD 642 Narasif!lhavarman I, Pallava ruler of
ance of the Chalukyas on the scene. "4 He states further that "the Kanci, conquered Pulakesin II's kingdom and destroyed his capital
Chaluka5 of Sokis were conected with the Chapas and so with and killed him . 18
the foretgn GuiJara tnbe . of whtch the Chapas were a branch, and it During Pulakdin II's reign, Hiuen-tsang the Chinese traveller, vis
seems to be probable that they emigrated from Rajputana to the ited Maharastra. . He refers to it as Mo-ha-la-ch'a (or t'a) . 19He says that
Deccan . "5 the kingdon". was 6,000 li ( 1 200 miles) in circuit and the capital was
. The first ruler of this dynasty wasJayasilpha. He was succeeded by 30 li. "Its soil is rich and fertile; it is regularly cultivated and very pro
his so Raaraga. He was a prince of great valour and had a stately ductive . . . . The inhabitants were proud-spirited and warlike, grateful
and gganuc person . 6 The next ruler was his son Pulakesin I . He for favours and revengeful for wrongs, self-sacrificing towards suppli
occupted the throne in the middle of the sixth century AD. He was ants in distress and sanguinary to death with any who treated them
figure of some note.' He celebrated an asvamedha or horse-sacrifice. insultingly. Their martial heroes who led the van of the army in battle
Vcitapipura, the modem Badami in the Bijapur district' was his went into conflict intoxicated, and their war-elephants were also
capital. R.G. Bhandarkar says, "He appears to have been the first made drunk before an engagement. "20
fJUJdhis11l in Southern India
275
274 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in lndza
.
Hinduism also grew popularity; and everywhere elaborate tem 1e this tim e employed their intelligence in the refutation of Buddhism,
p s
an d in the vindication ofVedic sacrifices, and under the sympathetic
d ed.ICated to vlI)U, s1va
were erected; which , even in their ruins, form magnificent mem n 0'
or other members of the Puriil)ic pan the
rule oftl1e early Chalukyas they succeeded in supplanting Buddhism
als of the kings of this period . The orthodox Hindus borrowed fr com pletely.
their Buddhist and Jaina rivals the practice of excavating cav :
temples; and one of the earliest Hinduworks of this class is that mad
But the influence of the principle of non-sacrifice was again
su cessful latterly in the spread ofjainism. It appears that thejainas
c
at Badami in honour ofVil)u by Mangale8a Chalukya, at the close
the sixth century. Jainism was specially popular in the southern
0 gained an upperhand among the people as well as in the favour of
kings towards the end of the Chalukya rule . . . . Vikramaditya II was
Marii!ha country. . .. "38 partial to thejaina religion. H e repaired aJaina temple and gave a
R.G. Bhandarkar mentions: "During the period occupied by the gran t of land to a successfulJaina Pal)<;lita named Vijaya Pal)<;iita who
.
reigns of these early Chalukya princes, the Jaina religion comes into was also called Ekavadi or the only disputant. . . . In the days of tile
prominence along with a developed form ofPucil)ic Brahmanism as early Chalukyas . . . Jainism gradually spread among the people and
well as the old Vedic religion. Ravikirti, theJaina, who composed the gained favour in royal courts.
Aihole inscription and represents himself as a poet, was patronised Along with the revival of the religion ofVedic sacrifices under the
. by Pulakesin II, and Vikramadi tya II repaired aJaina temple and gave earlyChaluk there was also the revival of the Puriil)ic religion viz.,
a gra1_1t in con?ection with it to a leaedjaina of the name ofVJjaya the worship of Siva, ViI)U, Brahma, Siirya, and the Goddess Devi and
Pal)<;hta, w o IS represented to have silenced his opponents in argu of Skanda and temples of these gods were built everywhere during
ments and ts styled the only disputant. Butjainism in those days as at the reign of the early Chalukyas. "40
present probably flourished in southern Marii!ha country only.
Temples m honour ofthe Puriil)ic triad Brahma, Vil)u and Mahesvara GENEALOGY
wit!t a variety ofnames were constructed in many places. The worship
of Siva in his terrific form seems also to have prevailed, as the Nasik The Chlilukyas oj vatapi (Badami)41
grant of Nagavardhana assigning a certain village to the worship of Jayasiipha
Kapalikesvara or god wearing a garland of skulls would show. And I
grants to Brahmans who knew the Vedas and Sastras are very Ral)ariiga, Rajasi1pha
common . . . . No inscription has yet come to light showing any close I
relations between the Buddhists and the Chalukya princes. But that Pulakesin I or.Pulakesi
the religion did prevail and that there were many Buddhist temples
and monasteries are shown by the account given by Hiuen-tsang. Still
there is little question that it was in a condition of decline. The Kirtivarman I Mangale8a
Chalukyas like their predecessors were tolerant towards all relig
ions. "39
C.V. Vaidya describes, "Dr. Bhandarkar has shown that during the Pulake5in II Kubja ViQuvardhana Jayasilpha
rule of the early Chalukyas Buddhism does not seem to have been
posperous. It was alive no doubt, but it was not the religion of the
kings nor generally ofthe people. Pulakesin I signalised his reign and
supremacy by the performance of the Asvamedha. The sacrificial I I -I I I
lore was also studied and developed under these kings by the learned Chandriiditya Vikramaditya I Aditya- Jayasiipha- Ambera
Brahmins and such learned persons, Dr. Bhandarkar thinks, were I varman varman
specially called Svamins. . . . The revival of sacrificial study can be Vinayaditya
marked all over the country, for Bal)a himself states that his parents I
and uncles were students ofMima1psa. They were called Bhanas also. Vijayaditya
. . . Undoubtedly orthodox Brahmins in the Deccan as elsewhere at I
278 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in India
13uddhism in Southern India 279
I
Vikramaditya II former glory the family of his ancestors.' He conquered Uita (south
ern G ujarat) . But Miilar:ija
i Chalukya of Anhilwa4a captured it.
I
Tailapa conquered Kuntala (the Kanarese country) and defeated
the Kalacuris and the Co}as. Vakpati-M uiija, the Paramara ruler of
Kirtivarman II
Dhara, who defeated him for more than six times, was killed by the
latte r. Tailapa reigned for twenty-four years and died in AD 997.
REFERF.NCES The next ruler was Satyasraya, who was Tailapa's son. During his
rule (c. AD 997-1 008) Rajaraja I, the Co}a ruler, attacked his kingdom,
'EIID. 5 7 . 'Ibid.; HAl, ?.94-95.
'Eli/, 440.
killed many people and destroyed his capital. But Sat.yaSraya, any
'Eli/, 440. 'Ibid. mv. 57.
how, managed to save his kingdom from the hands of his enemi es.
1HA/, 395. "EH , 58.
D .
I
It is difficult to say "ll<ith certainty about their exact location. Accordmg to Flee t,
He, however, soon recovered from this terrific blow and even made
Nalavadi (modern Bcllary and Kamal districts) was the place where t e Na!as use d to so me successful depredations in the south at the cost of the Co}as.6
rul. wfhey have , however, been recently located in southern Kosala and Bastar He was succeeded by his nephew Vikramaditya I (c. AD 1 008-1 8) . He
state. "-]NS/, I, 29; HA l, 395 , fn 5. reigned for a very short time. His successor wasJayasilphaJagadeka
10HA/, 396. "EHD, 58.
. .
_ _ malla ( c. AD 1018-40) . He defeated Bhoja Paramara and recove
2 75: The three Maharagrakas v1z., Vtdarbha, Maharara and
''Ibid.; HMHI, 1, red
the lost glory of his family. In AD 1 040 Somesvara I Ahavamalla
Kuntala.
"EHD, 59 ff; HAl, 399.
Trailokyanatha succeeded his father. He was a great warrio
"EHD, 397. r. He:
"Ibid., 397-99. 16Jbid. , 399; ]RASNS, XI, I 879, 1 65-66; EHI, 44.
9 taking advantage of Bhoja's depleted resources on accoun
t of con
18HA/, 400; HMHI, I, 270.
11EJID 62 398 CSHl, 1 1 9 HMH/, 269-70. stant military activities, not only invade d Malava but also
mD.
destroyed
6i, 39g. ,;.Ibid., 399; Watters, I I , 2 39. "EHD, 6 1 . Mandu, Dhara and Ujjain .7 After the death of Bhoja,
Jayasirp.ha
"Ibid., 63. "Ibid., 64. 26 HA I, 401 . claimed the throne of the Paramara rulers and Somes
"'EHD 65 . EHD, 66.
26Ibid ., G6; HMHI, I, 271 . <n vara helped
him in this matter and placed him on the throne ofMal
""Ib"d ' "'Ibid. "'HAl, 401 . ava.8 Thus thc:
"Ib d: "Ibid. "Ibid., 4 1 7.
relations between the Chalukyas and the Paramaras
took a friendl)
the eclipse of the sun to a thousand Brahmins, well-versed in the fl reward . Whatever religious merit I have acquired and whatever I may
Vedas, at Banavasi, and Kuruketra and Prayaga and Arghatirtha
oe hoy places. May those who neglect nd destroy this ac
: acquire ,-by that may the condition of myself and of this world be
t of perfected as a condition of Sugata religi?n."
rehgwn mcur the gmlt of the five great sms-of having slai Som dvara IV was a patron ofthe Vira-Saivas. An inscription dated
n
AD 1 1 84 refers to a feudatory of \lira Somesvara IV, the Maha
ousand tawny coloured cows or a thousand Brahmins, well-verse
m the four Vedas at those same holy tirthas.
Mar:t <;laldvara Virapurudeva. 35 He is mentioned as a "forest fire of
Hail! To e vihara o Buddha which was caused to be built by the the Jaina relig!on and a destroyer of the Buddha religion and an
.
SIXteen (seUts) of (the City ?f) Dharmavolal, constitutg the large establisher of Siva-Linga-Si111hasana." t.
. The Jaina work Acarasara was written in Saka 1 076 AD 1 1 54 by
,
1
you' -thus does Ramabhadra again and again make his request to all Hindusim which continued to count some adherents in South India
future princes. He is born for the duration of sixty thousand years as though it had disappeared elsewhere, was that of the A,jivikas.
worm in ordure, who takes away land that has been given, whether Founded by Gosala Maskariputra, a contemporary of the Buddha
by himself or by another. Those who may give even a small gift in a
l
and Mahavira, this strictly deterministic school was influential in the
charter ofBuddha, they shall have great enjoyment and shall be very Maurya period in the north, and ASoka and his successor DaSa.ratha
rich for eighty thousand ages, wheresoever they find a perpetual gift, presented fine rock-cut caves to it. They believed in an inexorable
there they remember it; thus their offering to Buddha, brings a great niyati (destiny) which man was unable to counteract. The South
287
286 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India JJuddhism in Southern India
I
Indian .ivika monks practised severe asceticism, and probab ly in flu
ence< by Hinduism and Mahayana Buddhism, came to look upon
Gosila as 'an effable divinity'; they also developed the 'view that all
l
Vikr maditya I Ayyana
1018 ?
Jayasirpha
Jagadekamallla
(AD 1 008-18 )
chang and movement were illusory, and that the world was in reali ty (AD 1 0 1 8-40)
eternally and immovably at rest'. "37 I
R.G. Bhandark describes, "During the period occupied by th e Somdvara l
later Chalukya dynasty and the Kalacuris (AD 973-1 1 88) the old sta te Ahavamalla
of things as regards the religious and social condition of the coun try Trailokyanatha
may be said to have fmally disappeared and the new ushered in . First, (AD 1 040-69)
we have in this period what might be considered the last traces of
Buddhism. In the reign of Tribhuvanamalla or Vikraaditya II, in
the cyclic year Yuvan and the nineteenth of his era (Saka 10 1 7) r JayasiJ!lha \'iI,luvar
V1kramaditya II
sixteen merchants o fth e Vaisya caste constructed a Buddhist vihara Somesvara II dhana
Tribhuvanamalla
or a monastery and temple at Dharmavolal, the modern Dombal in Bhuvanaikamalla Vayaditya
the Dhanva district and assigned for its support and for the main (AD 1 069-76) (AD 1 076-1 1 26)
I
tenance of another vihara at Lokkigu1,1i, the modern Lakkmi, a (AD 1 126-38)
Somdvara III Bhiilokamalla
field and a certain amount of money to be raised by voluntary
taxation.40 In Sakal03241the Silhara chief of Kolhapura constmcted , ------ +
1 ----
--
, .
a large tank and placed on its margin an idol of Buddha along with Jagadekamalla III
Taila II
(AD 1 1 63-83)
Permana
those of Siva, the arhat and assigned lands for their support. 42
Jagadekamalla II (AD 1 150-63)
(AD 1 1 38-50) I
Jainism ceased in this period to be the conquering religion that it
was, and about the end received an effectual check by the rise of the
Somdvara IV
Lingayata sect. This new creed spread widely among the trading (AD 1 1 83-1200)
classes which before were the chief supporters ofJain ism. There is a
tradition in some parts of the country that some of the existing
temples contained Jaina idols at one time and aftenvards they were
REFEREN CES
thrown out and Brahmanic ones placed instead. This points to a
Dccan sprang from the Ratbors (Ratrakutas) of the north.' Burnell Govinda II succeeded his father Kn1.1a I. He reigned for a very
thmks tha ey ha some connection with l)ravi<_iian Re4<_iis of short period. He was succeeded by his brother Dhruva or Dhora. He
Andradesa. Accordmg to Rama Shankar Tripathi, "the trakiitas defeated the Gangas, the Pallavas and Vatsaraja, the Gurjara king of
?fMalkhe<_i were descended from the !ikas or Ratbikas, who wre BhinmaJ.21 The next ruler Govinda III, who Dhruva' s son. He
was was
nnpotant enough in the middle of the third century BC to be extended his kingdom from the Vindhya mountains and Malava in
the north to Kaiici in the south.22 He was succeeded by his son
mentioned log With . e Bhojakas and other Aparantas (peop
le of
Western Indta) m the edtcts ofASoka. Altekar thinks that Karnataka
"5 Atnoghavar, who occupied the throne for not less than sixty-two
was the original home of the trakutas and Kanarese their years, was largely spent in constant wars with the Eastern Chalukya
mo etne : Several epigrahs refer to them as "Lattaliirapura rulers ofVengi. He is said to have extended his power over the kings
23
varadhtsa I.e., lords of Lanalura, the excellent town."" This has ofAriga,Vanga and Magadha. He made Manyakheta (Malkhed) his
24
been identified with Latur of the Bedar district Here people speak capital . ,..
Kanarese language. 8 Atnoghavar I in his old age became a religious person. Rama
Dantivannan I, lndra I, Govinda I, Kakka I and Indra II were the Shankar Tripathi states, "The tenets ofjainism, as expounded by his
earliest members of the Ra!J<tkuta dynasty. They ruled in the latter chiefpreceptor (paramaguru) ,Jinasena, greatly appealed to his heart
half ?f the seventh and the first half of the eighth centuries AD.9 and intellect; and if the Ga'f!itasiirasa1[lgraha of Viracara merits cre-
Danttdurga regarded as the real founder of this dynasty. It is dence, Amoghavar I openly turned an adherent of the Syadvada
g:neral beheved that under the leadership of Dantidurga, the doctrine. But he did not altogether forsake his catholic sympathies
!J<tkutas began their career of greatness.10 He was a man of great or Hindu attachments, for the Saiijan plates represent him as devout
tmportance. He ascended the throne in AD 753.II He assumed the worshipper of the goddess Mahalami. In his old age he abdi
=
imerial titles. In th middle of the eighth century AD he defeated the cated in favour of his son Qa II and devoted his time and energy
Chalukya ruler Kirbvannan II and overthrew him. It seems that this to religious practices.26 V.A. Smith describes, "The Digambara, or
victory made him the sole ruler of all the Chalukya dominions. V.A. naked, sect of the Jainas was liberally patronized by AmoghavaJ"l!a.
Smith states: "the sovereignty ofthe Deccan passed to the Rastrakutas The rapid progressmade by DigambaraJainism late in the ninth and
in wose hands it remained for nearly two centuries and qarte;."1 early in the tenth century, under the guidance of various notable
Dai_t ttdurg alo defeate the rulers ofKaiioi, Kalmga, Kosala (South leaders, including Jinasena and Gul)abhadra, who enjoyed the
Kosala).' Ma.Iwa (the G1fiJara-Pratihara ruler ofUjjain) , Lata (South favour of more than one monarch, had much to do with the marked
em GuJarat) Tanka15 SriSciila (Kemul district).14 decay of Buddhism, which daily lost ground, until it almost wholly
The next ler was l)a I ( c. AD 768-772) .15 He was also known as disappeared from the Deccan in the twelfth century.
The Kal)heri inscription28 of AD 843 belonged to the reign of
"'.t1
hall of worship erected for the purpose of the worship of the monks
bes of RaJadhtraJa-Paramesvara.17 According to some scholars, belonged to the great monastery of l)agiri (Kal)heri) in the
.
becaus e sm ts not
ViQU( . .. ) may fortune (be propitious to him ) ; the son of the To him verily shall be given,
.
Saka kings had passed, on the aforesaid (second) lunar day of the caused to be built in the ground clo the s and oth er (gtf ts) . Out
said half the said month and year; during the prosperous reigns of ti here (the monks) shall receive
monks this ( hell and the endow
victory of the supreme lord, the sovereigns of great kings, the opassion with the worshipful on
ll be preserve? so l<ng a_s e mo
supreme ruler,_ the illustrious king Amoghavara (Amoghavarp me nt con nected therewith) sha ) reta m the u bnl l anc y. e
inaries
deva)-who remembers the supreme lord (Paramabhagaraka) , the and the sun and the other (lum h
sovereign of great kings, the supreme ruler, the revered illustrious uld fail to pre serv e the m will be guilty of the five sms wt
who sho suff er e at pam m
tion and shall
king Jagattunga (Jagattungadeva) , chief among the great feudato carry with them immediate retribu
ries, who has attained five titles commencing with 'great' and who the Avici and the other (hells) . 1
in the presence of the worshtpfu
remembers of revered illustrious Pulla5akti, chief among the great This deed has been approved of bee n cu se
!_las afterwards_
feudatories, who had attained the five titles commencing with 'great', community, has been confirmed, and rya Dha rma k.ar am ttra ,
the Adi
the lord of the whole Konkana (Konkana Vallabha) graciously be written . Witnesses thereof are
granted to him by (Amoghavar)-the Gomin Avighnakara, a ghn aka ra (an d) the Pat tiyana?yoga.
Gomin Avi me1t: May forune attend.
reli gio us
Ma we be save through
"55
Amoghar was suceded by his son Krr:ta II, who was also an d the lower castes, especially the traders were its devoted adher
known as Akalavaa or Sn-Vallabha. He came into conflict wi th the en ts. Th e fonn ofJainism that prevailed in the country was mostly
Eastern Chalukya rulers ofVengi and Mihira Bhoja.!r1 The next rul that professed by the Digambara sect. "46
was I dra III Nityavarsha.38 e was a successfulwarrior. He destroy: Rama Shankar Tripathi mentions the development of Pauranic
the city Mah<>4aya (I(anauJ) and curbed the pride of its rulers.39 He Hin duism in the kingdom of the Rarakii!a rulers. He describes,
dethroned Mahipala, king ofPaiicala. The nextrulerwasAmoghavar "During the age oftht; Rakii!"3s, Pauranic Hinduism, specially the
II. He was succeeded by Govinda IV. After him Baddiga or Vaddi: worship ofVtI)U and Siva, grew popular in the Dekkan. The ii!a
Amoghavar III occupied the throne. He was succeeded by his so copperplate grants begin with invocations to both these deities, nd
Krr:ta III Akalavar. He was regarded as the last powerful ruier ofth e their seal is either Garuqa, the l'ahana (vehicle) of ViI)U or Siva
R.atrakii dynasty. He fought with the Gutjara-Pratibara ruler seated in an attitude of yoga. We hear of the ' performance of
Brahmanical sacrifices (for instance, Dantidurga celebrated the
ahipala and captured Kalanjara and Citrakii!a from his posses Hiral)yagarbha at Ujjayii) and also ofTuladanas, i.e., gifts pf gold
Sion. 40 He also conquered Kaiid and Tanjore. He defeated the Cola
ruler Rajaditya, son ofParantaka I in the famous battle ofTakkola equal to one's weight, by the Royalty. Temples were constructed to
(near Arkoham, North Arcot district) in AD 949.41 He subdued the house images, which were daily worshipped with an elaborate ritual.
Pqyas an the Keralas and even the king ofSif!1hala also honoured Unhappily, however, excepting the rock-cut shrine of Siva at- Elc
him by paymg homage to him.42 lora-an architectural wonder-richly endowed by Kra I, no other
. The next ruler was Kho!iga or Khotika Nityava. During his important monument of this period is extant. Besides Hinduism.
reign the fortunes of the IDiHrakii!as sank to so low a level that their other faiths also flourished.Jainism was patronised by the ku
capital Manyakhe!a was pillaged by the Paramara Siyaka-Harsa of '
rulers like Amoghava I and Indra IV, and even Kra II and Indra
Malava.43 Kakka II or Kakkala or Amogha IV was the last of the III are recorded to have honoured it. But Buddhism had definitely
t:aii!a kings. aila or Tailpa II of the Chalukya dynasty of declined, and according to certain inscriptions of the time of
Badann overthrew him and founded the Chalukya dynasty ofKalyfu_la.++ Amoghavar I its hief centre in the Dekkan was Kar:theri."47
From R.G.handarkar's account we learn that Pauranic 1-lindu K.A. Nilakanta Siistri says, "In the north-west of the Deccan, new
i;;m flourished in the Deccan during the rule of the Ici.stW'utas. viharas were coming up on behalf of Buddhism late in the ninth
ivism and Vair:tavism prosped under the patronag of the century. "48
kula _ rulers. 4!S But Buddhism became prominent during the Pandit Bisheshwar49 Nath Reu 'describes: "In the earliest copper
ru!e ofAmoghava I. R.G. Bhandarkar says, "That the princes of grants of the trakii!a king A!>himanyu an image of lion, of
this race were very powerful there can be little doubt. The rock-cut Dantivannan (Dantidurga II) , ofSaka 675 (vs 810-AD 753), there is
the impression of an image of 'Siva'. In the coins ofKrr:taraja I, his
temples at Eluru still attest their power and magnificence. Under
tie is mentioned as 'Parama-Mahdvara' and n his inscription of
em the worship of the Purar:tic gods rose into much greater Saka5 (vs 825-AD 768), there is an impression ofSiva-linga. But of the
rmportance than before. The days when kings and princes got
temples and monasteries cut out of the solid rock for the use of the copper-grants of the later dates some bear the impression of an
followe!s ofGotama Buddha had gone by, never to return. Instead image of a 'Garu;la', while others of 'Siva'.
of them we have during their period temples excavated or con The flag of the Rii was called the 'Palidhvaja' and they
sted on a more magnificent scale and dedicated to the worship Were known as 'oka ketu'. Their coat of anns contained the signs of
of Iva an? ViI)U. Several of the grants of these Ratrakii princes the Ganges and the Jumna, probably copied from the Western
pIse their bounty and mention their having constructed temples. Chalukyas of Badami.
Snll, as.the Kaeri insriptions of the reign ofAmoghava I show The family deity of the later Rakiis is known by the names of
B ddhism had tts votanes and benefactors, though the religion had La!:ia (Uir:ta) , 'Ratrana', 'Manasa', or 'Vindhyavadini'. It is
evtdently sunk into unimportance. Jainism, on the other hand, said that as thisgoddesshaving incarnated as a falcon, had saved their
rel<l:ined the prominence it had acquired during the Chalukya kingdom, she became known by the name of'Riitrayiina'. From the
penod or even made greater progress. Amoghava was, as we have above it appears_that the kings of this dynasty fr<_;>m time to time used
to observe the 'Saiva', the 'Vair:tava' and the 'sakta' religions.
seen, favourably disposed towards it, and some of the minor chiefs
294 The Rise arul Dedine ofBuddhism in Ind /)llJdhism in Southern India 295
ia
Indra II
REFERENCES
Kn1.1a I Akalavara ( c. AD 768-72)
I 'Ibid.; BG, I, pt. II, 384.
Daqtidurga (c. AD 753) I HAl, 403; SIP, X.
'HAl, 403. 'Ibid.
'HAl, 40.3. 61bid., 404; KT, 1 9-21.
'HAl, 404. "Ibid. 9lbid., 404-5; CS/ll, 1 22.
Govinda II Dhruva, Nirupama or
10HA/, 404-5. 11 CSHI, 1 22. "EHI, 44.3.
19HAI, 406. 20EH/, 445. ''Ibid.; CSHI, 1 2.3.
"Ibid.
"Ibid., 41 O; EI, XVIII, 248, 255, v. 47. "Amoghavar is called in this ve rse Vira-
I
"EHI, 445. ..HAl, 409.
Kambha, Sambha, Govinda III, Jagattunga I, Indra
Ranavaloka Jagadrudrn or Prn ta Narayai;Ja."
Krsna
. . . II or Akalavarsa
41HAI, 41 6-17. *HSJ, 437.
. 6HR, 34-.35. "'EHI, 454; FHD, 84; HSJ, 2 1 0; MCJ, 67 .
(AD 877-913)
I
4. THE Y'
ADAVA DYNASfYOF DEVAGIRI
The Yadavas claimed. their descent from the race of Yadu to which
Lord l{rQa, the great Mahiibhiirata hero belonged.1 It is generally
Indra III (AD 9 1 5-1 7) Baddiga, Vaddiga or Amoghavara II accepted that the adavas established themselves as members of a
I
(AD 934-39) feudatory family when the Ratrakiitas of Manyakheta and the
Chalukyas ofKalyaQa (KalyaQi) came into power in the Deccan.2 But
296 The /We and Dedine ofBuddhism in J-->
oaaa JJutldhism in Southern India
when the latter declined, the Ycidavas became prominen t They gra.. and }Umachandra paid him tribute. He was succeeded by his sor
dually strengthened their position and founded a kingdom.' v. Saitkara in AD 1 309.19 But the latter was killed by Malik Kafur in AI
Smith says that "the territory which they acquired, lying betwee
A
" } 3 12 for not paying any tribute to Delhi.20 Ramachandra's son-in-la\l
Devagiri (Daulatibad) and Nasik, was known as Sevana or Seuna.
J-larap.la revolted against the Mohammedans but he was killed b}
Bhillama occupied an important place in the history ofthe Yadava the orde rs of Sultan Mubarak. 21 This brought the end of the Ycidava
dynasty. He came into conflict with Somesvara IV, the ruler of the dynasty. :>
Chalukya dynasty ofKalyal)a and captured the northern and eastern The Y<idavas were undoubtedly the followers of the Brahmanical
territories of the latter's kingdom in AD 1 1 87.5 He founded the ci ty of
religion. lfthey claimed their descent from the race ofYadu to which
Devagiri (modem Daulatabad in Andhra Pradesh) .6 But he was Lord 1\fI}a belonged, then it is quite certain that they were devoul
killed by \lira Ballala I Hoysala in AD 1 197.7 The next ruler wasJaitugi
worshippers ofKfl)a or ViI}U which was his another name. From il
or Jaitrapala ( c. AD 1 1 91-1 210). He is said to have killed Rudradeva,
we conclude that they were VaiI}avas. Several rulers of this dynast}
the lrd of the Tailangas (Tri Kalingas ) .8 He was succeeded by his son
were Krl)a, Mahadeva, Ramachandra, Sankara and Harapala. These
Smghal)a (.c. AD 1 2 1 047) . He was regarded as the most powerful ruler
names suggest that they were followers of Brahmanism. Nothing is
of this dynasty. He was the most energetic personality in the Yadava
line.9 He captured the Silahara kingdom of Kolhapur. He was
known about Buddhism from any record of this kingdom.
G. Yazdani observes, "Of the three main religions ofancient India,
successful against Vira-Ballala II Hoysala and extended his territory
Hinduism, Jainism and Buddhism, the last mentioned practically
beyond the Krl)a. He also invaded Gujarat and became successful
ceased to exist during the Ycidava period. There are neither sculp
against Aljunavarman of Malwa and Jajalla, the Cedi ruler of
tures nor paintings nor inscriptions to show that either Kal)heri or
Chattisgarh.10Mter his military expeditions and his successful achieve
Ajanta were active centres of Buddhism during our period. One
ments he practically founded a kingdom which rivalled the king
Buddhist establishment existed at Dambal in the Kafl)at.aka during
doms of the trakiitas and the Chalukyas of Kalyal)a. 11
the 1 1 th century AD, it is, however, very doubtful whether it con tin
Singhal)a was succeeded by Krl)a or Kal)hara ( c. AD 1 247-60) , who
was his grand6on. His name implies that he was a worshipper of Lord ued into the time of the Ycidavas.
Krl)a. He was a follower of Brahmanism and played a vital part for The spirit of toleration and harmony that had existed in Hindu
its development in his kingdom. Amalananda's Vediinta-Kalpatarn, a society since early times continued to manifest itself also in Ycidava
Vedanta commentary was written during his reign. 12 The next ruler period. A Deccan record of this period which describes the supreme
was Mahadeva ( c. AD 1 260-71 ) . He conquered northern Konkan and
spirit as being at one and the same time Siva, Brahmadeva, Vil)u,Jina
subdued the rulers of Kamata and Lata.!' He was succeeded by and the Buddha gives us a glimpse into the religious outlook of the
Ramachandra ( c. AD 1 271-1 309) . It is knwn that during the reigns age, which regarded even the founders of the heterodox faiths as so
ofMahadeva and Ramachandra, the Brahman minister and the cele many incarnations of the one Supreme spirit.
brated Sanskrit writer, Hemadri, who was also known as Hemadpant, The Ycidavas were orthodox Hindus but extended patronage to
flourished.14 He devoted himself to the systematic redaction of the followers of the new religion as well as to those of their own
Hindu religious practices and obserknces, and with this object faith. "22
compiled important works upon Hindu sacred Law. 15 He became O.P. Verma describes, "As we surveythe religious life ofthe people
well-known for his valuable contribution to Hindu Dharmasastra under the Ycidavas, we are confronted with three great religious
Ramachandra patronised saintJrianeSvara, who was an autho r of a urrents, those ofVail)avism, SaivismandJainism. As forBuddhism,
Marai commentary on the Bhagavadgitii.16 twas never very strong in the Deccan and Karl}at.aka after the middle
In AD 1 294 Ala-ud-din Khilji, who was then Sultan of Delhi , invaded of the eighth century AD. It would thus appear that Hinduism and
Devagiri and destroyed the city. Then peace was made and Rama Jainism divided between themselves the religious population of the
chandra paid him 600 maunds of pearls, two maunds of diamons , Deccan . But though the currents were three, the under currents
rubies, emeralds, saphires, etc., 1 ,000 of silver, 4,000 pieces of silk Were !Jlany. The Mahanubhavas, the Naas, the Varakaris and the
and other precious articles, and promised him an annual tribute to Vira.Saivites were all but different sects ofHinduism dominating the
Delhi.17 But when it was not regularly paid, Ala-ud-din 's general religious life of the people. The existence of these, however, did not
Malik Kafur captured Devagiri in AD 1 30 7. 1 8 Again peace was made affe ct the religious harmony. On the contrary, it united them and
1.n..l sm in Sou thern India
299
The Rise and Dedim ofBudh 81J{)U'
in Ifldia
298 d ism
Singh ar:ta
(c. AD 1210-47)
na or Kar:thara (c. AD 1 247-60)
breathed into them the spirit of communal harmony that w
so
characteristic of the religious life under the Ycidavas, as it was in
of other periods of Hindu history.
eed Mhadeva ( c. AD 1260-71)
RiJnachandra ( c. AD 1274-1 309)
The Ycidava rulers were themselves eclectic in their religious
look. According to the Niisikakalpaofjinaprabhasiiri, Drdhaprah ut ra ( c. AD
Sankapala- 1309-12)
the son-in-law
Hara
the founder of. the Ycidava family, was a devotee of Candraprab
svamin (the eighth Tirthai:tkara) . . . . A large number of religio :
symbols were used as ornamental devices on the copper-plates a
stone inscriptions of the Ycidava period. Those which occur fre
n REFERENCES
quently are a conch-shell, li:nga, a priest, a cow and a calf, the sun and
HA l, 426.
2Ibid. 5Jbid.
the moon, a bull, Garu<;la with folded hands, VI)U and Lami, a Ell!, 45 1 . 'HAl, 426; CSHI, 1 27. 6HAJ, 426; CSHI, 127.
kalasa, a closed umbrella, an ascetic's water-pot or a sacrificial ladle. 'HAl, 426-27; CSHI, I27. 8HAJ, 427; CSHI, 127.
All these devices have been adopted ostensibly to placate the relig HA l, 427. 10Ibid .; Ell/, 45 I -52. 1 1HA/, 427; CSHI, 452.
12JiAJ, .428. "Ibid. 14Ibid.; Ell/, 452.
ious susceptibilities of the people living in different regions.
"FRI. 452. 16HA/, 428. ''Ibid., 429.
The ViI)U worship was very popular during the Ycidava period. 10Ibid. 20Ibid.
'"Ibid.
Adoption of Garu<;la as an emblem on the royal standards and the "Ibid. ""Yazdani, 563-64. i!Verma, 294-330.
seals indicate that the personal religion of the Ycidava rulers was "HAl, 426-29; EHD, 131.
VaiI)avism. This was also in conformity with the origin which the
dynasty traced from VI)U. But the VaiI)avism of the Ycidava period 5. THE KAKATIYAS OF WARAN GAL
was very different from the original one, as it was divorced from
sacrificial rites and philosophic speculation and was turned more At first the Kakatiyas were feudatories of the Chalukyas of Kalyal)a.
towards devotion. The VaiQavism of the Ycidava period witnessed an Butwhen the latter declined they became very pominent in Telii:tgana.1
unprecedented bhakti movement which had a tremendous effect on Anmakor;t<;la (or Hunamakol)<;la) was the earlier capital ofthe Kakatiya
the hearts and minds of thousands of worshippers of Vi_I)u. government but after sometimes they fixed their capital at Warangal
The deities that were worshipped in the temples were Siva, Vir;tu, (or Orungallu) . 2Prolaraja occupied a prominent place in the history
l{rI)a, S!irya, Bhavani, Lakmi , Narasif!lha and their different forms. of the Kakatiya dynasty.' He came into conflict with the Western
Of the Saivite schools, the one which flourished in the Karr:tataka Chalukyas and he reigned for a very long time. The next ruler was
region during the twelfth century AD was that ofVira-Saivism, known Rudra or Prataparudra.4 He was succeeded by his younger brother
more popularly as the Lii:tgayatas or Lii:tgavanta sect. Mahadeva.5 Gar:tapati was the latter's son. He succeeded his father in
Jainism was a dominant religion of Karl)at_aka during the adava AD 1 199. 6 He was a powerful ruler of this dynasty, and he reigned for
period. It guided the destinies of a number of powerful and well sixty-two years. He led expeditions against the kings ofCo!a, Kalinga,
known families .... Besides receiving royal patronage, the Jain lead Kafl)ata, Lata and Va!ana<;lu and he became successfui.7 Gal)apati
ers of the period were shrewd enough to lay a firm foundatl of had no son. That is why, his daughter Rudra1pba succeeded him in
their hold over the middle and trading classes of society. Recrmung AD 1 261 8 She ruled for thirty years. Then her grandson Pratapa
.
followers from these classes, the Jaina monks kept constant con ct rudradeva ascended the throne.9 When Malik Kafur attacked his
with the people and thus were able to build up a solid organisanon kingdom, he submitted to him. In course of time the Bahmani
ofJaina laymen.= Sultans of the Deccan occupied the kingdom of the Kakatiyas, who
then probably went to Bastar to establish a small principality there.10
GENEALOGY
_ G. Yazdani says, "Saivism was the pre_dominant faith during the
Kakativa period. Of the many school of Saivism like the Kalamukha,
the Kapalika, the Saiva, the Pasupata, etc., the last mentioned gradu
The Yiidava rulers ofDevagi'TT4 ally gained the upperhand, eventually securing the favour of the
Bhillama
Jaitugi orJaitrapala (c. AD 1 191-1210)
300 The Rise and Decline ofBudd . .
hzsm zn I-> guJJhistn in Southern India 301
SPite
oura
majority of t?e comm>n people as well as that of the ki brought also Southern Konkan under their rule. Gandaraditya,
n s .
the predommance enjoyed by the .Kalamukha doctrine of e rka or Vijayaditya and Bhoja were important rulers of this
the
a e
a
ning of the Kikatiya period . . . . "11 Not only Saivism J . .
also prospered in the Kakatiya kingdom undm 1sm and
begin. ViJaasty.s Gandaraditya ascended the throne after Bhoja I. "He claims
dyObe the undisputed king of Konkan. During the rule of Gandara
Vai I)aVIsm
tronage of the rulers. 12
er pa. the Silahara ruler of Thana, Apararka I was ousted from his
y byJayakesin of Goa. A record ofVijayaditya's time, son of
ondity
banThan
GENEALOGY dara a, states that he had reinstated the fallen lord ofSthanaka
a . . .. Gandaraditya took keen interest in executing works
"9
eca
.family.' One of the oldest branches of this dynasty reigned in outh deous darkness consisting of a host ofwicked kings (his) adversar
Konkan from the last quarter of the eighth century AD to the IDiddle Ies; King Gal)<;laraditya has risen augmenting royal glory, lord of
of the eleventh century AD.4 At first they established themselves atG (demi-gods) , always annihilating darkness his enemies, his
and then they fixed their capital at Khardpatan.5 Another fily ands like beautiful lotuses; to whom a member of the learned bow
down; always rising; whose manifest splendour is followed by the
ruled over Northern Konkan from the beginning of the moth
to rle r opl; not devoted to selfishness; king Gandaraditya full of splen
entury AD.6 Thana was their chief city. The third family began our, unparts daily undiminished profuse lustre to this earth all
.
1 936, 427.
for all religions flourished in hi:; kingdom. I talso throwsflood oflight 9Jc, II ' 3 January, 1936, 423
.
IIBBJ 1 o7 IA' XIII ' I 884, ; II, 3,Jan uary ,
on the prevalence of Buddhism in the kingdom of Gandaraditya in t :>.-37 IC.
the first half ofthe twelfth century AD. The Silaharas also assumed the
"Ibid
BRAS, XII, 7
1 15;JB
.
"IC. II 3 . January ' 1936, 427
' '
"EHD' 136.
'
title of "Sriman Mahalakmi-labdhavara-prasada", i.e., "one who has . 428
"Ibid DBI,
16JBBRA S, XIII , 1877, 1 ff.
"Ibtd .
.
also b
of the Sorab taluk an ancient city mentJ as
. name wasJayan Zu
thrrd cen tury BC, an
Jatiga I which ASoka sent a mission in the
I
Ptolemy in the second century AD._Its- Brah- ma-mcal
. s Banavast, or Banavae, as. it is often spelt,
or Vaijayanti. In leter tune
Nayimma
I
corresponded more or less with the Shim. oga. dlstnct.
lX up WI. th van. ous
The origin of the Kadamba family lS IIl ed
. tra and a
Chandraraja legendary stories centenng . m . a Mukkan. na or Tnne
I . ta Tri loc ana is des
Jatiga ll (AD 1 000-1 020) Mayiiravarmma. The former, also called Jayap: d p-'ti The
o s
I cribed as their prognitor, and as sonhelS d hav ined
an
. out a king,
_t,th
country being at the time wtth
I the throne on being spontan. eously wreathe
d by a state e 1 ep h an
Gomaka Guvala I Kirtiraja Chandraditya rma m app are n tly ot
in
e
indication of his royal dsuny. Mayurava -
I fourth generation after htm, seems to have esta blish ed the fam ily
rded as therr found er. "2
.
Maramasirp.ha(AD 1 058-75)
power, and is hence also at times rega
I
305
304 The JUse and Dedine of BuUdhism
in 1ndta
.
I
The Kadambas were Brahmat:tas and they belonged to the M Mallinatha
vya gotra.3 Rama Shanka Tripathi sts that although Brah!Jl : I
Candravarmam I
.
the Kadambas did not discourageJamIsm, whi Ch, alon g with Saivi
prospered under their rule"! A Brahman named Mayiira5annan ;rn
'
I
I
the founder of this dynasty.5 He established his small principality
Kart:tiika in the middle of the fourth century AD and Banavasi w: eandravarmma II
Piirat:tadeva
its c.apital.6 I t is said that "the family had growing near their house a {' :
I \
Kadamba tree, of which they took special care, and thus became
Mayiira5annan (AD
345-60)
I
known as the Kadambas. "7
J{aitgavannan (AD 36()..85 )
Mayura5arman's successors were Kangavarman, Bhiigiratha, and
Raghu.8 The latter was succeeded by Kaku!.havarman, who was his I
Bhiigiratha (AD 385-41 0)
brother.9 He was regarded as the greatest of the early Kadamba
rulers.10 During his rule "the Kadamba domiion and influence grew I
considerably. "11 His successor was his son Siin tivarman. "He was a
Raghu (AD 410-25)
ruler of great fame and much personal charm. "12 He ruled over an
I
extensive empire and his brother Knt:tavarman governed the south
Kakusthavarman (AD 425-50
)
em portion as viceroy.13 Mrge5avarman ascended the throne in AD
475 .14 He came into conflict with the Gangas and the Pallavas, and I I
I
he became successful. The next ruler was Ravivarman. He reigned
Sadtivanan n l
l}umara arman I
in the frrst half of the sixth century AD.15 He fixed his capital at Halsi
(AD 450-75)
in the Belgaum district. His son was Harivarman. He was the last
1 Mandhatrivarman
member of the main branch of the Kadamba dynasty.16 At that time
Mrge5avarman . (AD 488-500)
the Chalukyas ofVatiipi played a vital role in the political history of
(AD 475-88) I
\------------11
Devava rman
'--
the Deccan. They came into conflict with the Kadambas. The Chiilukya Vit:tuvarman
Sirp.hajrman
ruler Pulakesin I captured the northern portion of the Kadamba
kingdom. Another Chalukya ruler Pulakesin II not only curbed the
Ravivarman Bhanu an Sivaratha varm
Krsnavarmari II
pride of the Kadambas but also subdued them. The Gaitgas took the (AD 500-38)
southern portion of the Kadamba kingdom. Though the main I '(/..n 550-65)
branch of the Kadambas disappeared, but after the fall of the Harivaman (538-50)
trakii power, several Kadamba rulers became prominent in the I
last quarter of the tenth century AD.17 They probably belonged to the Ajayavarman
different Kadamba branches and reigned in various parts of the . I
Deccan and Konkan upto the end of the thirteenth century AD. 18 J t IS
Bhogivannan
generally believed that Hangal in the Dhiirwiiq a district and Goa I
were important centres of the Later Kadambas . 19 Vit:tuvarman
GENEALOGY
REFERENCES
The Kadambas20
HAL 432.
'HAl, 432; CSHI, 1 30.
Mukkat:tt:ta, Trinetra, Trilocana
I
2J.bid .
4Ibid., 432, fn 3.
'MCI, 21 .
&Ibid ., 432; CSHI, 1 30.
' CSHI, 130. 9Ibid.
Madhuke5avara 7MCI, 22.
I
Tlu! Rise a nd Dedi ne of Btuidh
m in India
]JUdisdh m in Southern Ind
306 is ia 307
'2HSI, I I I .
10Ibid.
was Madhava 1.1.15 His
: f r that ofNarayaQa. "12 The next ruler
"HAJ, 433.
HAl 4 3 3 Jalll
. faith o 1
h is son Avinita. 4 "He t up as a Jam, the
"Ibid., CSHI, 1 30. ' HsJ, 1 1 2; CSH/, 1 30. "HSJ, 1 30-31 ;
was brough
16HSI I 3 1
, 'HA.J, 433. "Ibid. '
50cces or was
his precep tor. The king himself is des-
Vijayakirti being
'"Ibid., 433, fn I . 20HSJ, I l l ; AHD, 95; Ma, 25.
1 s being the first among the learne d of unstin ted liberality,
Cfl e a
8. THE CAN GAS OF TALKAI;l OR TAL-\KJW;>
an dev
oted to protecting the South\in th maint
s as
enanc
suprem
e of castes
e and was
ious orders. The king held B'rahmm
and elig
.
devoed to the worsh .
ip ofHar a (Siva) . "15The next ruler was Durvinita.16
.
The kingdom of the Gang as which formed the greater part of\!\ s
1 From the authentic contempora11 i
ore worshipper ofViQU. He probably belonge d to the
n cri
devou t
six_th century AD and was regarded one of the
;
tions we learn that the first ruler was Konganivarman . He belo second half of the
to e Jahnaveya kula, the family of the GaAgas and he ha
e
rominen t early
ruleJl.17 He was a powerful ruler. and e fought
Kanvayana gotra.2 "He distinguished himself in many battl es a
n 1 uccessfully against th Pallava
e s. He wr?te a Sanskrit versiOn of the
l Sanskrit works. The next ruler was
carved out a prosperous kingdom for himself. : He took the title f F iSiici Brhat-KathiF8 and severa
"Dharma Mahadhiraja. "4 Kuluvala or Kuvalala (Kolar) was his ca uskara or Mokka ra. "From this time the state seems to have
ta . 5 He was succeeed by his son Mahadhiraja Madhava I (AD 425 s ). adl;ered to theJain religio n. "19 Srivikr
ama then ascended the thron .
His successor was Aryavarmn (c. AD 45 0) . He was not only great son Bhiivik ram or Hukara.20 Then h1S
He was succeeded by his
ar I occup ied the thron e.21 Sripuru (AD 726-?6) was
ruler, but was a great warrior. He was well-versed in the Siisti-as brother Sivam
Itihasas and the PuraQas. 7 The Pallava ruler Siphavarman I ofKaiic i r.1.1othe r ruler who occupi ed
tl_l
a promin ent place in the Ganga dy
anointed him. Because he "sought support from the Pallava ruler i ;rttsty. 22 He fougt against e Ra!fak iitas .and also defeated the
a dispute for the throne with his younger brother Krwavarman. "8 In Pallavas at Vilard i.25 The Ganga s may be said o have reache d e
later inscriptions he is referred to as Harivarman.9 He fixed his heig ht of prospe rity during the long reign f Sri _P.uru, . . . and m
_
Sn-Ra. Jya or . Fortunate
capital at Talavanapur or Talka.;I or Talkaka.;{ on the Kaveri in the whose time the kingdom was ,called the
ys <:>re district in the middle of the fifth century AD. 10 Two grants of kingdom.24 His grandfather was Sivama ra. The next promm ent ruler
his time were found. The first discovered in Tanjore refers to his was Rajamalla (c. AD 818). He tried to recove r the past glory of the
name as Arivarman:" It records a gift by him, in 24 7, of the Oreko.;{u Ganga dynasty.25 The Gangas came into onflict th the Colas, who
in AD 1004 captured the capital
village in the Maisu-ma.;{ Seventy (now Varakodu in the east of of the G ':lngas.26 Th1s bro';lgh t the ed
Mysore taluk) under some what interesting circumstances. A Baud of the Ganga rule. Though the Ganga power declmed but m
dha disputan t named Vadimadagajendra (a rutting elephant as an historical records there are references to the.Ganga chiefs who acted
orator) in the pride of his learning affixed to the main door of the as vassals of the Hoysalas and the CoJas.27
palace at Talavanapura a patron (as a challenge) in which he asserted The Ganga rulers were followers ofJainism.28 They contributed
the claim that he was the foremost scholar in logic, grammar, and all largely to the development ofJain ism in their kingdom. Durvinita
other branches of knowledge. Whereupon a Brahman named patronised the famous Jaina Acarya Pujjapada. 28 The reign of Ra:ja
Madhavabha!ta put his pretensions to the proof (before the court) , malla IV ( c. AD 977-85) was also important in the religious history of
and when the opponent speaker denied the existence of the soul, the Ganga kingdom. Because during his rule the image of Gomate
established its existence, and with the elephant-goad his speech Svara at SravaQabelgola was established by his minister and general
forced him to crouch down (like a vanquished elephant) . The king Gamui)Qaraya, who was a follower ofJainism. 30
being pleased, gave the BrahmaQa the title Vadi bhasilpha (a lion to
the elephant disputant) and with it the Oreko.;{u village. The oth er
grant of this king is in the Tagadur plates of the date 266. In this, a
GaVUQQa or farner who had made important captures in a battle at
HeJtieru (now Hemavati, on the northern border of Sira tal uk) re
ceived as a reward the Appogal village,u
H varman was succeeded by his son ViQugopa. He used to
worship gurus, cows and Brahmar;Jas and "seem to have set aside th e
308 The Rise and Dedine ofBudh . ]Juddhism in Southern India 309
d ism 111 /ncJ.ia
GENEALOGY
I I
Marasimha Nitimargga I
Dhanaiijaya I
I I I
Prthivipati II Raj amalia Butugendra
I
Harischandra
I
Satyavakya II
Ereyapa
Padmanabha I
I I
Rajamalia Butuga
Dadiga
I
Madhava I Kongunivannma
I
Satyavakya III
Harivarmma
I
Vir:tugopa
Rajamalla Satyavakya IV Rakkasa Ganga Arumuli Deva
.
Prthivi-Ganga
I
Madhava iii REFERENCES
I
'HAl, 434; HSI, 1 1 2. 2HS/, 1 1 2. 'Ibid.
Avinita
I
'Ibid. 'Ibid.; HAl, 434. 6HS/, 1 1 2.
9Ibid., 1 1 3; Ma, 33.
12Ibid., 34.
'Ibid., 1 1 3. 8Ibid.
Durvinita
I
HSl, 1 1 3; HAl, 434. "Ma, 33.
"Ibid. 14Ibid. "Ibid., 35.
.
Muskara, Mokkara 16Ibid. 17HAl, 434, fn 1. 18Ibid., 434.
I 19Ma, 36. 20Ibid., 37. "Ibid.
Srivikranima 'O.J!Al, 434. "'Ibid. "'Ma, 3s.
"HA1, 434. 2'%id., 434. 27Ibid.
"'Ibid., 435. 29Ibid. "'Ibid.
"Ma, 49-50.
Bhiivikramma Srivallabha Sivamara i
I 9. THE HOYSALAS OF DVARAsAMUDRA OR DORASAMUDRA
Erenga
I
Sripuru
Th e Hoysalas (Poysalas) in their records referred to themselves s
I
"Yadavakulatilaka" or triyas of the lunar race. "1 From one of therr
I ohd est titles 'Malapero!gar:t<;la' or 'champion amon the alpas or
I ill chiefs' we learn that the Hoysalas were at first hill chiefs. Rama
Shakar Tripathi says that "the historical founder of the ?ynasty was
I
Sivamara II, Saigotta
I
Vyayaditya crtain Sala, who became noted for having struck and killed a uger .
Wlth an iron rod at the behest of a sage. I t is said that this circum
stance
Poysalas
(Poy S3.la, i.e., strike, S3.la) gave to the family the name of
Marasirpha Prthivipati I R.ajamalla Satyavakya I
I
or Hoysala."3 K.R. Venkataraman gives an account of the
I
310 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhis 31 1
m. thern India
171 /'fldia !Juddhism in Sou
legendary founder Saia of the Hoysalas. H e describes, 'The 0 . kingdoms ofthe rise ofa new power, youngand virile, and out
the Hoysalas is shroued in ystery. Their legen dary foun de . f .
I ndian
reported to have exhibited his coolness and valour m killing ti 15
. r upon a career of aggrandisement. "2I
to en te vardhana was aJain in his early life. During the early years of
which was about to pounce upon him while engaged in rec er,
a Vi!Snu
his re:i Jainism
flourished under his patronage and hts mmister
vtng
instructions from his guru, a Jaina monk. The scene of this 0 and also were restored.
, ccur. Ganaraj a.
Many Jain temples were built .
rence was Sosavir or Sasa -kapur m the mo d em Mu dgere
taluk of t king met the famous iiciirya and th e VaiQava re-
ards the
he
:
The Hoysala kings from the early times were devout jaina:>, bu ported Saivism and Vaisnavism.
o n to Thus the people of th Hoysala Empire followed different creeds,
they, like most of the Hindu kings of the South, showed tolera?
other creeds. Visnuvardhana like Ballala I must have had fnen d an d all those creeds at one time or other flourished under the
feelings twards ther religions since h had given large num ber 0 patronage of the Hoysala kings."48
grants to Saiva institutions.
314 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism .n ]Juddhism in Southern India 315
z India
flJ{fC. 5.
GENEALOGY ..EHl, 45 1 . "Ibid.
"'Ibid.; HA l, 436; HTC, 6. "HTC, 9.
The Hoysalas'9 HAl, 436; CSHI, 1 29. 'nDBI, 1 1 4. :li!Ibid., 1 14.
HA l, 436; CSHI, I 29. !IJHTC, I 3. "Ibid., 24.
sala, Poysala, Hoysala (AD 1 006)
I
"'bid., 28. "Ibid., 29. ,.. CSHl, I 29; HAl, 436.
,.CSHJ, I 29; HAl, 436. "'HTC, 39-40. HAl, 437.
,.J{[C, 64.
Vinayaditya I '"Ibid. 40Ibid.
I ..Ibid. 45lbid.
XII, 20, 74, 76; HV, 291 .
41Jbid.
Nrpakama (AD 1 022-1047) 45DBI, 1 1 4; EC,
41HTC, 5-6. HV, 288-95.
"Ibid.
I *DB!, 13 34.
Vinayaditya II (AD 1047-98) "'HSI, 225; Ma, 97.
I
Ereyanga (AD 1 098-1100) 10. THE PALLAVAS OF KANci
The name Pallava resembles the Persian word Pahlava very closely.
BallaJa I ViI;Iuvardhana, Udayaditya From it some scholars think that the southern Pallavas ofKanci were
(AD 1 1 00-1 1 1 0) Birt.iga (AD 1 1 10-52) "a family of foreign origin. "1 It is generally accepted that in the early
I centurieS of the Christian era many people of Persian origin arrived
Narasi111ha I (AD 1 1 52-73) in the Deccan from the north-west and west and settled there and
I took service there.2 Thejiinagarh inscription ofRudradaman of the
BallaJa II or Vira BallaJa II (AD 1 1 73-1220) middle of the second century AD describes that his minister Suvisakha
I was a Pahlava. 3 According to some scholars, "the Pallavas were
Narasi111ha II (AD 1220-38) autochthons of the land, associated or allied with the Kurumbas,
I Kallars, Maravars and other 'predatory' tribes. Mter welding them,
Somdvara (AD 1 238-67) the Pallavas are believed to have emerged as a mighty political
power. "4 M.C. Rasanayagam says that the Pallavas "were ofCoJa-Naga
extraction, and belonged to southern extremity ofthe peninsula and
Narasil1lha III (AD 1 267-92) Ramanatha (AD 1267-95) Ceylon."5 Krnaswami Aiyangar mentions that there are references
I I to the Pallavas as Toi;I<;faiyas in the Sangam literature,6 and "theywere
Vira BallaJa III, BallaJa III Visvanatha (AD 1 295-1 31 0) descended from the Naga chieftains, who were vassals of the
(AD 1292-1342) Siitavahana sovereigns."7 K.P.Jayaswal8 believes that the Pallavas were
I .
"neith er foreigners nor Dravidians, but good Brahmin aristocrats
Vira BallaJa IV, BallaJa IV from the north, military by profession." According to him, they were
a branch of the V"aka!4kas.9 K.P. Jayaswal mentions them as good
Brahm ins. But in the Talagui;I<;fa in scription the Kadamba
ayiirSa.rman refers to them as the ''Pallava triya",which signifies
e triya stock of the Pallavas."10 The Pallavas were Viceroys of the
REFERENCES
'HAl, 435.
tavahanas in the southern Deccan. In the 3rd century AD when the
I HAl, 435; HTC, I . 'HTC, 1 .
4HTC, 1 . ' HV, VII.
Siitavahana power declined, the Pallavas declared their independ
6HTC, I ; CSHl, I28.
aliTe, 1 .
'HTC, I; CSHl, I 28. ence and became masters of this region. Dubreuil says, "The Pallavas
sceeded the Aandhras. Their plates mention the province of
9CSHl, I 28.
10/ITC, 1 . 11Ibid., 1 . ''Ibid., 1 .
"Ibid., 1 . 14 CSHl, I 28. S3.taani Rattha a portion of the Bellary district. Thus the Pallava
"Ibid.; HTC, 1 .
'6CSH/, I28; HTC, I ; EHl, 450; HAl, 436. "HTC, 1 . p1re extended along the Coromandel Coast upto the KrJ.la and
lll CSHJ, I28. '9Ibid., I 28-29; HAl, 436. 20CSHl, 436. estward in the Deccan upto the banks of the Tungabhadra. "11
fJUdJhisrrt in Southern India
317
316 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism .
m lndia
position was attained by Kaiici
!he yidavolu pltes, the Hirahac;lgalli plates an d f learning. I t seems that this
Charudevi s grant In . Pral.q-t of the "third and fourth . Queen sea e the orthodox
rule of the early Pallavas and by the religion of
the Guntur d1strict.12 These the
cen tune
h . s of
'! Srn which they propa gated and favour ed together with the
Chns uan era " were .ound m SatVI
c
three ' fl " hed th ere. "
mess o f the Satva samts who ouns
.
copperplate charters which were regarded as the earliest so
PaIIava h.Istory giVe the names of four rulers.13 They were Bapp
. urces 0f
gre rn
h aviQU, who was also known as Avanisi.Jp.ha and Sil1lhaviQu-
sIVaskan davarman, B uddh (ankura) - an 1 4 I t .
adeva
ttaf.iyan ascended throne in the last quarter of the sixth century
1!sery
and Vtravarm
He was regarded as the first
pobable that Bappadeva reigned between AD 225 and 2SO . po 25 He founded
-
'
a new Pallava dynasty .
said to have extended his influence over the Telugu An dhrap
e 15
AD at ruler amon g the later Pallava s. He extend ed his territory up to
and the Tamil ToJ.lc;lamaQc;lalam.16 It seems that- his headq art
atha
u ers
: Kaveri and defeated the PaQc;ly
a devout
as, Kalabhras and the Malwas.24
worshipper ofViJ.lU. It is very
- - 11 iThe next ru1er was his son Sivaskan davanna he was
were at Amaravati. His name suggests that
. n. vism flouris hed in his kingdom under his noble
He a1 so known as Vuayaskandavarman.18 A much later inscn ption probable that VaiQa
re ers to ViIrak- He was succee ded by his son Mahen dravarman 1.25 He is
c
ura as the founder of the dynasty.19 His wife was a N- patronage.
aga r of the Pallava dynasty. He was
pnncess and hts son was Skandavarman or Skandasisya . . Th referred to as the first great builde
sin II and the latter captured
Vi rak-urea was another name ofBappadeva. The Velurpalaiyam p1 ate defeated by the Chalukya ruler Pulake
.
"The soil is fertile and regularly cultivated' and produces a . story of Vajrabodhi will involve the assumption that during the
:in g yean: ofParamsvarava
bun d n l's reig and the time ?f aeces
lt produces pr ance
ofgram. . There are also many flowers and fruits.
a temble famme occurred m the Pallava kingdom.
gems and other articles. . The climate
. is hot the character qous
e . ofRiijasirpha
= accordan
se Budd hists who came to NagappaHinam from China for
temples, and many heretics called Nirgranthas "39 Hm ty neva
" e n-tsa Chin e
g40 trade. ' The temple became known as the 'China
Pagoda'. "53 Rajasilpha
mentions further that the Buddha visited this place to propagate hIs
or Ra jasirpheSva ra temple. He also erected the
doctrme there and the Maurya emperor ASoka erected st-upas her built the KailaSanatha
e and the so-called Shore temple at Mahabali
Kerala.65 But he was killed in the battle ofKoppam in AD 10S2.&t (AD 1 252-79) .(II) It is said that during !1is rule Jatavarman Sundara
Par)Qya attacked the CoJa kingdom and captured Karici.ing t? the
next ruler was his younger brother R.ajendradeva II (AD 105 2-63 _;
)
His reign also witnessed thewar between the Co}asand the Chalukyas. riseo.' th e Payas the CoJa power suffered very much and 1tdechned
Vira-Rajendra Rajakesari (AD 1 06 70) , who was his younger brother miserably. _
succeeded him.66 During his reign the war between the Co}as and th The Co!a rulers were followers of Saivism. They were devotees of
Chalukyas continued. He also came into conflict with the Weste m Lord Siva. They played their vital roles for the development and
Chalukya ruler SomeS\rara I and defeated him in fierce fight &7 He progress of vism in their kingom. Unde their nbe patronage
conquered Kalinga and Cakka-Kottarp and recapture d Vengi an d Saivism occupied the most P!omment place m the relipous 'Yorld of
established again Vuayaditya VII on the throne.68 He subdu ed the the Cola dynasty. Nilakanta Siistrl says that the names Isana, Siva and
rulers of Pya and Kerala and Vijayabahu of Ceylon . Because th e Sarva Siva in the inscriptions ofRajaraja I and jendra CoJadeva I
latter made an effort to drive away the CoJas from Ceylon.69 Vira clearly show the "North Indian connections of Saivism of the Cofa
R.ajendra also gave Western Chalukya ruler Vikramaditya VI his court "81 Rajendra CoJadeva I is said to have brought a number of
daughter in marriage.70 Saivas from the banks of the Ganges.82 He did this for the popularity
The next rulerwasAdhirajendra (AD 1070), who was Vira-Rajendra's of Saivism and his great devotion to it It is to be noted here that
son. 71 He ruled for a very short period. Then R.ajendra, who was also though tile CoJa rulers were Saivas, but they tolerated other iths
known as Kulotturiga I (AD 1 070-1 1 22), occupied the throne.72 V.A. then prevailed in their kingdom. R.ajaraja I was a worshipper of Siva.
Smith says, "R.ajendra, whose mother was a daughter of the famous But he erected temples of Viu and offered gifts to he Buddhist
Garigaikoa CoJa was the son of the Eastern Chalukya prince ?f vihara at Negapattam.85 Kulottunga I himself was a Saiva, but he
Vengi who had died in 1 062. But R.ajendra had professed to remam dedicated a villag again to the same Buddhist vihara at Negapat
at the Cola court and had allowed his uncle to rule Vengi for some tam ... Nilakanta Siistri mentions that Rajaraja I in the decorative
j
years. In i 070 Ra endra was crowned as lord ofVengi and four years motifs of the Siva temple of Tanjore "included themes from Bud
later when Adhirajendra was murdered, he assumed the govern men t dhism as well. "8 L.D. Barn ett reviewed a manuscript of the
of the whole CoJa territory. He thus founded a new Chalukya-Co!a Upiisakajaniilm[Lkiira ofMahathera Ananda.86 In it there is a reference
dynasty, taking the title of Kulotturiga-C o}a."n He ruled for a v_el)' to tile king, who patronised Buddhism. He has been indentified by
long time. He recaptured Kaliriga and defeated the Eastern Ganga scholars with Anantavarman Co4aganga.87 According to rya Sastri,
. 1
he was Rajendra CoJadeva 1.88, This indicates the development of
k"mg. 74
Kullotturiga I was a devout worshipper of Siva. He played a
-
ta Bddhism _side by side with Saivism in the CoJa kingdom. K.A.
i en
role for the progress of Saiv sjll. in his kingdom. Th smalle Ley Nlakan ta Sastri describes, "In the Tamil country, Buddhism de
grant says that in the 20th year of his reign, Kulottunga ?ed ICated clmed rapidly as a result of the activities of the Hindu saints and
_ _
a Buddhist monastery at Negapattam in AD 1 084.7 Thts udtcate i refom ers, but it lingered on feebly in different parts of the country.
snl ty,
tolerant attitude towards Buddhism. But owing to hts ho . Un der the CoJas there_were Buddhist settlements in Negapattam on
R.amanuja, the great Vairyava teacher, left Srirangam near Tri ch iDD" the east roast and at Srimiilavasam in the west; and
poly and went to stay in Mysore.76
0 22-
onsidere d sufficiently important for some scenes from
Buddhism was
Buddha's
The next ruler was Kulotturiga I ' s son Vikrama-Co!a ( his fe to be represented in the decorative panels in a balustrade of the
33) .77 I t is very probable that he was a Vairyava. Becau se d lot great temple of Tanjore. The ancient Velgam Vehera on the banks
of th e Pe
rule R.amanuja returned to the CoJa country from Mys?re .
e was
riyakulam tank near Trincomalee in Ceylon was remodelled
tunga II (AD 1 1 33-47) ascended the throne after htm . H and considerably extended, and renamed R.ajaraja Perumballi
early
328 The Rise arul Dedine of Buddhism . aJ.ism in Southern Irulia
8ttlJU"
329
Z11 /'fldia
I
: :
in the eleventh century; a large size limestone image of the B
and an inscribed bronze lampstand are among the fin ds in th ?ha
" Sundara CoJa
Madhuran taka,
area!ear proof o the acve in eres of the great CoJa mo a Uttama CoJa Paran taka II
the spmtual well-bemg of his subjects m Ceylon. An important 1 0
ofTamil grammar, the Virasolryam composed in Virarajen dra's :rk
e, Aditya II Karikala Rajaraja I
has a Buddhist scholar for its author. One section of Kaiicip"
bore the name of Buddhakaiici to a relatively late date a rn
I
Buddhist monk from one of the monasteries there sang th: p .: a Rajendra-CoJadeva I
of a Hindu ruler ofEasternjava in the ourteenth century. "89Jaini :
es GangaikoQ<;la
also prospered there. K.A. Nilakanta Sastri mentions : jain ism h
m Kari)a!aka and m the Tamil country owmg to the striki ng contri
:
ore inuence thn Buddhis on the life <:>fthe people , particula ly
Rajadhiraja I Rajendradeva II Vira Rajendra I
butions made by Jaina authors to the literatures of Kannada and I I
Tamjl. "90 It should be mentioned here that owing to the hosti lity of Rajamahendra Adhi Rajendra
the Saiva Kulotttpiga I, the celebrated VaiQava teacher Ramanuja
could not stay at Srirangam. He was compelled to leave that place and
went to Mysore to live under Bit!iga ViQuvardhana Hoysala's protec 1he Co!a-Chiilukya Ruf.en94
tion.91 The VaiI)ava teacher returned to the CoJa kingdom during Kulottunga
the rule ofVikrama-CoJa who showed his great respect to this holy Vikrama CoJa
man.92 But, why Kulottunga I showed his intolerant attitude towards Kulottunga II
the VaiQava teacher, it is difficult to explain. Such instances were Rajaraja II
very rare really. Because VaiQava AJvars and Saiva Nayanmars Rajadhiraja II
preached their doctrines freely in the kingdom of the CoJa rulers. Kulottunga III
Rajaraja III
GENEALOGY Rajendra III
Rajendra IV
The Cofa$13
I
Nedumudi Killi I EHI, 480. 'HAl, 45 7. 'Ibid.; Ell/, 480.
4HAI, 457; EHI, 480-81 . 'HAl, 457.
I
6Ibid.
7lbid.; CSHI, 1 46. "HAl, 457-58. 9Elll, 481.
Vijayaditya
I
'"Ibid.; CSHI, 146; HAl, 458. "HAl, 1 46.
"Ibid., 458. 14Ibid.; EHI, 48 1 .
" CSHI, 1 46; EHI, 482. 16HA I, 458.
" CSH/, 146.
Aditya I ''Ibid., 45&.59; Ell/, 482-83.
'"EHI, 483. '9Ibid.
rl
Pa ntaka "'Ibid., 484; HAl, 459; CSHI, 147.
22Ibid.; CSH/, 147.
21EH/, 459.
estee Ill
agai st the o!as oing to e in terference ofNarasiha I I Ho Jeam ing much, but are wholly given to commercial gain.
who IS mentiOned m an eptgraph as the "displacer of p- d Y ala
s .
'fhe e are the rums of
many old convents, but only the walls are
establisher of the Cola kingdom. "30 The next ruler was M ;:: nd : rv
es ed,
and there are few religious followers. There are many
an pr dred Deva-temples, and a multitude of heretics, mostly belong-
Sundara Pal)<;lya II (AD 1 238-5 1 ) .31 He was succeeded byJatava
gr nnan hu n
. to me Nirgranthas. "46 HIS accoun t shows us
. that Brahmamsm
Sundara Pal)<;lya (AD 1251-72) .32 He was regarded as "the eatest
r sp ered
. . of 10 e Pal)<;lya kingom. .The Pa1,1<;1y r llers we all
e
tl1e Iater P-al) d. ya dynasty. " Dunng hts rule the Pal)<;lyas reached t11 ':
zentth of Its glory. H completely destroyed the Co!a power in tll:
. .
sou tl1, conq ered Kanci and defeated the Cera country, Korigude5a
f ollowers of SaiVIsm
do m . I t decline
. But Buddht sm dtd not flounsh m
d miserably. Because it had not many followers
the Pal)<;lya
ki ng
Buddhi st monasteries were in ruins. This indicates that
and Ceylon. He also captured the fortress ofKunnan ur-Koppam of and many
important Buddhi st centre. But no
the Hoysalas and defeated a Hoysala force at Perambalur.ll4 He a1so this place in early days was an
it neither prospered nor made a contn
p
defeated Gal)apati, the Kakatiya ruler of Warangal and Koppe- due to want of its patronage
- .!1 ..: th _ll ruler of Sendamarigalam. 35 He took the title of
. us world of the Pal) <,lya kingdom.
runJ1 bution to the religio
MaharaJadhtraJ-Sn-Paramesvara. _ He is "recorded to have given Hi uen-tsa ng's record gives us information about the flourishing
country. I t had many Jaina
large s on occasiOns ofthe many sacrifices that he performed; an d he condition of Jainism in the Pal)<;lya
lso nchly adorned and endowed the temples of Cidambaram and temp les and DigambaraJainas used to live there. King Nedumaran
Sri Rarigam. "36 This shows that he was a worshipper ofLord Siva. The Pal)<;lya was original ly a Jaina: But in the middle of the seventh
next u!er was Maravannan Kulasekhara. He fought successfully in century AD he was convert ed to Saivism by the famous saint Tirujiiana
ial zeal
Malama<;lu_(Travancore country) and invaded Ceylon.37 His legiti sambandar. This ruler "displayed even more than tl1e proverb
ted his late co-relig ionists, who refused to
mate son,Jatavarman Sundara Pal)<;lya, murdered him because Vira of a convert, and persecu
apostatiz e wiili tl1e most savage cruelty, inflictin g on no less than
Pa1,1<,lya, his illegitimate half-brother was selected to succeed to tlle
throne, and the civil war broke out.38Jatavannan Sundara P<;lya was eight thousan d innocen t persons a horrible death by impalement.
defeated and he sought Alauddin Khilji's help. Malik Kafur, ilie Certain unpublished sculptures on a walls of a temple at Trivatur
Sultan 's general, led an expedition to Madura in AD 1310 and de (Tiruvattur) in Arcot record these executions and are regarded as
stroyed it and carried away its wealth and other valuable things.39 A confmnation of the tradition . The position of the Jaina religion in
ilie South was much shaken by the persecution, which evidently was
a reality, although possibly exaggera ted. "47 T. A Gopinatha Rao says
few years later Alauddin Khilji's general Khusru Khan invaded
Mdura again with a strong force.40 Taking advantage of the situ
anon, the Cera king Ravivannan KulaSekhara defeated Vira Pal)<,lya iliat "the event took place at Madura, where it is celebrated as :the
and his brother in AD 1 315 and the Pal)<;lyas became his subjects .41 impalement of the jainas' on the 7th day of the Mahotsava of Siva,
he Kakatiyas ofWarangal also captured some of the conquered te r and is treated as an utsava."46
n tory from the Cera king.42 This brought the downfall of the Pal)<;lya
ngdom. But several minor rulers of the Pal)<,iya line ruled up to the GENEALOGY
etgh eenth century in Tinnevelly and its neighbouring region ."'
Hmen-tsang visited southern India in AD 640. During the rainy The Piir,uf,yat9
season he stayed at Kaiici, the capital of the Pallava king NarasiJ11 ha Ka<;tungon
rman. He never visited the Pal)<;lya country. But his Buddhit Maravarman Avani Sulamani
fnends at Kaiici gave him information and he recorded it in hts Sendan
account. He refers to the Pal)<;lya country as Mo-lo-kiu-ch'a or Arikesari Maravannan, Nedumaran, Kuna Pal)<;lya
Malakii!a or Malako!!a-44 He makes no mention of its capital. He does Koccadayan Ra1,1adhira
not say anything about its ruler. "It is probable that the Pal)<;lya raja Maravarman Rajasiipha I
at that time was a tributary of the powerful Pallava king of Kaii ci . e Jtila Parantaka Ne<;iunjadayan Vargul)a I
.
Hmen-tsang says, "The temperature is very hot. The men are dark Sri-Mara-Sri-Vallabha
complexion ed. They are finn and impetuous in disposition. Some Varagul)avannan, Vargul)a II
follow the true doctrine, others are given to heresy. They do not rl Parantaka Viranarayal)a
334 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhis JJuddhism in Southern India 335
m z.n Ind
ia
Maravarman Rajasi1p.ha II b the rituals ofjina, Buddha, Ananta (ViI;l U ) and Rudra (Siva) . The
Jatavarman KulaSekhara yign of Tribhuvanamalla or Vikramaditya II of Kalyai;la witnessed
Maravarman Sundara Pai;l<;lya I me consmtruction of a Buddhist vihara and a temple at Dharmavolal
Dambol) in th Dharvada district by sixtee merchants of
Maravarman Sundara Pai;l<;fya II ( ode
Jatavarman Sundara Pai;l<;lya th e VaiS)'a caste. There IS a reference to e establishment of an
Maravarman Kula.Sekhara jJI}age of the Buddha along with those of Siva and arhat and the
Jatavarman Sundara Pai;l<;lya assign ment of lands for their support. !he reign ofVijjala marked
Vira Pai;l<;lya the foundation of a new sect of Vi_ra Saivas or the Lmgayats. The
Rastrakiita rulers were votaries of Saivism and Vaigmvism. During
thir rule not only the worship of Siva and ViI;l U grew popular in the
REFERENCES Deccan, butjainism also attained its prosperity. The Kai;lheri inscrip
tions of the reign of the Ratrakiita ruler Amoghava I show that
1HAI, 481 . "Ibid., 481 ; Ell!, 470. 'HAl, 481 . Buddhism had its followers and benefactors and its chief centre at
41bid.; AS, Bk. 1, ch. XI, 76. that time was Kai;lheri in the Deccan. Nothing is known about
'HAl, 482; AlMA, LVI, B, 161. 6HAl, 482; AlMA, LI, 115. Buddhism from the records of the Yadavas, the Kakatiyas, the
'HAl, 482; AlMA, Arrian, Vlll, 206; Ell!, 470. 8HAl, 482. Kadambas and the Gangas. The Yadavas were orthodox Hindus. The
9Ibid.; Ell!, 471. 10HA1, 482; Strabo, XV, 4, 73. Kadambas were followers of Brahmanism. The Ganga rulers were
"HAl, 482. 12lbid., 483; CSHI, 142. "HAl, 483.
14Ibid. "Ibid. 16 CSHI, 142.
Jainas. "Jain ism was the state creed in the time of Gangas, of some of
17Ibid. HAl, 483-84. 19Ibid., 484.
the RaHrakiitas and Kalacuryas, and of the early Hoysalas. But the
"'Ibid. 2'Ibid.; CSHI, 143. 22HAI, 484. CoJa conquests in 1004, the conversion of the Hoysala king in 1 1 1 7
23Ibid.; CSHI, 143. 24HAI, 484. "'Ibid., 485. and the assassination of the Kalacurya king in 1 1 67 were severe blows
26Ibid., 486. 27Ibid.; CSHI, 144. "'CSHJ, 144. to its influence. In an endeavour to accommodate itself to the age,
"'HAl, 486. "'Ibid.; CSHI, I44. "Ibid. Jina is described in 1 151 as the Universal spirit who is Siva, Dhatri
"'HAl, 487; CSHI, I 44-45. "HAl, 487; CSHI, 145. (Brahma) , Sugata (Buddha) and Vi-':lu; and for a generation follow
"HAl, 487; CSHI, 145. "HAl, 487.
,.Ibid., fn 1. "'Ibid., 487; CSHI, 145. '"HAl, 488; CSHI, I 45.
ing we find chieftains who were supporters of all the four creeds-
'$!HAl, 488; CSHl, 145. ""HAl, 488; CSHI, 145-46. Mahesvara,Jaina, Var:mva and Buddha. "1 Hinduism, Buddhsm and
41HAI, 488; CSHl, 146. 42CSH1, 146. Jainism flourished side by side under the patronage of the SHahara
43Ibid.; HAl, 488. 44HAl, 489; EHI, 472. 43EH1, 472. rulers. The Kai;lheri inscription of AD 843 refers to the gift of various
46HAI, 489. 41EHI, 474-75 . 48Ibid., 475, fn 1; EHIG, 55. nacessaries, the repair of damages and the grant of funds for the
"'HAl, 481-89; CSHI, 1 42-46. purchase of books, for the Buddhist monks by a minister of the
Sllahara feudatories of Konkan. The Miraj grant of Silahara ruler
CONCLUSION Gandariidi not only refers to the construction of temples of
Mahadeva (Sankara),Jina and the Buddha on the bank of the lake
The Chalukyas of Vcitiipi (Badami) were Brahmins. Under th eir Gal)<;fasagara or Gal)<;fasamudra, but also describes grant of land to
patronage Brahmanism flourished to a great extent. But they toler each of the three gods mentioned above. The Hoysalas who were
ated other faiths. That is why, Jainism prospered during their rule. originally the followers ofjainism but were converted to VaiI;lavism.
But no record says anything about the contribution of the Chalukya The Ciknayakahelli inscription of AD 1 1 81 of Ballaladeva Dvara
rulers to the development of Buddhism; ButHiuen-tsang men tions samudra describes Ballaladeva as a supporter of the four Samayas,
that there were more than 1 00 Buddhist monasteries with 5000 Bud Mahesvara, Buddha, Vail)avaand arhat. Hiuen-tsang throws flood of
dhist monks of both Vehicles in the Chalukya kingdom of Wtapi light on the development of Buddhism in the Pallava kingdom and
This indicates the prevalence of Buddhism there. The Belur ins_cnl,'" some of the early Pallava rulers were followers of Buddhism. The
tion of the Chalukya ruler jayasi1p.ha of Kalyai;la says that the ng s Ch_inese traveller says that the country had some hudreds of
eldest sister Allidevi practised the religious observances enj Oined Sanghariimas with 10,000 priests. The CoJa rulers were Saivas but
836 The RiM '"utDiiruofBuddh;.,., .,
; 1"< J)ruld)lism ir) Southern India
epigraphical rcc;.ords give us sufficient evidence toshow \J$ or the l"'cU]<;ly.L coutttry in AD 640. Yuan ChW'.Lng
lh Cla's (Malakiita)
only R ijariija 1 granted a village to the Buddhist mon at not refers to "a .multitude ofheretics mostly belonging to the Nirgnn
. . :Utery at
Ncgapauam but Kulottunga I aho dedu:ated a viUage to l.h dlas. Similarly. he mentions "'many Nirgratnhas" living n i the king
vihata.8ralunanism
in the PaJ.l<;iyakingdom. The J> rne be
proS
JM:red doll1 ofK.arici. Accordingly, it may supposed that there must have
were'.\'Orshippers ofLord Siva.Hiuen-uan:g records tJ1e
flou )'aS
been faiTtygoodja.ina population inthe Paltava and Pao<tya realms
.
coudition ofJainistn in the Pil,l<,lyacountry. Buthisacoount nt_hesoccec:dingcenturies.ButJainis.m_ haditsmost notable lriurnph
u'::::ms
us. that Buddhism did not prosper at aU. Thus from the nder Kumarnplila Cllalukya ( Al> ll43-72), who drew inspiration
abo>.re f:rr:r:u
we conclude that though Buddhism was no longer the o c.
u froJl\thegreat OciiryaHemac::andra.ltisbe-lievedLla.tasa resultofthe
rn st
rorce.inthe religio usi.souyoflndia, butit isquite certaht that latter'spreachingandenC)dopaedic learning jainism rapidlyspread
prev aJied m _
some feglOOS ofsouthern India.
it
':u
in Gojarat, Ka.iiv.a, Kaccha. Rajputini and Ml'ilv.d.. In 1J1t: North,
Rama Saukar Tripathi obsen: "The r l"$l polm to sl.rike U$ i$ bowevcrits influence remained verylimited forlack ofroyalpatron
atBuddht$ Y.'<U nolongan actweforce 10 India. But it certainty e. Here as well as in soullHm India the dominant faith was
1 gered on m some locabtJe-s. We learn that in ll1..e course of Bt3hl\lani.sm or Pauril',lK: Hinduism. and the princes and the corn
his
ner.uyYuan Chwatg <: AD 65} s.;'l"'' s oll_\chundred ofSaOgM mou peopl<': alike venerated the Bn.hmanical gods. Among the5<:,
.
ra aand 10,000pnt.s 10 K.. 1nd.Theystudied the teaching of!he the m06t prominent we.te ViQ u and i\'<l, who were known by a
Sth ava.ta !(:hoo1 and belonged tothe Mahiyiina. lt may, therefore numberofothername!>also. Titc pantheon furtherincluded Brahrna.
be
reasonably presumed that lluddhism may have survived in the Stirya. Viniyaka or Damodara (Caf}cSa}. Kumara Skanda. Sv3.mi
,
Palla\'a kingdom longafter the\1sitofYuart Otwang. h.s exi!itence in Mahas ena or Kattikeya. Indra, Agoi, Yama, Varu.l)a, Man1t and
tp50Uthisalsopred l_>ythegiftsmadeb)Rajari.ja I Cola,anardent gO<Idc"eslike the divineMothen (Matrkas), BhagavauorDurgi.Sri
Sa\'3, to the BuddhLSt va_harn atNegapau.arn, and by those ofKulot (Lak..mi), besides a host of rninor deities. Many of them still com
tunga I to another Bt ddbist vih.ar.t. In the Deccan its chiefcentre m31ldpopularallegiance,and Ll\uJI'noden) Hinduismmaybes."\id to
were Kampil)"a (Shotapur district), Oamb3.1 (Ohatvac;t distri<:t) and have ken $ltapc by thispc:riod. We further leam thatCmiodacan
Ka.;.heri (Thiina district). When cheMoslemfrmcame to Sind in the 1 C5J\a(,lonila, and R:ijarij3 I Co!a and Kulottu rlga I gr..t.ntc:d
d....
beginning of tJ)e eighth century, they fOund there a f.t.irly Large villages to Buddhist vihl.n.s. This must 00:\o-e do\btlesll- promoted a
population orBuddhius. The Palas were, of(:ourse, patronsofBud spirit of toleration and conGord among lhe voraries of the V7lrious
dhism,and theygel\erouslyendowed Buddhist monasteriesin Bengal C()tnpeting sects. Pet'k'cutioo and sectarian animosity were, there
and M1gadha. whe e it may be trac:ed up to t.he time of &khtyar
r fore, not much in evidence theu. An instaJ\Ce to the cont.r.uy is, of
Khilji'.s inv-.t.sion. But here Buddhism had moved fn away from lts CO\U''SC, f\lmbhed by the aforesaid Kulotuulga I, whose.disfa\Our
original moorings. Indeed, the ne"'' Tantric fol"lllS which it bad compelled thegreatVaQavarerormcr.Rami nujatoleaveSriraflga.m
developed had 1r.ms.formed it abuost beyond recognition. The and retire to the Hoysala dominions. His retum was made possible
monb were, howC\-er, stilJ fired ith m ission ze-..t.t and as att only when Vi_krnrna Cola re\ocrscd his father's au.io.1de towards him.
instaoce wemaymention Lhe famousDipailkarn S jliiina,called, the
ri Generally, hOYoever, the ('.o}as and o,!hcr mler. of the South were
Tibelans AtiSa, who i5 known to have gone beyond the frontier&of toltt"'..t.nt ofaU creeds, and Vai:.f,lav.l A!v3ros and Saiva Nayanmiras
India to 1ibetaboutthe middleo(the deventh ccnuuytosprettd the were free Lo preach and propagate their doctrines. These relg i ious
gli htofhi.sfaith.Unlike Buddhism, tllejaina church appearsto113,-e: teachen infused new life and "itality in the o.1rrent beliefs and
gained n i strength in some parts of India. In the Deccan it was pra.ctices by theirprecepta.rld example. Soulh India also produced
honoured by ceruin early ChiUuky.a kings and by Ritj!"'kU!" rulers ..l. !"ng this period such towering personalities a.o; Kumllrila Bha
'
tike Amoghava.,_, I, lndr. IV, l<f!a II and Jndra ((( Many of the nka.rlc:iryaand Madhav'adi.rya. who ha\'e leftan indelible impress
wes.tern Garlga kings also were fa\oura.bty disposed towards i. Th.e on Hindu religion and philoophy b)' lheir moral fervour and intel
.
REFERENCES
PART Two
Ma, 203. 'HA l, 582-86 .
Chapter 1 1
1 2 3 1 2 3
Salt Range) , 8 Satadru going King not People devout Buddhists.
South-East south the Sut- mentioned
across hills, lej on west
Indus west for 9. Pariyatra (Bai- King of the 8 monasteries in ruin; 1 0
frontier (Sha- rat) going Vaisya caste Deva-temples with 1 0,000
hapur) south-west name not non-Buddhists.
(c) UraSa (Hari- Subject to The people were not mentioned
pur) Jhelum Kashmir Buddhists. 10. Mathura east- King not People were moral and
3. Kashmir King protec- People were both ortho- ward mentioned very intellectual; 20 mo-
south-east ted by Dragon dox and heterodox; they nasteries with 2000 bre-
were handsome and fond thren and 5 Deva-temples.
of learning but deceitful. 11. Sthandvara King not Non-Buddhists were very
(a) Punach south- Subject to (ThaneSar) mentioned numerous. 3 monasteries
west Kashmir going north- and about 100 Deva-tem-
(b) Rajapura (Ra- Subject to Non-Buddhists were very east pies. There is here an in-
jaori) south- Kashmir numerous. direct mention of the
east Bhagavadgitii.
4. Tekka (old King not Few believed in Buddhism 12. Srughna north- King not There were 100 Deva-tem-
capital Akala mentioned and most served the Devas. east, the Jum- mentioned pies and the non-Bud-
or Sialkot) go- na flowing dhists were numerous.
ing south-east, through the
Indus on the middle. Snowy
west, Bias on mmmtains on
the east the north, the
5. Cinabhukti Former king Orthodoxy and hetero- Ganges on
(Patti) going Mihirakula doxy had their adherents. the east
eastward There were no monas- 13. Matipura Of Sudra caste The people were equally
teries. There were 9 Deva- (Western Ro- did not believe divided between Bud-
temples. hilkhand) eros- in Buddhism dhism and other religions.
6. Jalandhara King not 50 monasteries and 3 Deva- sing to the and worship-
(Jullunder) mentioned. A temples with professed eastern bank ped the Devas
north-east former king non-Buddhists of the of the Ganges
was in sole Pasupata sect. 1 4. Brahmapura Not mention- 5 monasteries with very
control of ma- (Garhwal and ed few brethren, 1 0 Deva-
tters relating Kumaon) temples.
to Buddhism going north
7. Kuluta (Kulu) King not 20 monasteries and 1 5 15 . Govina (KaSi- Not mention- People honest and sine-
among moun- mentioned Deva-temples. pur, Rampur) ed ere and applied them-
tains going south-east of selves to learning . Most of
north-east Matipura them non-Buddhists.
The Rise arul Dedine ofBuddhis . India in AD 630 as Described by Hiuen-tsang 345
m an India
344
1 2 3 1 2 3
II 1 2 3 I 2 3
There was a metal im The country patronised But there were 1 000
produced fra- Jayasena reno-
' age Brahman families descen-
of the Deva (Siva) near}
grant rice call- wned Buddhist
1 00 feet high which wa
/
ife-lik in the awe-inspir ed "rice for scholar of
dants of the original i
Gaya and these were not
_ - atriya caste subject to the king and
mg maJont:y. grandees"
30. Cancu (Yau- King not 10 monasteries, 20 Deva- were treated by all with
dheya) going mentioned temples. On the south of reverence.
eastward along the Ganges was a Maha- Nalanda mon- Ancient Buddhist . Univer-
the Ganges sala where all the inhabi- asteries (mod- sit:y. Baladitya and others
capital Ghazi- tants were Brahmins and em village built them and endowed
pur there were no Buddhists. Burgaon) to them with 1 00 villages.
On the north of the the east of
Ganges was a Narayat:ta Rajagrha
temple with a most 35 . Hirat:tyaparvata No king, a nei- 1 0 monasteries and 20
beautiful image. (Monghyr) go- ghbouring Deva-temples. Near the
31 . Vaisali, cross- Not mention- The people both ortho- ing east. Capi- king having Ganges and besides the
ing the Ganges ed tal close to the recently depo- capital was a mountain
dox and heterodox. The
north-east Digambaras flourished. Ganges on its sed the ruler on which lived an end-
32. Vtiji, going Not mention- Very few Buddhists, non- north side less succession of is
north-east ed Buddhists were numer- whose teachings were
ous. still preserved in the
33. Nepal (in the Kings were The people were rude Deva-temples.
snowy moun- triya Lie- and deceitful and ugly 36. Campa (Bha- Not mention- Monasteries in ruin. On
tains, directions chavis. There in appearance but skilled galpur) east ed the south side of the
not mentioned) were eminent merchants. They believ- Capital situat- Ganges in an islet, there
scholars and ed both the false and ed on the so- was a Deva-temple beauti-
believed in true religions. Monas- uth of the Gan- ful and enchanting.
Buddha. An- teries and Deva-temples ges. Many her-
suvarman a re- touching each other. ds of elephants
cent king had in the Jungle
written a treat- to the south
ise on Et:ymol- 37. Kajangal (Raja- No king; 6 monasteries, 1 0 Deva-
ogy
mahal) east- subject to temples.
34. Magadha, from Not mention- The people were honest, south of the another state
Vaisali south, ed, but in the esteemed learning and Ganges
after crossing life we are told reverenced Buddhism.
38 . Pundra Var- Not mention- 20 monasteries, 1 00 Deva-
the Ganges. that Piirt:ta- The adherents of various dha (Rang- ed temples. There were Di-
Old capital varman king of sects were numerous. pur) , east after gambara Nigranthas also.
Rajagrha, new Magadha who Gaya was to the south crossing the
Pataliputra was just dead and had few inhabitants. Ganges
348 The Rise and Decline of Budhd ism in 1
.
ndta Jndia in AD 630 as Described by Hiuen-tsang 349
1 2 3 1 2 3
39. Kamariipa A Brahman, The people were small in they differed somewhat
(Assam) east descendant of stature; spoke a different from Mid-India in talk
after crossing Narayar:ta Deva language; did not believe and manners. Few Bud-
a large river called Bhaska- in Buddhism. There were dhists. Majority of other
ravarman the hundreds of Deva-temples. religions. 1 00 Deva-temp-
other name me Buddhists prayed les, majority being Nir-
being Kumara m secrecy. granthas.
40. Samatata capi- Not mention- 30 Buddhist monasteries 46. KoSa.la, land atriya People tall and black of
talJessore ed and 1 00 Deva-temples. of Nagarjuna, Buddhist both religions, about 1 00
Digambara Nirgranthas north-west, monasteries.
were very numerous. country sur-
41. Tamralipti Not mention- 10 Buddhist monasteries, rounded by
(Midnapore) ed 50 Deva-temples. mountains
west; capital 47. Andhra, south Not mention-People violent. Their spe-
on an inlet of from KoSa.la ed ech differs from Mid-lnd-
the sea, land ia; 1 00 monasteries. Follo-
and water com- wers of different religions.
munication 48. Dhankakataka Not mention- People black, monasteries
met, being on (Amaravati on ed deserted; 100 temples,
a bay the r:ta) followers of various sect
42. Karr:tasuvarr:ta Sasanka People fond of learning; south numerous.
(Murshidabad) 1 0 01onasteries, 50 temp- 49. Cofa south- People of a fierce and pro-
north-west les. Numerous followers west fligate character. They
of various religions. were the followers ofTir-
43. U<;lra or O<;lra Not mention- People reverenced the thikas. The monasteries
(Orissa) going ed law. In speech and man- were in ruins. Several
s.-w. on the ners different from Mid- tens of Deva-temples and
east the ocean. India. Fruit larger than the Digambaras were
In the s.-w. a elsewhere. 1 00 monas- numerous.
sea-port for go- teries, 50 temples Myriads 50. I)ravi<;la, south Not mention- The people courageous
ing to Ceylon of Buddhism. a port led to ed and honest, esteemed
44. Konguto going Not mention- People tall, black and Siiphala great learning, they differ-
south-west over ed valorous, written langu- ed little from Mid-India
hills and the age the same, ways of in written and spoken
sea speaking different. They language . 1 00 monasteries
were not Buddhists, 1 00 and more than 80 Deva-
temples, of Tirthikas temples. Majority Digam-
there were 1 0,000. bara.
45. Kalinga south- Not mention- People headstrong but 5 1 . Malayakiita, Not mention- People indifferent to reli-
west ed fair and clear of speech; south from ed gion; black, only good at
The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism .
India in AD 630
350 as Described by Hiuen-tsang 351
an India
1 2 3 1 2 3
---
Kaiici, depot pride, monasterie s few religious merit and wor-
of pearls; sea-
port to.Ceylon
hundreds of D eva-tem i
n1gam baras, very num
p es
shipped Devas (Hiuen
Tsang probably did not
er-
ous. On the sou th on visit this country) .
th e
sea was the Malay mou Subject to People like those ofMalava.
n- 57. Kita (Cutch)
tain which produ ced sa going north- Malava There were however
n-
dal. Camphor and other numerous worshippers
west from
trees. On the east was Po- of Deva-temples.
Malava
talaka mountain with Pa- atriya by The country was like Mala-
58. Valabhi going
taldha on the top. forth caste a neph- va, the people rich and
52. Konkan, going Not mention- 1 00 monasteries. Close to ew of the for- prosperous. There were
north from ed the city was a forest of mer king of hundreds of Deva-temples
I;>ravi<;ta Tala trees, its leaves were Malava-Sila- above 1 00 Buddhistic mo-
used for writing. ditya and a son- nasteries.
53. Mahara!Jcl, Pu1akesin People warlike and fond in-law of the
north-west of learning; both ortho- reigning kipg
capital to the dox and heterodox; to the of Kanauj-Sila-
east of a great east of this country was a ditya. He was
river mountain in which caves hasty of tern}>"
were dug out. er and young
54. Bharukaccha Not mention- People decei tful and igno- but a devout
going west and ed rant; believed in both or- Buddhist. His
crossing the thodoxy and heterodoxy. name was
Narmada They support themselves Dhruvabhata
on the sea and salt manu- 59. Anandapura, Not men tion- Fertile and like Malwa in
facture. north-west ed products, climate, written
55. Malava going 60 years before People learned. Malwa of Valabhi
language and institutions.
north-west a great _king in the south-west and More than 10 monasteries.
capital on the called Siladi- Magadha in north-west 60. Sura!Jcl., going Subject to People rich and flourish-
Mahi tya who had were the two coun tries west, Mahi on Malava ing. They were rude and
built by his where learning was priz- its west side believed in both religions.
palace a Bud- ed. There were miscella- 10 monasteries and about
dhist temple, neous belief in orthod- 100 Deva-temples. Near
ruled oxy and heterodoxy. the capital was the Usanta
56. A tali ( uniden- King not People traders and rich. hill (undoubtedly Gimar
tified) going mentioned The soil was sandy. There i near Junagadh) on which
north-west were little flowers or fruit. congregated supernatural
"
1 2 3
1 2 3
The people u tili
zed the
sea an d were tra aries and mules were the
ders by
profession. chief produ ts. In the
61. Gmjara north triya a _
It had a flouri shi marshes of Sintu hved
from Valabhi young man ng popu
lation mostly non- myriads of famils of
Bud
dhis t. I monastery
capital Bhina- cele brated for ferocious disposttJon,
mal wisdom and 10 Deva
temp les. The coun who made taking of life
valour and try was
like Suratra. their occupation though
profound be- they shaved off hair and
liever in Bud- wore Bhiku garbs.
66.
dhism .
Miilasthana Subject to The people were upnght,
62. Ujjayini south- Brahman,
well- People rich and pro pura, going Tekka led moral life, but few
west from sper
versed in het- ous; very few Buddhis east and were Buddhists. There
Gurjara prop- ts.
erodox doct- Monasteries mostly in crossing the was a temple to the sun,
erly ide ntified rine
ruins. Some 10 Deva-te Indus the image of burning old
with Ujjain. m
ples. ornamented with prectous
Because ASoka
stones. There was a cons
had made
tant succession of female
here a jail
singers in this temple.
63. Cicito, north- Brahman, a Majority of people not 67. Profate north- Subject to About 1 0 Buddhist mona
eas t firm believer Buddhist. Wheat and east upland Tekka steries.
in Bud dhism 68.
64.
pulse were its products. Pochilo, south- Subject to About 80 monasteries. In
Thanesvara- Brahman, not People not Bud dhist. west from Sind the capital was a large
pura going a believer in Majority belonged to Sind. Capital Mahdvara temple the
north. Returns Buddhis
m the Pasupatas. in the west on image in which had super
from Mahe- sea natural powers
.SVarapura to Gos-
U<;Iumbaro capital Khajisvara or
jala (Gu rjara)
Kacchdvara.
crosses a wild .
69. Langhala (Ma- Subject to Writing like that of Indta
country and kran) going Persia and speech different. Or
going north west thodoxy and heterdoxy
and crossing both were believed m .
the Sintu river
Above 100 monasteries
comes to Sind.
I
and hundreds of Deva
65. Capital Of Siidra caste People quar temples and very few
Pisarpilo relsome. Thor
and believer ough believer in Bud d h Pasupatas.
in Buddha
)
ism; several hun dreds of 70. Phiitosihlo Subject to In the capital was a temp
monasteries and I 0,000 (Pitasila) Sind le of Mahe.SVara.
brethren. About 30 Deva ii . Afantu (Avan Subject to People violent but true
da) North Sind .
Buddhists. Language dtff
temples. Wheat, dromad-
east erent from that of India.
354 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhis
m m lndia
.
1 2 3
20 monasteries 15 D
eva.
temples.
place
ry refers
nth centu AD ,
where Vairocana14 explained the Tantra to Nar1un a 1 5 Bu-s to
ns thirtee
in a plate is holy and sanctioned by the
o-J
account mentions that the self-originated eleven-faced sta that "what is dropped
tue of
Sii tras. "24 In the Belgami Record
Avalokitesvara from South India was brought to Tibet by King Sra of AD 1 035 Lakulisvara Pal)<;fita, the
. the seventh century AD . 16 The Nikiiya-s ng d as the submarin e fire in the ocean of the
Tsan-Gam-Po m . amgrah ys holy Saiva, is mentione
that a king named Matvalasena (AD 844-66) was converted t v a s.25 The inscriptio n Cannara yapatana no. l 49 in AD 1 125
Buddha
by a Buddhist monk from Vajraparvata. This shows that T r:Y<m:a
refers to Pupasid dhanta, an ancient
guru, who helped to damage the
Buddism flourished in this part of South India even upto the n : reputation of Sugata ( the Buddha) .26 The
AD 1 1 36 describes that Vadira jendra
inscription (Belur 1 7) of
played a pro!llinent role to
century AD . _
.
The eighth and nin h centuries witnessed the Brahmin ical ho stil damag e the reputation of the Buddha.27 From the Sraval)a BeJgola
the Jaina
m South India. ,I t is said that two well known epitaph ofAD 1050s-1 1 28-29, it is known that Vimalcandra,
_
Ity towards Buddhism
_
Sou them Brahmal)as, Kumarila and Sankara, who became famo guru, once challenged the uddhas aloni Saivas, Pasupatas ,
for their bigotry, instituted violent crusades against the religion
the uddh. Buddhism was really in trouble and suffered a great
K.apalikas and others by sendmg a letter
An inscription of AD 1 183 also refers to it 29
to King Satrubhay arp.kara.28
d clme owmg to the fierce campaigns carried on by them. The Taranatha, 30 the Tibetan historian, throws light on the condition
History of Kerala records that Kumarila drove out the Buddhis ts of Buddhism in the South after the Muhammedan conquest. From
from Kerala. According to later tradition, towards the middle of the his account we do not get a very depressing condition of Buddhism
eighth century he oppressed the Buddhists of Malabar and re in the South. He says that several Buddhist scholars from the North
quested the king to persecute them.17 But R.C. Mitra does not believe came to the South when the Muhammedans proceede d towards
it. He says, "The great Sarp.kara who is generally believed to have dealt northern India. He describes further that Jiianakaragupta, the
the death-blow to Buddhism in India as a whole, was a Nambudri fumous Buddhist teacher, with 100 other Buddhist scholars fled from
Brahman from Malabar and flourished in the 9th century AD. "18 From the North and <rrived in the South India after the f;ll of Magadha.
a tradition we know that Perumal, the last ruler, was converted to Buddhamitra, Vajrasri, the disciple of Da5abala, also went there.
Buddhism in the ninth century AD . Taranatha mentions that "magic came more and more into promi
Tamil literature which belonged to the seventh, eighth and ninth nence with the Buddhists in the South. "'1 The Caitanya Caritiimrta
cent:!-'ries AD give us an idea of the role played by the VaiI)avas and which was written by .l(rI)adasa Kaviraja in AD 1582 describes that Sri
the Saivas against the Buddhists and their doctrines and practices. Caitanya during his visit to South India in AD 1510 had discussions
Appar, who belonged to th e early seventh century AD, in his hymn of and arguments with several Buddhists and he defeated them with
Tirutturutti (IV, 42; V, 49) refers to the Kul)<;fas, the Jainas and the the ir guru at Venkatagiri near Arcot. 52 The Kaqca of Govindadas gives
Bauddhas as the ignorant people, because "these take cognition of an account of Buddhist scholars, and the prevalence of Buddhism
only what they see (referring to their acceptance of Pratyaa and an d its schools in South India during his time.55 It is known that
umana only as proof) ".19 I n Tirumangai Kiire?Jam (VI, 22, verse 10) Gal)apati Sastri discovered the manuscript of the Maiijusnmulakalpa
he tells his people against "the Falsehood ofthe B uddhists" who wear an d about 400 years back it was copied in South India by Ravicandra,
yellow robe or civara or monastic robe or dress.20Jiiana Sambandar, the head of the Miila-Ghosa vihara.54
who belonged to the seventh century AD, refers to "the Buddhists, From the above accoun ts we conclude that Buddhism continued
th ir dres, their denial of the authority of the Vedas, etc. "2l The to maintain its existence in South India when it declined in other
parts of India. R.C. Mitra states, "the continuance of Hindu rule in
Vrugtava A!var Tirumilisai, who belonged to the late sixth or early
the D eccan and the comparative immunity enjoyed by the South
seventh century AD, in Nruunugam 6 mentions the Buddhists as "the
spiritless Bauddhas" and later on he tells them as "the followers of the from Moslem invasions may partially explain the longer life of Bud
dhism in certain regions in the South. "55 Slowly and gradually,
devil faith. "22 Tol)<;fardipo<;li, who ascribed to the eighth century AD,
Buddhism declined and gave its way to Jainism and Saivism. These
in his Tirumalai, says against sramar.tas and the Sakyas and descri bes
further that "he had the power to fulfil what he considers as a two religions in course of time became very prominent and played
in India Gradual Decline of Buddhism in Different Regions of India
358 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism 359
important roles in the religious history of So_uth India. It is kn ..Ibid. ..Ibid., 85, 1 06, 673.
251bid., 1 1 1; Ml, 152.
"Ibid.
from Hiuen-tsang 's account thatJainism and Saivism prospered OWn ..Ibid., 1 06. DBI, H 2; EC, V, 191.
steadly in several place of the S:m th. R.C. tra observes: " "DB/, 1 12; EC, V, 51. '*'DBI, 1 1 2; EC, II, 1 84.
vaunting phrases m . whiCh the Jama or the Saiva relig <BDBI, 1 1 2; EC, lll, 89 and introduction, 1 7. "'DBI, 1 22; TGBI, 252.
ious
successively announce their triumph over the Buddhists and heds "DBl, 1 23. 'iJbid.; CC, 85; HAB, Il, 1 1 3.
la
Several Buddhist remains were discovered here and this may su gges ses but it has presumably absorbed a large number of the Bud
dl:ists : This only brings into clearer relief the fact that Bu.ddhism
"the worship of the lion" by its inhabitants in the past. t
The greater part of the Punjab between the Beas (the Bias) a d here die d of internal exhaustion and tended to be absorbed m more
the Indus rivers was known as the kingdom ofCheh-ka or Tasch- .
virile local cult;; . "22 R.C. Mitra mentions further, "Th su b"ecti?n of
orTakka.1 I twas very close to Siikala. This kingdom was an importan Budd hism to Saiva influences became more ot
_> ; nt m late : es,
centre of Saivism.14 There were hundreds ofDeva-temples. But th . with the emergence of the cult ofAvalokitesvara and Tara, the
place had ten Buddhist monasteries. Jallandhar was an importa
when,
Bu ddhists were impelled to borrow not only th legends and eta
centre ofBuddhism in the Punjab. Frankly speaking, "Buddhism was physical concepts associated with the .cult of Siva and Drg, but
a mere flourishing condition injallandhar than in other parts of the many of the abnoxious Tanc practices which _ sapped Its mner
Punjab. "15 It was an important centre of the Hinayana and the vitality without strengthemng _ 1ts outworks. "23
Mahayana. It had 50 Buddhist monasteries where lived 2,000 Bud
dhist onks. The Satadru district ?n t?e Sutlej river had many
Buddhist monastenes. _ But they were m rumous state .A few Buddhist
REFERENCES
monks lived there.16 Many people of this region led a pure life,
followed the principles of Buddhism properly but strictly "obseJVed 'Hwui Li, 57; SBC/, 1 2. 2Hwui Li, 12; AGI, 43.
social distinctions." This indicates that Brahminical caste system 'Hwui Li, 1 2; Watters, I, 190-92. Hwui Li, 12.
even influenced the social life of the Buddhist laity.' Bairat was "Ibid.; EHI, 57; KHAI, 246.
another name of the province ofParyatra or Pariyatra.18 Here a copy 'Hwui Li, 12; Giles, 18.
10DBI, 36; M, 1 888, 309.
'Hwui Li, 12; Watters, I, 1 82 ff.
ofASoka's Minor Rock Edict was found. The inhabitants were follow aHwui Li, 12. 9Ibid.
11Hwui Li, 36-37. 12Hwui Li, 36; HIH, ll, 465.
ers of Brahminism. There were eight desolate monasteries which "SBCI, 19-20; RTG, V, 150; EHI, 368. "SBC/, 20; Watters,I, 286.
were occupied by a few Hinayana monks.19 17SBCI, 21; Watters, I , 299.
It is generally believed that Buddhism not only maintained its
"SBCI, 21. 16Ibid., Watters, I, 299.
"SBCI, 21. 19Ibid.; Watters, I, 300. 20DBI, 26; AA, Ill, 212.
existence but also lived with other religions with dignity in Kashmir 21DBI, 26; MBJ, 1948, May:June, 181 . 22DBI, 27.
up to the 12th century AD . Then Islam began to spread in Kashmir. "Ibid., 28.
It is to be noted here that Buddhism suffered most from Muslim in
vasions. Many Buddhist monks and scholars were afraid of Muslim WFSrERN INDIA
invaders and they fled away from their motherlands and plains and
went to Kashmir to take shelter there. But their arrival in this land did Buddhism played an important role in certain places of Western
not help Buddhism much on its way to prosperity in Kashmir. India during the seventh and eighth centuries AD. It is known that
Gradually but slowly it began to decline under the rule of Muslim both Hinduism and Buddhism flourished side by side in Bharukac
rulers. Abul Fazal at the end of the 1 6th century came to this place cha (Broach) .
with the Emperor Akbar.2l Even, at that time, he met same old people The Sammitiya school played a significant role in the religious
who were followers of Buddhism. But he could not say anything world ofMalwa (Malava) during the seventh and eighth centuries AD.
about the exact time of the disappearance of Buddhism from This place was an important centre of this school. It had many Deva
Kashmir. But he guessed that it disappeared long ago. Un der the temples and the Saiva-Pasupata sect became very popular here in the
patronage of Muslim rulers many people of Kashmir accepted Isl am seventh and eighth centuries AD.1 It had many followers here.
as their faith. From the census of 1 941 , it is known tl1at there were A Buddhist inscription of Devadatta of Vikrama era 847-AD 79
40,696 Buddhists in Ladakh and other parts of the state ofKashmr.-
. I
discovered in Shergarh ofKo!a state of Riijasthan2 suggests the exis
Tantrism began to play an important part in the religious h1s tol)' tence of Buddhism even in the 8th century in this region of Rajast
of India. It made a great influence upon the life of the pe opl e of han. Buddhagupta, the Tantric guru of Taranatha, in the 1 6th
Kashmir. R.C. Mitra says, "But as Buddhism began to imbibe su:ong cen tury AD, mentions the temple ofHevajra,3 established by Padma
Tantric influence it is but natural that its fell a victim to allied evils as VCIJra in MarudeSa or Rajputana. Taranatha refers to the existence of
of Saiva Tantrism. But Saivism has not only suJVived in spite of i ts Buddhism in Gujarat and Rajputana after the Muhammedan con-
362 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism
in India Gradual Decline of Buddhism in Different Regions ofIndia 363
Sndhu(ln dus) was an<;>thr place in Western India where Bu d develop their religious ideas.
did not exist . a flounshmg condition.
. m
Buddhist monasterie s were Chau:Ju-Kua16 (AD 1225) , the Chinese traveller in his accoun t
. . escr ibes that "Whenever the inhabitants o f Nan-ni-hua-to take a
m rumous state and there ',"er not many monks. Here the Sun od d
played a promment. role m Its religious world. The kingdo 0
PaiVata6 which was situated to further north-east ofMultan had about
f
bath, they annoint their bodies with turmeric as they like to have
their bodies gilt like that of Buddha. " Rockhill and Hirth locate this
ten Buddhist monasteries with 1000 Buddhist monks of the Hinayana place in Sind.17 This custom probably indicates Buddhist influence
in Sind in the first half of the thirteenth century AD .
-
and the Mahayana.
Chau:Ju-Kua ( c. AD 1 225), the Chinese traveller, says that there It is difficult to say about the exact date of the disappearance of
were 4000 Buddhist temples in Gujarat. He describes further that Buddhism in Sind. R.C. Mitra says, "When and how Buddhism
abo t 20,000 dancing girls used to sing and dance twice daily before disappeare d from Sind is a mystery which cannot yet be resolved. The
the mage of the udda. R.C. Mitra states that "he is here eviden tly Sammitiyas who prevailed in this part of India may, in a period of
mea_?I_? g the Hmdu Idols and the Devdasi of the Temples."' exhaustion, have lent themselves to easier assimilation with the
Dhyambhadra, who ws also own as Siinyadisya, belonged to Hindus. With their emphasis on reality and on the importance of
Magadha. In his . autobiOgraphical account he mentions that Bud personality, the Sammitiyas came very near the Hindu doctrine of
metempsychosis, and the gulfwas bridged over in a later period.
him was in a flourishing condition in Ka-ra-na.8 Dr. Waley identifies
It With Nandurbar in Gujarat.9 1t is said that Rai Kara1_1a, the ruler of The contact of Islam with Buddhism in Sind was not entirely
Gujarat took his shelter here when Sultan Alauddin Khalji in AD 1297 unproductive for Islam. Traces of Buddhist thought have been
overthrew him. It is known that he lived here and acted as a petty perceived in the mystical doctrine of the Sufis. The doctrine of Fana
chieftain. my be an lslamised version of the concept ofNirva1_1a and the system
From Taranatha's account10 we learn that in the reign of Dhar of Intermediate stages, maqiimiit leading unto i! suggests borrowings
from Buddhsm. The legend of Ibrahim ibn Adham the prince of
mapala (c. AD 800-32) of the Pala dynasty, the Saindhava Sravakas
broke the silver image ofHeruka11 at Bodh Gaya. It describes further Balkh, who renounced the royal state to become a Sufi monk, was
that any Hinayana monks also took part in it. The Pag-sam-jon-Zan12 probably an echo of the story of Buddha's great renunciation."18
menbons tJ:ese people as Sendhapa, a Hindu sect. If we accept the
Saindhava Sravakas or the Buddhist monks of Sind of the Sammitiya
school, we conclude then the prevalence of Buddhism in Sind in the REFERENCES
middle of the ninth century AD.
Fro the inscriptions of the Pala rulers we get an account of the 'SBCJ, 40. 2Ibid., 42-43; PLMM, 7.
'DB/, 48. L.M. Joshi says, 'The Havajratantra, a joint creation of two teachers,
Buddhist monks who belonged to Sind. The inscriptions were found
e araa and Kambala, is a Tantra of the class of Guhyasamaja. Its philosophical basis
?n the tlestal of two Buddha imagp in Bihar. They refer to th ls denvedfrom the Madhyamikaand the Yogacara schools. The theoryof'two-in-one ' ,
mstallbon of the images in the 3rd regnal year of Siira Pala by .a
Buddhtst monk named Piir1_1adasa, who came from Sind. 13 ThiS
the 'innate (sahaja) and bodhicitta, and a symbolical analysis of the psycho-physical
m chan ism of human personality, find classic treatment from the Vajrayana stand
Siirapala of the Pala dynasty probably ruled from AD 850 to 854. He pomt. The chief deity or Supreme Reality is termed Hevajra." (SBCI, 265) .
was Siirapala I. A stone image inscription of the reign of Gopala II (c. 4EH/, 368. 'SBCI, 44. "Ibid.
AD 940-60) was discovered at Bodh Gaya.14 It describes the establish '!J)BJ, 48; FNSI, 144-46. 8DBI, 47. 9Ibid.
10Ibid ., 34; TGB/, 221 .
ment of an image of muni (the Buddha) by Dharma-Bhima who, 11 "Ai though the Mahayana Buddhists had long been worshipping Buddhas, Bodhi
most probably, belonged to Sind. H.P. Sastri thinks that the qualify- sattvas, some demi-gods and a number of deified sages and arhats, yet the evolution
364
?
m tn
The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhzs .
/rut a
!
of a Budd ist pantheon, properly so called, is attributable to th a- tn. Bu dd
i 't Gradual Decline ofBuddhism in Dif
'OCcupied by 10,000
ferent Regions ofIndia
ples
of our pen.
The first crystallization of a systematic pantheon i u dhtsm see
hists
flourish ed the
re. There were about
two hundred Hin du tem
per s.15 Bud
reflected m the order of the holy pen tad-the five Meditatie Buddhs or Celestial
ms to usand wor ship
shipped by several tho
which were wor frrst hal f
Jmas. They are the spiritual sons of the Adi-Buddha call d Va rasattva some te es. But in the
dhism flourished in
Kanauj for several cen turi
a:
Heruka or Hevajra in others and known as Svayambhu d Adt-Buddha m Nepal an
xts ,
d of the eighth
cetury AD Buddhism suff
ere d very mu ch and fell in its
the
ism which flourished from
. .
evil days.
Tibet. Most scholars believe that this was a the1st"IC or rather monothets
Mitra describes, "Buddh
uc develor...
At one place in the Jl.evcqra
. . . ta R.C. ja or 'the
yak ub
, extinct in .Kan
r
rnent m Buddhtsm. ntra, we read that "the sa'!ISi'ira
is ng to AD 729, was at last
. days ofHiue n-tsa
s, but
Heruka' s phenomenal aspect, and he is the Lord the saVIour of the world "-SBCJ, full ofstiipas and temple
"DB/, 34; PSJZ, CXIX. ed girl s.' The town is
city of hun ch-back
292
,
; DB/, 34; IHQ, September, I 927, 526-27. 14DBI, 34; GL, 88 ff. there are neither
mo nks nor nun s. "16 Nea
r Kan auj , the re was
side there were three
a city
"DB/, 34 161bid., 35; FNSI, 146 fn, 17DBI, 35. as Nav ade vakula .t' On its eastern
known each had its own gate.
e enclosed by one wall
monasteries which wer
'"Ibid.; DHNI, I, 24.
Sarvastivada sect stayed
Buddhist monks of the
About five hundred
CENrRAL INDIA (MADHYADESA) there}8 visited Ayodhya
known tha t the Buddha
From the Pali canon it is
o us . . ? Cntral
dhasutta}9
Mathura on the Yamuna was regarded as th f; Phonasutta and the Darn an kkh
twice and preach ed the Gan ges .20 It had one
r to Ayodhya on the
I ndia (MadhyadeSa) . The people of Mathu d gre I th m the These two Suttas refe upi ed by 3,0 00 Bud
teries which wer e occ
Law of Karma and th ey "espected moral and intellectual em i- hundred Buddhist monas
r s wh. ch
1 The city had
- dIStrict had about twenty ayana and the Hinayana.2
dhist monks of the Mah
:: ;;
nence . " The Mathura wer e now in
! they
as and monasteries but
were occupied by three thousand Buddhist mon mayana several old Buddhist stiip
: .
an d the Mahayana .2 VA S . th say "Buddh!sm as growing in ruins.22 Although he
favour in this part of th e n try.
:;
.
athura which "had many Fa-hien23 came to KuSinag
ara in the fifth century AD.
desolation of the city and
the district", yet
Buddhist relics of the past"4 occupie a promin ent place as an fou nd "the utter ruin and ces the re in his tim e.
intained their exis ten
important Buddh 1st " centre. the monasteries still ma life eve nts.24 Hiuen
as with the Bud dha 's
The country of Bramapura (Po-lo-lih-mo-pulo) which, accord- He also saw several stiip the tow ns and
city walls were in ruins and
ing to Alexander Cunnmgham was 'in the d"IStr"Icts of Garhwal and tsang describes that "the The inte rior of
Kumaon' . B . c . Law says that It
' abi tant s.
re were very few inh
. was the ancient capital of the Chamb- a villages deserted . . . the
.
state m the punjab 6 Several scholars think that Vairatapattana's
the city being a wildwaste. "25 In Sanskrit it was
a place called I sipatana.
another ? arne was Brahmapura.7 This place had five Bu d dhist Near \'ara1,1asi there was Iipatana flour
_ ns "the abode ofis."26
monastenes which were occupied by a few Buddhist monks. There calle d ipan.ana which mea the Gaha<;lavala
und er the patron age of
were also ten Deva-temples. In the north ofBrahmapura there was a ished in the 1 2th cen tury of king Govinda
out Bud dhi st que en
country wh"IC h was Suvaqm-gotra by name. s I t "touched Tibet (Tu- rule rs. Kumaradevi , the dev mo nas tery and
cakrajina vihara, a large
fan ) on the east and Khota n on the n orth. " From any record we do Candra, erected the Dharma ri defe ated king
_ gs.27 M uhammad Gho
not know .
anyth"mg about B uddhism m this country also restored many old buildin
h
. ed ma ny Bud dhi st mo nks
julien, S. Beal and T. Watters refer to a territory w ich was known Jayacandra in AD 1194 and he not only kill
28
as V'iIrasana, V'ilasana or Bhilasana. 9 But sch olars fi d a great diffic ulty
st cen tre com plet ely.
but also destroyed this Bud dhi Cunningham
n identified by Alexan der
der Chan-chu which has bee
another place in Cen
in identitying it with
. my p lace _of Central I ndia. But Alexan tral ln dia where
Cunnin ham hsiden tified Its capital with the mound ofAtranU. ikhe ra with Gazipur district in U .P. was
enth cen tury AD.29 The Chi nes e pilgrim30
on the nver Kah which lies to the north. ofEtah . on the Gran d T
ru nk Hiuen-tsang came in the sev e occ upied by
dhist viha ras whi ch wer
Road.JO About 300Mah- -
ayana .
monks lived m two Buddhist mon as- says that this place bad ten Bud rs to the
teries here II M os t 0f 1. people were non-Buddhists.
Hin ayana. He also refe
one thousand monks of the us with
"the monastery of the bhik:/
.
or also call e d Aviddaka Saipgharama, i.e.,
KanaUJ was known m early days as v na uyakubJa
::: _
tery for the
Gazipur bui lt this mo nas
a, ' City of the humped backed women'}2 Jtwas situate d on unpierced ears. "31 The king of
Kanyaku b" wn that two
Cen tral Asia . It is kno
th e west bank of the Canges m th e Farukhabad district of the Uttar monks of theTukhara cou ntry in
Pradesh 13 Th IS
. place had hundred Buddhist monasteries which were
366
The Rise and Dedine of
Buddhasm .
. zn J->
oaz a Gradual Decline of Buddhism in Different Regions ofIndia 367
;on with unp ierced
khara came to India but the
ears (aviddha.k arn
a) fr e re o
be ave properly Buddhist .mon i of n
gi n of 1-liuen-tsang, found n othing at Vesali but only the ruins of the
with them. Even ,
they did n ot g e th
dia did
not monastery of Wei-Mo (Vimalakirtti) .7
Whe n thkh k<:_ing ofGazipur came to know' he bui
the Tu ara m onk em shelter.
lt thIs lll on Hiuen-tsang in his account mentioned that in many places Bud
s . 32 Hiu
. en-tsang also refe aste.ry f,o
teries in the G az rs to many o r dhism declined in India. He "noted with despair everywhere that the
th er m on
a s..
- pu r reg1 on. Bu t they .
and the Buddhist
-
wer e not m g ood followers of Brahminical faith far outnumbered the B uddhists. The
monks who lived th con dition
ere were very few
in n u mber.ss
condition of Buddhism in Bengal on the eve of the election ofKing
Gopala (first half of the 8th century) as described in the MaiijuSri
s
16DB'' 18 390.
"'Ibid. ,
11SB of tlieir official records which indicates "a new ideology of Buddha
19BCAI.
"'Ibid. 25 I,
CJ.
8 25; Watters , 352.
.
1 .
and Bodhisattvas in the most developed Mahayana form. "9 Thus
l, 355 Hwu i U '"'
'
21 S
a
BCJ, 26; Watte rs,
"'Ciles, XXIV.
22Jbi
d. . "during this period that Mahayana Buddhism, under the patronage
01Ibid.; BCAJ 53 . of tlie Palas, became a powerful international force and exercised
.
..Watters, II, 1 5-4
"'BCAJ 66 5; HGAJ 1 02-3 dominant influence in the area extending from Tibet in tlie north to
BCA1 53.
tl'Jbid. 69.
5SBCJ, 30 AGl 438
"'SBC1, 30; Watte
, id. t:te islands of the Malay Archipelago in the south."10 Durin g the Pala
bid.; II,
"'Ib
period tlie Vajrayana, the Kalacakrayana and the Sahajayana-the
Wtters: rs, II, 59-60. M
SBCJ, 30.
"Ibid.
S9-60.
us to Bu his m have terially
ma
th e aspect of a hot-house artificial growth ' at Ieast among the Iat impet the res t ofl ndia, but does not seem torel
. k it in igion. For it is
;uperfiia. A spirit %r
over too
position of the Brahminicalages and inscrip
religios eclecticism, conduiv:ll e gra ual asstmdation of the
wh ose conversion was alwa s u and cte d the do mi na nt
by far the large majority ofeen
a ffe im
Buddhists with the Brahminical fio owers, ts _ abundantIy tllu . strated worthy of note thatass 750 and 120 0 AD
ma y ign ed to the per iod betw
;
tions wh ich be
by1the l"tterary and architectural eVl'dence . The. mscnpt ions
. of th are Brahminical anda4g no t Buddhist.... las, and individ-
P-a as are redolentofaspiritofd
:: -: n ;;:::;.Br hmin kal d eitie: In Bengal the Kh as, the Chandras, and the Pafol ers ofBud
mdu nnagery and religious concets No composer
. , a and Ranavailkamalla were aQalow
Lokanatha, Da
d th very lang uag e of the ys a sau rau ual rulers like Kantidev a,
on
nk
with a and the
.1 m the service gu pta , Sasa mm pa!
Saivas . The
of a Buddhist king would cull h' Simes almost exclusively from dhism . Va inya
y
sena and ValHilasena were
earl Sen a rul ers lik e Vijaya re iQavas.17
Va
Brahminical legendsunlessithad een . accepted forms ofliter ary Varman s, the later Senaed kings and the Deva familys we l l 99 in the
expression of the Buddht"sts aIso at thts time an d hence I. t caused in AD
the Muhammedan
When Bengal was invad , Bubyddhism then took its shelter in Chitta
th em no offence .. .. "H
hve had any patronage from the . he Buddhist mstltutwns soon ofBauddha-Gama-Cakravarthere is a reference to a Parama-Saugata
disappeared for want of 1r:l :PJ?Ort and os which lingered on the Pancaraa of AD_ 1 289 in his Nyaya-Karuiali refers to the P;u:tQU
did not appear to have g mved the mvaswn of Muhammad ruler Madhusena.28 Sridhara e to maintain its existence even in the
"16Thus d ue towantofpr
.
Bakhtyar er pa?'onage Buddhism lost its Bhiimi vihara wh-nich was ablaccounts ofTaranatha and Sumpa it is
Importance and glory and duafY dechned from this remon of 14th century AD From the nce of his pious wife, a Bengali king
India during the sena penod . p C Bageh'I gi.Ves some gener
:-
al known that under the inflduein AD 1448, accepted Buddhism as his
features of the religious ffi B enal as whole . He says, named Caglaraja, who die l Buddhistbuildings at Gaya.:lO Taranatha' s
"Th e
testimony of Hiuen-tsan ;:e:nly dtrect eVlence that we possess, religion and repaired severa went to Khasarp;u:ta temple in Bu ntavara
leaves no doubt that theiuddhis d t? Jai?as were far outn um Tantric guru Buddhagupta31Pui}Qravardhana) .32 He then visited Tip-
bered by the followers ofBraltmic:O1 relipon m the 7th century AD (which was most probably
Save for the gradual decline of the Jamas, the state of things
370
The Rise and Decline ofBudd
India
htsm m
.
;
perah, "where there was Kasara
nga." From there , h .
Devi
. ko ta e arnve d
. an d rest'd e d there for several days
in a t . in
built by Krf)aciirya. This indi le htch
cates that the places :f Was
gn
the fllowers of Tantric Bud
dhism managed to sum. ages for
even m the 1 6th century AD. ve In B e
ngal
R.C. Mitr a from the Census
Report of 193 1 sa s th
anyhow survived in Bengal and . t B u dhis Chapter 1 3
m anag ed to mainYtaIn m
fure. practlcally, It never disappeared . n ee
from this f
0
an er confined to the
ts were reckoned at
northern districts of Da
o
-5 ; Causes o f the Decline of Buddhism i n India
'eeli g , n d
Jalpaig n and the sou -eas tern districts of Chittagon
IJand
gn H t l tracts. Buddhtsm
in Bengal is lacking in spo
tane
It
>ngma1 orce and con form It is known from the records of some prominent scholars that
ing in the n orth to Lamaisti
m the south-east it bears increasi c forms' wh ile Bu ddhism began to decline in India from the seven th century AD.1
ng resemblance to the
model. "M B unn ese P.C. Bagchi says that the "decline of Buddhism 'commenced from
the th century AD and the internal degeneration in the faith became
manifest from the 7th century AD' . R.C. Mitra also refers to it. He
"2
tries to trace the decline of Buddhism in India from the 7th cen tury
AD on the basis of the testimony of the Chinese travellers.5 In this
REFERENCES
O.
connection we give here accounts of Fa-hien (AD 399-414) , Song-yun
;"Ibid, I.
2MN. II, I
Ibid.
OJ; BCAI, 56; PHAI, 1 1 9-20. (AD 518), Hiuen-tsang (AD 629-45) and 1-tsing (AD 671-95) which are
no doubt important for a study of Buddhism in different parts of
'Ibid.
.; Watters, II, 679; Hwui Li 1 00_10
1.
"HB, I, 4 i 6; BCAJ, 202. India.
"Ibid., 52.
'DB/, 18.
'"HB, I, 416-1 7; BCAI, 202-3. Fa-hien, who visited India in the f1fth century AD, saw the flourish
'' JJCAI, 203
11 BCAI, 203.
ing condition of Buddhism in many places oflndia. But he felt sorry
12HB, I, 419.
. 14 DB!, 53-55.
"Ibid., 78.
for the condition of Buddhism in Kanauj, Kapilavastu, Ramagama,
"HB I 418
..DBl B3
''Ibid 425-26.
t
18BCAI, 204.
Vaisali and Gaya. Kanauj had only two Hinayana monasteries.4 Fa
.
2'DBI, 83. .
"'Ibid.; IH 1933 , 288.
22Ibid.
hien found at Kapilavastu " ' no king nor people' and it was 'like a
20Ibid.
:
2<Jbid. 2>Jbid .
wilderness except for priests and some tens of families'. '!> There was
116Ibid.
Ibid. ,.,Ibid.; CSA!A SB, I, 1 1 7.
Dl,. 84 only one monastery at Ramagama,6 and Vaisali had one monastery of
'El DB/, 84; BSIH, 58.
,.Ibid "Ibid.; IH 1931 , 684.
"Ibid.; CSR, 1931 , IV, 404.
"'DB!, 84.
the 'Great Forest' .7 The Chinese traveller saw ruinous condition of
the city of Sravasti.8
Song-yun and Tao-sheng, who came to India in the first half of the
sixth century AD found many temples in Kanauj but in them they did
not see any monk or nun.9 Though Kanauj was a great centre of
Buddhism in Hara's time, many Brahmins and Deva-worshippers
also used to live there. It had viharas, but the temples were more in
nu mber than the viharas.10
Hiuen-tsang mentions that the city of Vaisali was not in ruinous
!>tate in his time. He found here several hundred Buddhist establish
ments. He describes further that except three or four, they were
deserted and there were not many monks. But thiscity in his time had
many Hindu-temples and several Hindu sects took their growth here
and th ere and DigambaraJainism also developed flrmly. 1 1
eauses of the Decline of Buddhism in India 373
372 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism tn
. 1 .
ndza
prayaga had only 2 monasteries but there were 1 00 Deva-temples.32
tant centre o Buddhism. It had 1 ,400 monasteries an or Kausambi
Udyana (Uddiyana) in Swat in north-western India was
temples and about 1 0,000 Saivas used to live thee.36 The above facts
th ere at that tJ..me. 14 From H"men-tsang s account we learn that "the throw considerable light on the decay ofBuddhtsm and, at the same
decay was most pronounced in the north-east and south. "I time, they indicate the rapid but steady progress ofHinduism and the
Takila, SiJ!lhapura and Urasa were great centres of Buddhism development of Hindu sects in different parts of India. Fa-bien's
and ere were many monasteries. But in Hiuen-tsang' s time they record reminds us that the decline of Buddhism had begun at an
.
were m rmserable state.16 "In Taksila the monasteries were n umer-
B';!ddhtsm . not flourish in all parts of Kashmi earlier date. The accounts of Hiuen-tsang and I-tsing show us the
us
? . b u d eso late. "17 dtd r pathetic picture of uddhism in th seventh ce tury AD. ey suggest
m hts ume. He desc';"lbes: "At the present time this kingdom is not
much gtven_ to the Fatth and the temples of the heretics are their so1e that neither Buddhtsm was a promti ent ftgure m the rehgtous world
thug ht."18 . "In Kashrmr . th people followed a mixed faith."l9 c. ofseveral parts oflndia nor itwas able to capture the hearts ofpeople
" . to follow and to accept its teachings at that time. Practically, it had lost
Elhot entions: I Kash Buddhtsm soon became corrupt and its influence on people.
.
accodmg to the ;atara g"_!!L the monks began to marry as early as Magadha gives us a different picture ofBuddhism. Here it still was
th stxth centu. King Lahtadttya (AD 733-69) is credited with having
bu.ll mostenes as well as templs to the sun, bu this successors were
able to occupy a prominent place as the most important religion of
SalVltes. About 1 0,000 Buddhtsts used to live in Sind and there
Magadha. This was possible only due to the Nalandamahavihara,
which was still regarded as "the greatest and the best equipped inter
were monasteries which were hundreds in number. But Hiuen-tsang national centre of Buddhistic culture. "YI C. Elliot says, "The date of
says at these Budhists were " 'worthless person', 'as a rule, they its foundation is unknown but a great temple (though apparently not
were dolent and .gtven to i dulgence and debauchery' . "21 C. Elliot the first) was built about AD 485."38 Fa-hien refers to a village called
says, o doubt thts desolauon was largely due to the depredations Nala but he does not mention it as a seat of learning. M From it we
.
of Mthtragula. "22 Hiuen-tsang's account shows that Buddhism did
conclude that the University was not established at that time or it did
not prosper in Sind. He indicates that the activities of the Buddhist not occupy a prominent place as a seat of Buddhist learning. Hiuen
monks did not help to the growth and development of Buddhism in tsang says that it had six monasteries which was built by various kings
Sind. But it is o from records that even after the Arab con quest and it was surrounded by an enclosing wall and had one gate. 40 Here
Buddh. sm mamtamed its position in Sind. It seems that though people were followers ofMahayana Buddhism. It had 50 monasteries
Budd sm was there but it did not occupy a very prominent place. and about 1 0,000 monks used to live there.41 l-tsing42 in his record
Sthanesvara_ had only three monasteries but there were several mentions about non-religious activities of the Buddhist monks and
hundred Deva-temples.23 Fa-hien saw about 20 monasteries in Mathura nuns in rnany places of India. He criticises them for their laxity in
and about 3,000 monks used to live in them.24 But Hiuen-tsang refers moral discipline. But, on the other hand, he praises the monks at
to 2,000 onks in his time in his account.:!!! Srughna had only five Magadha and in Bengal for their well-controlled manners. He says
monastees but there were 1 00 Deva-temples.26 Matipura had 1 0 that the establishment of Magadha owned 200 villages and had 8
monastenes but Deva-temples were 50 in number.27 There were 5
monasteries in rahmapura but it had also 1 0 Deva-temples. 28 Govi a
halls with more than 3,000 monks.43
had I_IIOnstenes and 30 Deva-temples.29 In Ahicchatra and Kapi tha
Now we turn to Bengal. Tamralipti (Tamralipta, Tamluk) in
- Bengal was an important centre ofBuddhism. In Fa-hien's time this
the Satva-Pasupatas were more in number than the Buddhists .!IO In place had 24 monasteries.44 But Hiuen-tsang in his record mentions
Ayamukha there were five monasteries but it had 1 0 Deva-templ es.31
374 The Rise and Decline of Buddhism in causes of the Decline ofBuddhism in India 375
India
used to live there.56 C. Elliot says, "I-tsing frankly deplores the decay Thus the above accounts remind us of the decadence of Bud
of the faith which he had witnessed in his own life (i.e., about AD 650- dhism in the 7th century AD. 1-tsing even says that "the teaching of the
'062
700) but his travels in India were of relatively small extent and he Buddha is becoming less prevalent in the world from day to day.
gives less local information than previous pilgrims. Hiuen-tsang "When I compare what I have witnessed in myyounge r days and what
describing India in AD 629-45 is unwilling to admit the decay but his I see today in my old age, the state is altogether different and ":e a:e
truthful narrative lets it be seen. It is only of Bengal and the present bearing witness to rhis and it is hoped we shall be more attentive m
United Provinces that he can be said to give a favourable account, . future. "63 It is to be noted here that "though he speaks regretfully of
and the prosperity ofBuddhism there was largely due to the personal lax or incorrect discipline, he does not complain of the corruption
influence ofHacyt.57 In central and southern India, he tells us of little of the faith by Tantrism and magical practices.'>M
but deserted monasteries. It is clear that Buddhism was dying out bu t Here we can mention some of the prophecies and legends
it is not so clear that it had ever been the real religion of this regio relating to "the life-span of the Doctrine ofBuddha. "65 These prophe
In many parts it did not conquer the population but so to spe_ak bmlt cie s and legends have no connection with historic facts. They are
fortresses and left garrisons. lt is probable that Buddhism ofAndhra, more or less imaginary tales. Even then, they indicate that the decay
Kalinga and the South was represented by little more than such of the Doctrine of the Buddha began from about the fifth century
outposts. They included Amaravafi, where portions of the ruins seem after Nirvana. The Pali canon records a prophecy, which is said to
assignable to about AD 150, and Ajanta, where some of the cave have been ade by the Buddha. According to it, the Buddha himself
paintings are thought to be as late as the sixth century. But ofneither has prophesied that the length of the Doctrine would be shortened
376 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism .
eauses of the Decline of Buddhism in India
zn India 377
ous condition and in a healthy state when the Chinese pilgrims were
Ru-ston ' s Ch 'oshbyun refers to this tradition.69 The text, 'the s-
utra
, . touring. I t is equally undeniable, however, that on the whole, in most
of the Gratude
. of Buddha descnbes: "the prophecy therein lays
. places of India, Buddhism was losing its hold on people before the
down that If the Lc;>rd prmits that wo en enter his congregation,
. exapanding and evergrowing tide ofHinduisrn, while in South India
the Highest Doctnne will cease to exist 500 years earlier (tha i t
would otherwise) . "'0 Another text, that Bhadrakalpikasutra menti n Jainisrn was gaining the upper hand. Thousands of monasteries
that "th real Doctrine is to exist for 500 years and the next 500 year : throughout the length and breadth oflndia had been deserted and
dilapidated before the seventh century was out. The various legends
there will be only a resemblance of it "'1 The Riistrapiila Parip,.cchiir
p
sutra a work of the sixth century AD, refers to the B;.ddha's pro hecy and prophecies concerning decline of Buddhism seem to suggest
that the declining tendencies had been in progress from about the
relatmg to the decay of Buddhism. 72
fifth centuries after Nirvana. "84The facts mentioned above will serve
Hsin-hsing (AD 540-94) , who is regarded as the founder of the
as background of this chpter which deals with the causes of the
"Third Degree Sect" in Japan, has made a prediction that the religion
d ecline of Buddhism in India.
o tJ:e Buddh would disappear after 1 000 years of the Buddha's
There were several factors which were responsible for the decay of
Nirval)a and his followers would lead a life contrary to the doctrin e
Buddhism in India:
of the Buddha.7'
Hiuen-tsang in his account mentions a number oflegends "which
were current in India in the 7th century. AD. "'4 He heard these legends
1. Laxity in Monastic Discipline and Improper Conduct ofMonks and Nuns
Hiuen-tsang in his record mentions about the behaviour of the
om the local people. He gives an account of the Buddha's predic
Buddhist monks and nuns. This is no doubt an important cause for
tion about Kal)ika's stiipa. ?S His prophecy is that "when this tope had
the growth and progress of Buddhism. But the Chinese traveller in
been seven times burned and seven times rebuilt, his religion would
his account says that the moral conduct of the monks and nuns was
come to an end. "76 Hiuen-tsang knew that the tope had already been
very low in several places of India. He describes further that the
burned down four times77 and he understood that soon the religion
Buddhist monks who belonged to Bolor or Balti (modern Little
would come to an end what the Buddha had predicted. Hiuen-tsang
Tibe t) did not behave properly and "they were without any definite
then mentions that with the disappearance ofBuddhism the images
leaming."85 He then says about the Sammitiya monks of Sind.86 He
ofAvalokitesvara would be disappeared. This he heard at Bodh Gaya.
states, "They were indolent, worthless persons given to debauchery.
He describes: "An image at the south comer had already disappeared
Though they wore the monastic dress yet killed animals, reared cattle
upto the breast "7B Then he in his account writes that he had a dream
an d maintained wives and children. "ffl
at Nalanda. He narrates: ". . . soon after the death of Siladitya
Ha;-udhana the doctrine of Buddha would be visited by a terri c Kalhal)a, the famous historian of Kashmir, was the author of the
He writes that king Meghavahana's (AD 600) queen
Riijatarangi'f}i.
calamity and the great halls of Nalanda would be deserted, Its
was Yiikadevi,88 who was a pious lady. Under her patronage a vihara
glorious chambers turned into the dwelling of the water-buffaloes
was built. That vihara had two parts, "one halfwas allotted to regular
and that a devastating fire would reduce to ashes all its strllctures and
monks of good conduct and the other half to those who had wives,
towns around it. "79 The Muslim records80 and ardlaeologi cal excava
sons and property and were thus blameworthy. "89
378 The Rise and Decline of Causes
Buddhzs. m l. of the Decline of Buddhism in India 379
n /'ftdia
I-tsing in his account refers to
Bhartrhari oo 'Tho Buddhism. 1-tsing mentions that in his time there were many mon
Buddhist and no mean scholar, Bhartrh
ari became a evou
n ti?mes
t asteries where not only greedy but selfish monks used to live there. 1 10
monk and returned as many times
. to the life ofa househ
older "91 .,...,_
a They led a life which was totally ainst the d:>ctrine and disciple
ne
Ch"mese pilgnm says further that ther
e were many monks of the Buddhist Sa'J!lgha. They "d1d not admit a stranger to reside
wh o were morally backward than m his ; ...
Bhartrh ari .92 me there. Thus those who come from any quarter are induced by these
The Miilatimiidhava, a work ofBhav .
abhiiti refiers to nam monasteries themselves to lead the unlawful life . "Ill 1-tsing states that
a Bh"k 1 kh UJ)I (nu n) who IS engaged an daki 95
in In dia many monasteries used to maintain com-fields, bulls and
' v :::-
in bringing about
-
.
u
"the Buddhi.st n uns Bu-ston writes from the Chandragarbhaparifrrcchii-siitra that "1 ,300
the 'gbetweens an d a B uddhist wom . ' are
ert
an IS depicted as an exp years after the death of Lord (i.e. in about AD 800) the monks shall
.
atheistic group which was formed given to theft, pillage, tending of meadows and cultivation of lands.
by the Buddhists the Jam as and
- t- (or the S.rng
others. 98 Th e Caturbha1J - . iirah ' They shall be greedy and shall grab large quantity of cattl, good
. tten . ii{a) which was probably clothes and fme vases . . . kings also will no longer perform their royal
m e seve nth and eighth centurie
i
s AD, describes that the duties. "115 The Rii!rapiilaparifrrcchiisutra describes: " . . . monks will be
pnnces, Brahma poets, learned
? grammarians and the Buddhist without shame and without virtue, haughty, puffed up and wrathful
mnks ued to VISit the houses of
. _ courtesans.99 In it we find that . . . intoxicating themselves with alcoholic drinks. While they beer the
San hadasika , a Buddhist nun , is a procuress. 100 In
gettmg consolati. on from a degraded one place she is banner of the Buddha, they will only be serving the householders. "116
Buddhist monk with Buddha The text mentions further that "they will have cattle, slaves, and will
words.101 In this work we fmd that mon
ks and nuns are playing the indulge in agriculture and trade; they will be devoid of moral
roles of frrthamarda and frrthamardikii. 1
02 Kshemendra's Narmo,.M . iilii conduct, deceitful and possessed ofwives, sons and daughters. They
which was written in the eleve nth cent
ury AD speaks of a "a Buddhist will be indisciplined and uncontrolled in eating and sex-play; devoid
nun who acts as the traditional go-b
etween 3
written in th first part of the 1 2th ."10 The Lataka-Melaka ofeducation and honour, they will live without Pratimo rules, and
century AD by Kaviraja as unrestrained as elephants without elephant-goad. "117 Wintemitz
Sankhadhara. It giVes an account
of Vyasenakara the Buddhist admits that " 'it must necessarily reflect actual facts' of the sixth
mo who is "making advances to
a wash
tamliisaJn:ahasana, which was written by er worn. "104 The Mat century AD . "118
Mahendravarman I, the The above discussion shows that lack of moral diSCipline m the
allvaking ( c. AD 600-30) , refers to the Buddhist
monk's indulgence Sa'J!lgha is no doubt one of the causes for the decay of Buddhism in
m wme and women. 105 This work descr
ibes further that the Buddhist India. It is known from a numberofliterary works ofthe seventh and
monk for t e jus?fication of his activ
!.t ities quot
Bhagavadfl)Juam IS anot er work which depi es scriptures. 106 The eighth centuries AD that the Buddhist monks and nuns showed their
cts a picture of the life
of the Budhist monks l_lm the Budd keen in terest in non-religious affairs. They took active part in politi
. hist Sa'J!lgha. Its commen tator cal, military, matrimonial and social affairs of the times. The records
thmks that It was Bodhayana's work
.107 But some scholars refer to ofthe early Arab invasions oflndia refer to the activities of the monks
Mahendravarman I, the Pallava king
as its author. 108 It records that and nuns which are no doubt against the doctrine and discipline of
bggars and raup rs used tojoin the
. obJe : Budd hist Sa'J!lgha in those days the Buddhist Sa'J!lgha. One of the accounts mentions that during the
With the mam ct of getting free food, accommodation an d of
.
leadmg a happy and comfortab time of invasion of Brahmal)abad by Caca, a "samani " (srama7Ja)
le life. 109 Due to their admission named Buddha-Raku (Buddha-rakita) , who, was a married person
and was an expert in magic, was able to exercise a great influence
Buddhism lost its popularity and ultim
ately that led to the decay of
38 0 The Rise and Dedine ofBudd .
hism m 1ndz. Causes of the Decline ofBuddhism in India 38 1
a
upon the life of the king ofSind. 119
m the o1Itic
. This monk even to0k a .
al and milry affairs of the king. The ctive p The accounts of the Chinese pilgrims are important for a study of
chaka n
disputes among the followers canon belongs. It was predominant in southern India and Ceylon
ofnumerous factious schools were imp
ortant factors which no doubt and was also found in eastern Bengal.
weake ed the B ddhist Sa1(tgha but
. _u also brought the decline of c. The Arya-Miila-Sarvastivada-Nikaya \\'ith four subdivisions.
Buddtusm m lndta. R. C. Mitra says, "An
other cause suggested for the Almost all belonged to this school in northern India and it was
gradu.a nfeebleent and ultimate
downfall of Buddhism is inter flourishing in Magadha.
nal diVISion leadmg to its splitting
up into numerous factious d. The Arya-Sammitiya-Nikaya with four subdivisions flourished
schools. "121.The Buddha himself und
the Buddhtst Sa1[tgha. That is why this
erstood the danger ofschism in in Lata and Sindhu. Thus the last three schools were preponderant
five deadly sins.122 For it "the offende
was denounced as one of the in sothern, northern and western India respectively. All were
r was to suffer a whole kalpa in followed in Magadha, no doubt because the holy places and the
hell. "123 From the Buddhist texts it is
the Buddha, schism occurred .124 Fa-b
known that even in.th e time of University of Nalanda attracted all shades of opinon, and Bengal
ien' s record mentions that a seems to have been similarly catholic. This substantially the same as
monastery in Patalipu was closed dow
n for 1 0years.125 Because this Hiuen-tsang's statement except that 1-tsing takes a moe favo';lrable
onsterywas defeated m deba.te with heretics. After the Mah view of the position of the Sarvastivada, either because Itwas hts own
mbbana of the Buddha dtssensiOn aros apari
There was no supreme leader to give
e in the Buddhist Sa1(tgha. school or because its position had really improved. "1 He describes
mon and the Sa1(tgha. As a result the mon
guidance to the Buddhist further that some ofthese schools took keen interest in the Mahayana.
ks did whatever they liked. Apart from their own doctrine they also studied the Mahayana systm
Thy mterpretd the Bu dha 's wor
ds according to their own con of thought. But 1-tsing says that their doctri es "do no accod With
emnce. The mterpretations of the Buddha's teaching
m dterent ways and there was no s ook place one another. "131 He mentions further that they rest m their own
desc?bes, "Buddhism now is pure or
purity in them. Hiuen-tsang places, and do not get themselves embroiled WI" th one nother. "13. 2
tual mstght and mental capacity of its
diluted according to the spiri Hiuen-tsang and 1-tsing in their records mention that m
adherents. The tenets of the Karnasuvarna there were followers of the Buddha's cousin, De
schools keep these isolated, and cont
roversy runs high heresies on vadtta, wh brought the first schism in the Buddhist Sa'f(tgha. 133 The
to the same end. Each of the
secial doctrine s lead many ways
etghteen schools claims to have inte Chinese travellers write that in Kari_lasurvari_la there were three
llectual superiority, and the monasteries where the Buddhist monks, who were known as
tnets <.or practices) of the Great and
Small Systems (lit vehicles) Devadatta's followers, used to live. Hiuen-tsang says that in Sind
hffer Widely : and many are the noisy discussions. Whe
rever there there were many monks, who belonged to the Sammitiya school of
(its own ) rules of gradation. "126
IS a commumty of brethern it makes
the Hinayana system. They "were reviling the Mahayana. "1,. He
382 The Rise and Dedine of Buddhism in India Causes of the Decline of Buddhism in India 383
, m Its. later
ties. It was because of this, lay people did not find any differen ce Mahayana Buddhism. t is known that Tantnc Buddhisi? .
lire of magi c, eroti cs and a crust of mom snc phlloso-
stage, was a mixt
in India 385
eauses of the Decline ofBuddhism
384 The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in India
there was no place for the Five Moral
Nirvar:ta.164 In the Vajrayana
sacraments took the place of the
phy. We see that what a great change the Buddha's religion under- p cepts. Pancamakaras and five
laid empha_sis on the ideal f
went later on. Many vulgar practices and popular imagination Were :
F e Moral precepts.l65 The
Vajra yana
h could be attamed "by a mysc
ad mitte
d mto B uddh"Ism. Th e mtroduction and the developmen t of Great Delight (Mahasukha) whic
th ese "Ideas not on1y affected the organisation but also the discipr e Vajrayana brought a great hange m
union with the yogini. "166 The
of the Sarp,gha very badly. They thoroughly changed the doc s the domain of both doctrine
and practice of early Buddhism. L.M.
and intuitionalism o early B_ud
and practices of early Buddhism. La Vallee Poussin thinks that "this Joshi remarks, "The rationalis _
ous sorcery and erotic esotensm
modernised form of the sasana compromised the existence of th dhism disappears and a superstiti
Buddhism condemned attachment
community, "155 and according to S. Levi, "this tenden cy mos come to the foreground. Early
Vajrayana regar ed it the supreejoy. In
short,
dangerous as it affected the organisation of the Sarp,gha and revolu as the fiercest fire,
hist ethic s, the spmt al el m :_nts
fundamental principles of Budd
_
tionised its doctrine. "156 R.C. Mitra also says that "it undermined th m VaJr ayan a
ed
cohesion and in tegrity of the Buddhist community in India and wae
ely ns form
ts, are entir
a contri utory caue of its decline."157 We are told that during th ;
conducive to Enlighten men
"The spmt of Bud ? ha had een
mysticism. "167 R.C. Mitra also says,
_ a p nod Buddhism turned towards Tantrism. From this type of
Pa.I smot here d unde r the dead weig ht of metaph_Ys!cl sphistry,
long
Bud him appeaed the Mantrayana. Then arose the Vajrayana, crass idolatory and rank superstiti ons. "168 The Mahayams m or er
es acepte d practics which
Sahajayana and Kalacakrayana from the Man trayana. This no doubt to popularise Buddhism for larger mass
uce m early Buddhism. Not
weakned the original impulse of Buddhism. As a result we see that the Buddha never allowed them to introd
elem ents in uddhism but
Buddhism lost its popularity and Brahmanism prospered. only the introduction of the Hinduistic
yana help ed to corru pt the Ideals of early
Then _we see the idea of the doctrine of co-efficiency of female also the abuses of the Vajra _
red a great decline.
element m the Tantra. A Vajrayana text describes "ragacarya kulapu Buddhism and, that is why, Bu.ddhism suffe
tra yadut bodhisattvacarya."158 The Buddhist monk along with a
by some Philosophers of
female partner went to his teacher.159 In Tantric Buddhism there 4. Brahmanical Hostility and Fierce Campaigns
were 84 Siddhas who "were either married or had espoused yoginis. "160 Brahmanical Thought
hism was one of the
Gradually, the Hinduistic elements became very prominent and The Brahmanical hostility towards Budd
. I t is quite true that at
assumed increasing importance in Buddhism. These elements and causes of the decadence of Buddhism in India
Budd ha as one of the avatarasbut
te dencies in rituals and worship had a very bad effect upon Bud a later date the Brah mins accepted followers of the
their frien dly attitu de towa rds the
dhism. They not only weakened the original impulse of Buddhism theynever showed
ed their hosti lity twards
but sounded its death-knell. R.C. Mitra says, "The increasing mani religion of the Buddha. They always show the time of
rds that even from
festa:m of Hinduistic tendencies in rituals and worship is an them. It is known from different reco r hostility
Hind us show ed their bitte
unfadmg symptom of the weakening of the original impluse of the Buddha the orthodox
Buddhism."161 L.M . Joshi also remarks, "The increasing Hinduistic towards him and his religion.
a's unfriendly beha-
ifestations in the plurality of divinities, worship, ritualism and The Khuddakanikii:ya refers to KaSi Bharadvaj
It also says that Aggika Bharadvaja
litany had already considerably weakened the original impulse and viour towards the Buddha.169 0 The Sarp,yuttanikaya men
pristine purity ofBuddhism."162 The introduction ofTantric ideas in described the Buddha as an 'outc aste' .17
Brahmins who gave a
tions that there was none in the village of the
in the nikiiya
Buddhism brought the decay of the religion of the Buddha. Owing
to these ideas, Buddhism came very close to Hinduism. There was not grain offood to the Buddha.171 There is a refer ence
to salut e the Buddha m pub
much difference between Buddhist Tantras and Sivaite and Sakta to Brahmana Sonadanda's hesitation
of hum iliation from his own comunity.
lic.l72 Becase he s afraid
led b
Tantras. Hindu and Buddhist Tantrists regarded the Sakta pi!has as
a was
equally holy places. There were many gods and goddesses who The Dhammapadathakatha describes that Moggalan arr:ti
Gaut amip utra satak
"became common to the pantheons of Hinduism and Buddhism. "163 heretics or Brahminical followers.175 King him
The king alwa ys descr ibed
The Vajrayana texts throw light on the Vajrayana doctrine and adopted an anti-Buddhist measure.
only "crushed the
practice which were quite different from the tenets of early Bud selfas 'unique Brahmana' ' eka bamhana'. He not
the mixing of caste s. "74
dhism. The Vajrayana says that liberty can be attained here and now pride of the triyas, but also "stopped
in this life through the help of the Sarp.sara which is regarded as
The Rise and Decline ofBuddhism in India
386 Causes of the Decline of Buddhism in India !87
Huntsang in his account writes that a Satavahana king kill South India. Kumari}a Bhatta was regarded as "the fiercest critic of
. ' ed Buddhism. "196 He "was the strongest protagonist of Vedic ritualism,
Nagal)una, the phtlosopher.175 This Satavahana king has been 1den
tifiIed WI'th king Gautamiputra Satakarl)i, the 'eka bamhana ' by L M Brahminical theology and priestly superiority. "197 C. Elliot states:
"fhe revolution in Hinduism which defmitely defeated, though it
Joshi.176 The Baudhayana Dharmasutra177 describes that an asur a
(demon) who had no good terms with the gods introduced th did not annihilate, Buddhism is generally connected with the names
asrama called pravrajyii (ascetic ordination) . L.M. Joshi states tha
most probably "the gods" here were the priestly orthodox Brahmin s
of Kumari}a Bhatta ( c. 750) and Sankara ( c. 800.... Kumari}a is said
to have been a Brahma1,1a of Bihar who abjured Buddhism for Hin
who always regarded themselves a bhUdevas, "gods on earth ".178 They' duism and raged with the ardour of a proselyte against his ancient
always showed their bitter hostility towards the Buddha and h' faith. Tradition represents him as intigating king Sudhanvan to ex
followers. In the Ayodhyaka1,1c;la of the Riimiiyatta the Buddha :
referre to as an atheist.179 Ycijiiavalkya says that the very sight of a
terminate the Buddhists.... "198 The Slokaviirltika throws light on his
hostile attitude towards Buddhism.199 In this work he showed the
monk With yellow robes, even in dream, is a bad sign and it is bette excellences of the Vedic rites and refuted the doctrines of the
to avoi him in any way.180 The Brhanniiradiyapuriitta describes that
Brahmm commits a principal (or great) sin if he enters the house of
Buddha. We are told that Kumari}a Bhaga played a prominent role
for the extermination of the Buddhists. Sudhanvan, the king of
a Buddhist even in ties of great danger.181 The Agnipuriitta says that Ujjail), acted according to his advice and e extenated _!hem.200
Suddhodana, s son, m order to become Buddhist, beguiled the The SaT[lkaradigrrijaya of Madhava and the SaT[lkaramJaya ofAnanda
demons.182 The author of the Viiyupuriitta refers to his contempt for giri refer to king Sudhanvan's extermination of the Buddhists at the
.
Buddhists. He states, "With white teet!I, eyes brought under control, instigation of Kumari}a Bhatta-201 Hiuen-tsang202 in his account rec
head shaved and red clothes, the Siidras will perform religious ords that during his visit to Ujjain he saw a king who was ruling there.
deeds. "18 The Vittupuriitta mentions the Buddha as a great se He was not a Buddhist. He was a Brahmin and was well-versed in
ducer.184 He is known as Mayamoha. He "appeared in the world to heterodox lore. The Mrcchakatika describes that the Buddhist monks
delude the demons, taught the doctrines of ahimsii and Nirvana and were harassed by a brofuer-in-iaw of the king of Ujjain.20 It says, "He
made people devoid of Vedic rites and religin. The folloers of beatwith blows a newly turned mendicant Sal!lvJhaka by name, and
Mayamoha were ?nally destroyed by the gods. "185 The Snmad Bhiigavat treated other bhikus as bullocks by passing a pose-string through
refers to Buddhism as an Upa-dharma.186 The drama Mrcchakatika their nose and yoking them to the cart. "204 The SaT[lkaradigrrijaya, the
describes that "the Buddhist monks were not held in honou in
Sa7[tkaravijaya, Hiuen-tsang's account and the Mrcchaka!ika refer to
Ujjaini. "187 It mentions that the very sight of the Buddhist monks is the harassment of the Buddhists by the Brahmins of Ujjain. These
inauspicious and should be avoided as far as possible.l88 Gando records indicate that the followers of the Buddha faced a stiff
padhyaya, the great logician, refers to Pracanda Pasandas as Bud opposition from the Brahmins in Ujjain. The Kerala-Utpattti, which
dhists in his book.189 Udayana's work was Bauddha-DhikMra. 190 Thus discusses the history ofKerala, gives an account ofKumari}a Bhatta's
the name suggests his hostile attitude towards Buddhism. The role for the extermination ofthe Buddhists from Kerala.205 R.C. Mitra
Caitanyodaya-Nii!aka (ch. VII) of Kari)apura mentions the Buddhists says, "The writings ofKumari}a, however, savour of no anti-Buddhist
of the South as piifatttJa or villains.191 There are references to the frenzy. On the other hand, he regards the Buddhist system of
Buddhists as Pac;las in the Caitanya-caritiimrta. 1B2 It records that the thought as authoritative, because it derives its inspiration from the
Buddhists, the Mlecchas, the Savaras etc. belnged to the same class. Upanid, and he further allows it the merit of having curbed
Bu-st<:'n writes that the heretics of other schools became happy to extreme attachment to sensuous objects. "206 But the above facts show
examme Dharmakirtti's logical works.19 They were fully satisfied. that it was due to the fierce campaign of Kumari}a, Buddhism
But, even then, they "fastened his treatises to the tail of a dog and suffered and lost its popularity. Gopinatha Kaviraja says, "Kumari}a
drove the animal in order to destroy them".194 In order to refute the was one of the most potent forces actively employed in bringing
doctrines ?f Diimaga, the Buddhist logician, Uddyotakara, th e abQut this decline.
famous philosopher of Brahminical thought, wrote his book.195 Sal!lkaracarya or Skara was a Brahmin of the south. He did a
Buddhism suffered a great decline owing to the hostile activiti es great job for the glorification of the Vedas and Vedantas. He was
of some philosophers of Brahminical thought and preachers of against Buddhism. He built his Sp1geri ma!ha on the exact site of a
Indi a eauses of the Decline of Buddhism in India
388 The Rise and Decline ofBudhd ism in 389
7. The Muslim Persecution very important among the accessory causes. The available records
other caus for e decline of Buddhism in India was
the
contain clearer statements about the persecution ofJainisrn than of
Mushrn persecutiOn. It IS generally believed that Buddhism suffie Buddhism but no doubt the latter carne in for some rough handling,
, , d though not enough to annihilate a vigorous sect. Great numbers of
very rnuch due to the conquests of the Muslim invadel'S who had
no monasteries in the north were demolished by the Hiias and a
faith for other religions. V. Smith says that "the Muslims were th
e similar catastrophe brought about the collapse of the church in
greatest relig10us
. precutors. " Wherever they went they kille d
followers of other rehgwns and destroyed their establishmen ts. It Bihar. But the last incident cannot be called religious persecution,
known from historical records that towards the end of the eleven
century AD Kutub-ud-Din's general Ikhtiyar-ud-Din Muhammad wh
for Muhammad did not even know what he was destroying. Bud
dhism did not arouse more animosity than other Indian religions;
was also known as Muhammad Bakhtyar with two hundred soldie the significant feature is thatwhen its temples and monasteries were
demolished it did not live on in the hearts of the people, as did
ttacked the Odantapurl monastery in Bihar which was the n an
rmortant centre ofB uddis. He not only captured it without any Hinduism with all its faults. "258
_
resistance but also killed Its mrnates. R.C. Mitra describes: "The
monasteries had been the nerve centres ofBuddhisrn, and with their 8. Decline in the Patronage of the Ruling Powers and Nobility
collapse, communal life was unhinged and abruptly terminated. Some modern scholars always argue that the prosperity of a
Their very concen tration had made the monasteries easier targets of religion depends on the active support and patronage of the rulers,
attack than the Hmdu _ nobles and clans of the time. They think further that decline in the
temples and sacred places, which must have
Jilrovoked equal fury of the Moslems. "247 In this connection t:. Elliot royal patronage of Buddhism is the most important cause for the
descries that "the M arnrnedans had no special animus against disappearance ofBuddhism in India. It is true thatGautama Buddha
and his disciples achieved success in a great measure in their mission
ary activities by securing active support and patronage from different
Buddhism. They were Iconoclasts who saw merit in the destruction
ofimages and the slaughter of idolaters. But whereas Hinduism was
spread oer the country, Buddhism was concentrated in the great royal houses as well as ministers, noblemen, bankers and wealthy
rnoastenes and when these were destroyed there remained nothing citizens, with the result that this new faith gradually came to the
outside them capable of withstanding either the violence of the forefront and spread in different parts of India. N. Dutt observes:
Muslims or the assimilative influence of the Briihmanas. "248 We are
"Thus we see that Buddhism owed much of its expansion to Buddha's
told that Buddhism anyhow continued to rnaintian its precarious ability in securing sympathy and patronage of kings, nobles and
existence for a few centuries beyond in Bengal, Orissa and some clans, who in many cases had already been supporting other relig
other parts of the Deccan.249C.Elliot states, "Taranatha says that the ions. Though later in the field, Buddhism could supplant at times the
immediate result of the Moslim conquest was the dispersal of the other religions, ultimately monopolising the sympathy and support
surviving teachers ana this may explain the sporadic occurrences of of some of the magnates. " ASoka, Kaika, Harvardhana and the
late Buddhist inscriptions in other parts of India. "250 Taranatha Pala rulers played prominent roles for the progress ofBuddhism. In
rnentions thata kingwhose narnewas Cangalaraja, rebuiltthe ruined the history of Buddhism the place of the Maurya emperor ASoka may
Buddhist temples of Bengal in AD 1450.251 From his account we.also be ranked as second to that of sakyamuni, the founder of the
do not get a discouraging picture of Buddhism in the Deccan, religion. "A5oka did for the religion ofBuddha what Darius the Great
252 or Xerxes had done for that of the Avesta and St. Paul did for that of
Gujarat and Rajputana after Muharnrnedan conquest ofMagadha.
But he states that "the study of magic became more and more Christ. "259 Buddhism secured the imperial patronage ofASoka and it
prevalent.''25' From manuscripts preserved in Nepal we learn that was rnanly through his efforts the religion was raised form the
position of a local faith to the status of a world religion. The reign of
y Buddhist works were written by Bengali copyisn..the fifteenth
or SIXteenth century AD.254 Abhaya Raja, a Nepales,ft.sited Bodh Ka!)ika was an important period in the history of Buddhism. It can
Gaya in AD 1585.255 When he returned to his country, he,J,uilt in Patan said that it was the most inspiring period for the religion of
a rn nastery "imitated from what he had seen Jle". 256 The 5akyamuni and was an age ofgreat Buddhist activity. Next we tum to
Tashi Lama from Tibet sent an ernbassy to Bodh Gaya.257 C. Elliot de Havardhana, who came to the throne nearly six hundred years
scribes: "It is plain that persecution was not its main cause nor even after Kaika. It was through his strenuous efforts that Buddhism
Causes of the Decline of Buddhism in India 395
394 The Rise and Dedine ofBuddhism in India
last patrons of Buddhism, and with their death ended the royal
reached again the zenith of its glory during his rule. His zeal fo the
patronage ofBuddhism. I t is known that when the Arabs attacked the
cause of Buddhism was remarkable. Next we come to the Palas. !yh
Buddhists of Sind there was no ruler who came forward with his army
century that followed Har's rule saw a state of anarchy .;-.n favo to save them from the hands of the Muslim invaders.262 Similarly, we
able to the growth of a monastic religion like Buddhism, whi
depended so much on the patronage of the rulers. "i66 At that ti e
see, when Bakhtyar Khalji' s soldiers attacked and sacked the Nalanda
mahavihara,neither there was anyruler nor his soldiers came tohelp
to save and to protect the unarmed Buddhist monks and their sacred
Buddhism was anyhow maintaining its precarious existence
Kashr and !'l"
orth India only. But with the rise of the Pa place from the hands ofbarbarism.263 Mter the Palas, Buddhism, due
Budhism, hich ha fallen into decay since the death of Hacyt,
to want of its patron, lost its influence and popularity. Gradually, it
agan came mto the pi tur . The patronage of the Pala rulers gave a
turned more and more towards Brahminism and finally, it was
new rmpetus to Buddhism m north-easter India and "thus saved it
from e des nywhich overtook it in other parts oflndia. " Although
absorbed with Brahminism.
Bu dhism diSappeared from several regions of India, but Bengal
L.M. Joshi mentions that there was an allegation against the
Buddhists by a scholar. 264The latter says that the Buddhists adopted
dung the Pala period was its last resort The form of Buddhism that
Pali language as their official language and they hated Sanskrit. He
flounshed under the patronage of the Palas was Mahayana with
thinks that Buddhism suffered a great decline owing to the attitude
elements ofTan trism. C. Elliot observes: "Mter the epoch ofSankara
of the Buddhists. But his statement is totally wrong. He is keeping
(c. AD 800) , the history of lndian Buddhism is confined to the Pala
wrong ideas in his mind. It is tme that the Buddhists adopted Pali as
kingdom. Elsewhere we hear only of isolated grants to monasteries
their official language but they neither hated Sanskrit nor they
:m d simila acts o piety, often striking but hardly worthy of mention avoided it. From the second century BC onwards we see the develop
companson With the enormous number of Brahminic inscrip
. the Pala kingdom Buddhism, though corrupt, was ment of the Buddhist literary world with the help of Sanskrit lan
tions B_u t m
: guage. I t is said that "the history of Buddhist literature from c. 200
flounshmg so far as the mumber of its adherents and royal favour was
BC to c. AD 1200 is an essential an<;! important part of the growth of
co cern d .... But as a ruler the Palas, though they favoured Bud
. Sanskrit literature. "26!1 A.Svagho, Aryasiira, Bhartrhari and S3.ntideva
dhis , did not actively discourage Hinduism. They even gave grants
who were Buddhists, but they occupied permanent places in the
to Hmdu temples and their prime ministers were generally Brah
. world of Sanskrit lit.erature.266 Sanskritwas used to write the Abhidharma
mms who used to erect non-Buddhist images in Buddhist shrines.
texts, the Vinayas ofseveral schools, the Prajiiiipiiramitii.sutras and the
Th dynasty :ontinued through the eleventh century and in this
Mahayana sutras. 2117 Katyayaniputra, Nagarjuna, Kumaralabdha, Arya
penod some mformation as to the condition of Indian Buddhism is
aff< rded by the relations between Bengal and Tibet Mter the perse
deva, Maitreyanatha, Asanga, Harivarman, Vasubandhu, Mano
ratha, Sanghabhadra, Diimaga, Bhavya, Buddhapalita, Candrakirti,
cution of the tenth century Tibetan Buddhism was revived by the
_ Dharmakirti, 8antideva, Santaraita, KamalaSila, Dharmottara,
preachmg of monks from Bengal. Mahipala then occupied the
Haribhadra etc. wrote their philosophical treatises and commentar
throne (c. 978-1030) and during his reign various learned men
ies in Sanskrit This may throw light on the contribution of these
accepted invitations to Tibet More celebrated is the mission ofAtiSa,
scholars to the development of Sanskrit language and literature. We
a monk of the VikramaSila monastery, which took place about 1 038.
ut about the same time the power of the Pala dynasty and with it the
cannot imagine that the persons who hated Sanskrit devoted their
time and energy to the growth and progress ofSanskrit language and
mfluence of Buddhism, were curtailed by the establishment of the
literature. All their literary products were written in Sanskrit. Thus
rival Sena dynasty in the eastern provinces. Still, under Ramapala,
the allegation brought by that scholar against the Buddhists is not
who reigned about 1 100, the great teacher Abhayakara was an orna
based on solid ground.
ment of the Mahayana. Taranatha says that he corrected the text of
the scriptures and that in his time there were many Pandits and resi
dent in the monasteries of VikramaSila, Bodh Gaya and
Odantapuri. REFERENCES
There is thus every reason to suppose that in twelfth century
Buddhism still flourished in Bihar, that its clergy numbered several 1SBCJ, 302. 1SMS]V. III, 412. 'DBI, 2.
thousands and its learning was held in esteem. "26! The Palas were the
397
396 The Rise and Dedine ofBudhd ism in Causes of the Decline of Buddhism in India
India
4Giles, 29. 'Ibid., 36. 6SBCI, 40. ns Tatr.akusu, 306; CFL, 465; DB/, I39.
'Ibid., 41. &Jbid., 30. 9Ibid., 298. ""'akakusu, 307; CFL, 140; RPPPS, 1 37-38.
"'Watters, I, 340; Hwui Li, I 79-80. 11Watters, II, 63. "'Takakusu , 307; CFL, 137-38 .
12Ibid., 226. "HAB, II, IOO. "Watters, I, I99. 11Wfakakusu, 307; HILW. I I , 331 .
"HAB, II, I OO. 11"Takakusu, 307; HIH, I, 1 47.
'20Takakusu, 307; MCKA: VII-VI II.
"Watters, I, I40-56. 17HAB, II, IOO.
18Beal, I95. 12'DBI, 1 43-44.
10HAB, II, I OO. 20Ibid., 1 09.
2
122DBI, 1 44; SBCI, 308. 1 5DBI, I44; EM, I42.
: cv, 283 ff; 406 If; LB, 187 ff; Hwui Li,
"'Ibid., II, I OO; Watters, II, 252. 12HAB, II, 100.
25Watters, I, 3I4. "'Giles, 20. 211Watters, I, 301. I 76; Watte rs, I, 32, 3I3, 325; 11, 100, 252.
sBCI, 299. 126Ibid .; Watter s, I, I 62; SBCI, 308.
2'fbid. "'Ibid. DB!, 1 44.
vDB!, I 45; Legge, 62. l'/JlDB!, 145.
150HAB, II, 101-2.
29Ibid. ,.SBCI, 299. ''Ibid.
"'DB!, I45.
"Ibid. "Ibid. 54 Ibid. 129Jbid.
"Ibid., 299-300. "Watters, II, 47. 152Jbid.; Cavannese, 90-91.
308.
"'bid., II, 86 ff; Hwui Li, I05 ff; SBCI, 300. "'HAB, II, 105 sswatters, II, 191; Takakusu, 6-7; SBCI, 35,
'"Ibid., I 06. 40Ibid. "SBCI, 300. 154Watters, II, 258; SBCI, 308.
akakusu, 61. "HAB, II, I06. ..Giles, 65-66. "'Watters, II, 259; SBCI, 308.
..Watters, II, I90. Wfakakusu, 44, I 55. "Watters, II, I84. s<Watters, 308; Hwui, Li, 159, 165.
158Watters, 308.
48Ibid., II, I 87. 49Ibid., II, I91 . ""Watters, 308; BCV. IX, 15 ff.
"'Ibid., II, I 86; Hwui Li, I70-72. 51HAB, I I , IOO. ''"Watters, 308-9; TGTGP, 217 ff.
141Watters, 309.
"Ibid., II, IOO; Watters, II, I 36, I93, I96. "SBCI, 301. 140Watters, 309; TGTP, 21 7 ff.
tters, 309; HAB, II, 6.
''Ibid. "'DB!, I40. "'HAB, II, I OO. Ibid .; Takakusu, 14. '"Wa
,..Ibid. 146DBI, 154.
"'bid., II, I 08, fn I-"Even at Kanauj, the scene of Har's pious activities, there ,..Watters, 309.
were IOO Buddhist monasteries but 200 Deva-temples." 14'Ibid. ""Ibid .
'50DBI, 154.
'"Ibid., I08; MCI, 203. "'HAB, II, I08. "'SBCI, 301. ,..Ibid.; HMBIL, 102-3, I42, 1 86, I88-89.
61HAB, II, I OS-9. akakusu, 28; DB!, I41. 65HAB, Il, I03. "'Ibid. "2SBCI, 309.
"4SBCI, 309.
6%id., II, I03-4. '"Watters, II, 252; KTG, III, 1 2; HIH, I, I47.
'"DB!, 146; BEM, 160. "6DBI,
"'SBCI, 302. 66Ibid.
67CV, 376.
"'DB!, 147.
''"' GST, 37.
'"SBCI, 302. 611Ibid. 146; AEHE , I .
12SBCI, 303; RPPPS, I 36 If.
'""SBCI, 310.
"'Ibid. "Ibid.; BHB, II, I 02-3. ""SBCI, 31 0. 16SJbid.
75DBI, I40. 74SBCI, 303. 75I bid. 161DB1 155. sBC I, 310.
,..DPD, v. 90; HT, 1, 1 04; PPVS,
SBCI, 3IO.
HT, I , 65 ff. ]NS, 32 If.
23.
,..Ibid.; CVPR, vv. 6, 19, 33; GST, 26, I20;
"Ibid.; Watters, I , 204-5. 71SBCI, 303. "'Ibid., 304; Watters, II, 11 5.
160KN, I, 280.
19SBCI, 304; Hwui Li, I54-55. f!IJSBCI, 304; TNMM, 552.
"'SBCI, 304. 82Ibid. "'Watters, I , 37I-72. 167SBCI, 31 1 . 168DBI, I 58.
"'SN' I : Pindas utta. '72DN, I , 97.
84SBCI, 304. ""Watters, I, 240. ,,.Ib"d I 1 287.
,,.Watters, II , 20 I
.
174S/, I, I96-98.
86Watters, II, 252; Beal, 46I -62; SBCI, 305; DB, I41. mDPK, III, 65.
""Ibid.; RTG, III, I 2; DB!, I41. BYDS, II, 6, 30. ''"SBCI, 425, fn 80.
180YVS,
ffTSBCI, 305. "SBCI, 425, fn 80. 177
I, 271-72 .
llll BRP, XIV; DB!, I 37; SBCI, 3I I .
w.SBCI, 305; RTG, III, I 2; DB!, I41. 90SBCI, 305; Takakusu, I 79. '"'RY, 34, I 09.
91SBCI, 424, fn 47; Takakusu, I 79.
182AP, XVI, 1, 3; SBCI, 312.
18s VfP, LXXVIII, 58-59; SB CI, 312.
lllSBCJ, 305.
95Ibid.
lll<SBCI, 312; VPR, (Ill) XVIII , I 5-I8.
"'SBCI, 305; DB!, I42. 116HSL, 80.
116Ibid.; SBCI, I42, 306; DB!, I42.
'"'SBCI, 3I2; VPR, XVIII, 1 5-1 8.
186DB/,.137.
tsm was _lot arresed.21 Under their patronage many Buddhist n. The sec on ? ma nus cnp t
Harivarma
and the 39th regnal years of
of the secon manuscnpt too J> .
- k lac e
monastenes and Hmdu temples were constructed. T-arana -tha men-
- says that the recital of the txt This
an passed his 45 regnal years.
5 times in 7 years when Hanvarm
tln that the Pla rulers used to appoint BrahmaQas as their chief
of Bra hm inis m,
mtmste who mstalled many non-Budhist images in Buddhist ns were supporters
temples. From several records ofKashmtrwe learn that the Karak shows tl1at although the Varma An insc ripti on of the 1 2th
learning.
rulers of Kasir were adherents of Brahminic faith. But th yet they encouraged Buddhist to a
l of an icon of Mafijusri refers
century AD esta
the Godess CaQi". He
fou nd on the ped
queens and m1msters patronised Buddhism.23 The above facts d" was n b
:
Maharaja, "who was blessed by tma ge ofM anJ usn.
cate th tolerant polic of kings, queens, nobles and clans. y he established the
a follower ofBrahminism. But ten den cy tow ard s clo ser
atromsed both Buddhtsm and Hinduism which flourished side b In art and iconography there
was the
SI e ad came very clse to ech other. This may suggest that bo assimilation of Buddhism wit
h Brahminism. The 'cak ra' was an
J:bnd_usm and Buddhism, <;>Wmg to their tolerant, liberal and eclec emblem ofVisnu but the Bud
dhists used it and it becam e kno wn
rep
as
re
tic spmt, adopted a d modified many ideas, thoughts and doctrines Hin dus in ord er to
Brahminical
tJ:om each other. Hmen-tsang says that he found non-Buddhists oJ their 'Dharm.:Cakra' .56 The
of fecu ndi ty used very small in-stones
the
sen t the god des s s at Taxt la and
Snp.hapura followed social and religious customs of the Buddhists.24 e Buddhists in their dtsc
He also efers to the sacred Buddhist place in Gaya where he saw nude figures at the centre. Th nud e figu res. 37 Sev eral
without the
ma_ny Braharps. 25 In the Petaka hill, Ava!okita began to appear as Sravasti imitated the same but sea ting s disc ove red at Bas arh
in the
images of Lakmi were fou nd and gat eW?- ys
Pasupata (St) 26 From a sloka ofDhaadasa, the commentator of figures on the balustrade
the CandraakaraJ;La, the Car Grammar of the Gupta period, we and Bhita.38 Some of the Maya rep rod uc ons of Sri
all as Buddhist
also get n tdea about the spmt of religious harmony. There are were regarded by John Marsh of the Gupta penod s also
the figu re ofG aja- Lak mi
Lakmi ,39 and haras,
ample Vldences to show that the Brahminical sects not only tolerate e the Gandharvas and the Vidyad
Buddhtsm but also patronise it. Dharmadasa's sloka says-"Rudra found at Basarh and Bhta.40 Lik y in he udd hist
e found not onl
Vitsvesvara
' , IS
. winged spirits or the paris wer , but also m Hm du and
. the . tu1ary deity of our family, while Lord Buddha, the d Amaravati
. monuments ofS1 :ifici, Bharhu tan nt
conqueror of Evil, .Is the orament of our family. "lt1 In the sixth s.4 Th e Dha rma -cak ra mudrii occupied an importa
Jaina temple pos e w also
ce1_1 tury AD a Budqh1st monastic establishment received grants from raphy:42 The same
place in later Mahayana iconog m the Deoghar
reh_ ef. R.C.
e is a usual device to express
Vamyagupta, the Saiva.28 The Kailan charter of the second half of the figu re of Nar a
found in the two-armed olent
seventh century AD describes - that Sridharana. Rata, the Vatsnava Mitra says, "Th e Atibhanga pos
ruler, gave 1ands o an Aryasatp.gha, the Buddhist Samgha, t the olent
, nm tate d th m us. In
ges oflesser deities he the
an openmg prayer referred to Lord Siva. But in it we see characters their I mages
various parts of the bodies of
?fa feale Buddhist ascetic and her attendant. This indicates that an see the Bud dhi st ima
mtermiXtue of l_fi duism and Buddism existed everywhere . the early per iod we the
ttvas with ornaments. But m
Sasanadevatas and the Bodhisa re wer e Bud dha
The V;yrayogmr copperplate of Syamalavarman, the Vaisnava Eastern India, the
. . _ medieval period, especially in
ng, s 1that the_ d king offered gifts to the temple of P.;,:jfia images with crown and a gau dy torque.-16
paramita.3 Bhata Sndhara, the Brahmin author, wrote NyiiycrKandali
(AD 991-92), the famous commentary on logic for his great patron,
405
404 The Rise and Decline of Bwldhism in India Conclusion
the circular seal no. 18 discove red at Bhita. She was acceptd as the
From the middle of the sixth century AD onwards we see that the t pan theon and "was worshipped as
Buddha IS_ referrd to as an avatara.41 The Matsyapurii1Ja describes the Buddhist goddess in the Buddhissri, the Buddhist god ofleaming.
Buddha as the nmth avatara ofVi!}l) U .48 There are references to ten the female counterpart ofMaiijuknown ddhist pantheon as
avataras
- m ear1ymedieval Brahminical texts. The Matsyapurana (28
5 Kuvera, the god of wealth, was was tinethSak _e Bti of Jambhala. The
_ 7) 49 says, " "':atsyal} kurma ahasca narasi'f!lhe 'tha vamanJ; ran Kuvera and Jambhala.70 Hariti
gver of wealth as well as the
ramasca k!Jnasca buddha/; kalki ztt ca kramat" The Varahapurana (IV' 2) Buddhists worshipped Harifi as the
protectress of infants like Sat}l Devi,rred the Hindu goddes-71 har
also descnbes ten avatarasand mentions the Buddhas as an "avar a.50 to as Dharmapala m the
The Dasavatiiracarita ( 1 , 2) of .K!}emendra gives an account 0 maraja Yama, the god of death, IS refe of thun derbolt, was adopted
avataras and it refers to_ the Buddha (Sugatamuni) _51 T Buddhist pantheon.72 Ind ra, the wiel der
by the Bud dhists in their pan theon.eti There he wa nown . as
_ ( 1 , 202) descnbes the Buddha as an avatara ofVisnu.52 Avalokitevara WI-
Vajradhara.73 A. Getty tl} that a conSim
Ganuf,apura1Ja
R.C. Hazra says that in the Kumbhakonam edition of the M, h on ofthe Buddhist Ma?I
ilarl y,
bhiirata, e!"e is a reference to the Buddha as an avatara.53 h: 5 heads reminds us of Siva m form
.74
rs give us an idea of the Brahmim
Brhatsa'f!lhtta (58, 45) of the sixth century AD identifies the Buddha and her chariot drawn by seven boa ot drawn by e se_:n h<:rses.'
. h v .54 The Buddha avatara was not unknown to Magha cal god Siirya or the Sun and the hari, ViI)U and Parva
tl m Nalanda
- ! I) U
( Szsupiilavadha, XV, 8).55 The Bhagavatapurii1Ja gives the descrip The discovery of the ima ges of Siva
the Nala nda mon astery used to
_
tions of the Buddha. More he IS _
_ mentioned as a deity and also as a indicates that the Buddhist monks ofsugg ests the imp orta nce of the
worship them no doubt.76 It also
god who defeated demons. The Merutantra ( ch. XXVI, on Buddha n the sacred plac es of the Bd
verses 131 28) records the Buddha as one of the ten avataras.5' 0 Brahminical gods and goddesses Siva with four arm s kno wn as Siva
dhists. A standing metal image of foun
Lokesvara of the 10th century AD ofDhyani Buddha on the top of
the authonty of the Brahmapura1Ja 's passage, the K,tyOrRatniikara was d at KeSa vapu r in Barisal."
(pp. J 59-60) says tha Vi!JI) U, in the form ofthe Buddha, propagated
the _ kya Dharma. Th 1aratantrd9 says that the sage Vasitha There was a small two-armed figure d in Bengal had five miniature
wrhipped the Buddha m order to gain an insight into the cult of the image. Many Sakti image foun and this rminds us of the
Tara. Thre re references to Mahayana deities like obhya, figures on the top of the black slab _
Brahmmism made a great
Amoghasiddhi, Kurukulla Pal)<;lara, Tara etc. in orthodox Hindu influence of the Mahayana Bud dhism.78 iconography. The Saddham:a
Tantras.:.60 Several Buddhist deities like Camul)<;la, Vasuli, Tara and influence upon Buddhist theology and iden tifies the Bdda with
etrapala hae o:cupied impotant laces in Hindu iconography. 61 Pu'f!4arika ( 1 1 , 41, I, V, XV, 21, etc.)
Brahma Prajapati.79 The Buddha imag e foun d at Mathura dunng
In the Buddhist Sadhana ofV<yrayogmi 62 we see a goddess with her Pitamah.80 The Brhatsa'f!lhzta
severed head on her hand. In Cordier's Catalogue (III, 1 1 7) there is a reign ofKal}ika was given the epithet s hke the father of the
rfrence o a book en titled Chinr:a-Mu'f!4a- Vajra-Yogini-Sadhanam by (LVII I, 44) mentions the Buddha on a lotu tran sition was easy to the
8anJ?utra. The mdus _ _ the
world.s1 R.C. Mitra says, "From this d ofM aiiju
took this conception and introduced it in sri, Al<;>kitdra
the Image of Chmnamasta, which was known as one group of 1 0 conception ofBuddhist Triad compose Brah mimcal Tnad
Ma Vidya.64 cording to B . Bhattacharya,55 Kali, Bhadrakali, and and Vajrapiil)i evolving n close parallelism to the
the Bud hist Bhriku\}-Tra was
ManJ gho ongmally were Buddhist deities, but, afterwards, they ofBrahma, Visnu and Siva."82
wre mtro?ced into the Hindu pantheon and were accepted as the An image offue goddess known as
kept in the Dacca 8ahia Parid. On hrnds left side ere was an Image
Hmdu deities. N.R. Ray refers to "a hymn in the Siidhana-Mala
of a goddess known as Sitala which renu bron us a HI?u prototype of
addressed to Taradevi, where Tara, Uma, Padmavati, and Veda-Mata ze deities seated -n _a
are conceied as id:ntical and the ideological differences are com Harifi.83B. Bhattacharya identifies threeState Mus eum s ManJusn,
ornamental pedestal in the Baro da
plete! obliterated m the mind of the common worshipper."66 Both nged to the mnth century
the Hmdus and the Buddhists worshipped the deities Carcika and Ganesa and Visnu.84 Nammalwar, who belo
AD , "says that th Bud dha as
an avatara was very popular in South
Mahilila.67 R.C. M!tra68 says, "The figure ofVi9u in meditative pose,
lndia.85 The Amarakosa which belongedsta to the 18th century AD wa!
an_d these of Loksra VI!JI) U and of Dhyani Siva also appear to be
_ written by Manohara Das. It says that S is a syonym referring tc
mgL?ally _Buddhist m conception." The name Sarasvatii which was the Buddha.86 Gopinatha Rao mentlons that m
the Mal ayalarr
mscnbed m Northern characters of the Gupta period, was found in
407
406 The Rise arul Dedine ofBuddhism in India I Conclusion
extreme populanty of. the name Siista in old days in the Tamil region ofCuttack refer to themseves
nt of Sravaka and they appar
country also can . be eVIdent from the fact that in all examples of "fhere name is the modem eqmvale
community which has become
gramar e subject of the sntences is frequently Sattan (Sa:sta) . "89 ently ::-epresent an ancient Buddhist
year visited the cave temples of
The Sn-Bhalfavata says that Sasta or Hari-Hara-Putra takes his birth a sectarian caste ."l0 They once a
deity called Buddhadeva or
from the umon ofHara with ViQU in the form ofMohini. Thus from Khandagiri to offer their prayer to a
commence with the foul.a
Caturbhuja.J<l6 All their ceremonies
e temple of Purl, whtch IS
the hove facts we conclude that the "Buddha, as conceived in tht:
Tam1 cmntry, was ncluded ultimately in the Hindu pantheon and ahi7[lSii parama dharma and thy rep \
c
m.
a PuraQIC tory was mvented aer. ''90 It s also known that in the post suspected of having a Buddhtst ong
the Buddha was acce pted
Gupta penod several Brahmtmcal PuraQas were compiled and they Thus from the above facts it is clear that cepted
refer to the Buddha as an avatiira of the god.91 Jayadeva, the court as an avatiira of ViQ
U. S. Radhakrishnan writes, "It is an a
as ViQ U assu med dtffe ent
poet of LarnaQasena, in his Gitagovinda, speaks of the Buddha, as view of the Hindus that the supreme ood o man kind .
for the
an avatara ofViQU.92 An inscription95 in Northern characters of the forms to accomplish different purposes
dus r m
I? or 1 1 th cen ury AD discovered on the Mahadeva temple near The Buddhawas accepted as an avatara
s prac tices
who reclamed Ht
and pun fied
?
their rehg10n
Tttllagarh of Onssa says that an iicarya named Gagansiva, who sanguinary rites and erro neou
t into it. "108 C . Elliot also
belonged to he Matta-Mayiira school of orthodox Saiva ascetics of the num erous abuses which had crep is recognised .Y th.e
the Bud dha
er<:_cte? this temple. It had the images of Somesvara, Siva, Svami describes, "At the pres ent day
U, though the recgmtlon !s
(Karttlkeya) and Lakmi and of Siddhesvara (Buddha) . This is the BrahmaQaS as an incarnation of ViQ
ViQU assumed thts form m
clear eence of the admission of the images of the Buddha to often qualified by the statement that
aten ed to become too powerful
Brahmm1cal temples during the l Oth or 1 1th century AD . R.C. Mitra order to mislead the wicked who thre
superuman powers : "109
tates, "I isan indication that the process of accommodating Buddha ifthey knew the true method of attaining
dhtsm dually hsap
n the Hn du p theon and of his worship as a god had been already According to M. Monier-Williams,110 Bud
d y any senous or vtolent
m vogue m Onssa, as elsewhere in India. "94 peared from India and was "unattnde m act, could never
that Bud dhts m,
I is generally elievd that originally the Jagannatha temple of religious revolution." He says
twelfth or thtrteenth century
Pun was a Buddhtst shnne.95 CaQc.Ji Dasa/16 in his verses mentions it have maintained itself in India till the
a grea extent through i? tr
and he says further that the three images ofjagannatha, Balarama of our era, harl it not gradua_lly, and to
drop ped Its unnatural pesstrms
and Su?hadra wre e incarnations ( avataras) of Buddhist Trinity.97 action with Vaisnavism and Saivism,
character, and accommo
R.C. M tra descn.be : the three figures are held symbolic of the later tic theory oflif d its unpopular atheistic
poits out .tht as soon as
Buddhts Tantn.: deology. Jagannatha is Upaya, uniting with dated itself to these syste ms." lll He also
and Its atheistic and agnos
_
ubhadra or PraJna to produce Balarama or Bodhicitta, represent Buddhism discarded its ultra-pessimism dent outlook.112
and its inde pen
mg the phenomenal world. "98 N.N. Basu refers to Sarala Das's tic ideas, it lost its individuality
pt all the popular features
Mahiibhiirata and states that the poet here offered his prayer to the Vaisnavism showed keen interest to ado
as one of the avataras of
Buddha avatiira who was staying at Nilacala or Puri.99 Not only of Buddhism. It even accepted the Buddha
iatio n, and in some matters
Achyuta Ds but mny medieval poets of Orissa describejagannatha Visnu. Saivism encouraged abstract med , we see that, when
m. Tha t is why
Buddha mcarnatlon.100 The Imperial Gazetteer oflndia describes that it me very close to Bud dhis
's images were converted
m modern representations of the ten incarnations of Visnu, Buddhism declined in India, the Buddha
in "pofound con templa
Jagannatha occupied the place of the Buddha.101 "The ninth or into representations of Lord Siva, seated
iOus systems worked
Buddhavatara is sometimes represented byJagannatha."I02 C. Elliot tion."m The interaction between the thre relig e
nt that "eac h was influenced and
says that "there are reasons for thinking thatjagannatha is a form of very well. It went to such an exte
ething, or adopted some
the Buddha and that the temple atPuri wasoriginallya Buddhistsite. modified by the other; each learnt som
408 The Rise arul Dedine ofBuddhism in
India ,,. I
,
Conclusion 409
practice from the other. "114 In course of time Buddhism M. Monier-Williams describes further that "the ultra-tolerance
C'::k sm, I.e., the worship
adop ted
?f energy or force (sakti), identifie d with which was the very essence of both Brahmin ism and Buddhism must
Siva s consort The Buddhist theory of the origin of the uni
verse has have preven ted actual persecution, except under special circum
. .
the doctnne of the self-evolution of all th
.
muc h m common With stances. Brahminism was much more likely to have adopted Bud
mgs
from Prakrti. Buddhism also even admitted Tantrism in dhism as part of its system, than to have persecuted and expelled it.
r.orms. m M . Momer-
its wors t
wI11mms
. says that the Brahmanas did not r.o In point of fact, the Brahmins, as is well-known, are ready to regard
bly expel. Buddhism from India. He adds further, It simply .. in "11 8
any great teacher as one ofVi1,1u 's incarnations, and in this way are
end possibly as late as the thirteenth century of our era b even willing to pay homage to the Head of Christianity.
. . - e cam e
blend d With the syste s which The above discussion leads us to conclude that Buddhism did not
blendmg .was gradual. 116 He also speaks of the friendly tole
surrounded it, though the process of
disappear from India totally. It is true that it lost its individuality and
. ranc e
which es ed betwe n Brahma1,1as, Buddhists and Jainas.
These its independent outlook but its existence was always there. Gradually
three religions flounshed side by side and their followers and quietly it was absorbed with Hinduism. C. Elliot says, "Yet in
live d
peacefully. reviewing the disappearance of Buddhism from India we must
Monier-Williams records, "It must nevertheless be admitt
ed,
remember that it was absorbed not expelled. The result of the
that m the extreme south oflndia, and perhaps eventually at Be mixture isjustly called Hinduism, yet both in usages and beliefs it has
nares
and a few other strongholds of Brahminism, the difference betwee taken over much that is Buddhist and without Buddhism it would
n
the systems became so accentuated as to lead to grievous conflict never have assumed its present shape. To Buddhist influence are due
ether blood was shed it i mpossib e to prove; but it is alleged,
s.
for instance the rejection by most sects of animal sacrifices; the
WI some d gr e of probability, that v10lnt crusades against Bud
"119
doctrine of the sanctity of animal life; the monastic institutions and
dhism were mstituted by KumariJa and Sankara-two well-known the ecclesiastical discipline found in the Dravidian regions.
southern Brahma1,1as noted for their bigotry-in the seventh and
I
eighth centuries of or era It does not appear, however, that they
were very successful either m _.
the conversation or extermination of REFERENCES
Buddhists.
It may, I think, be confidently affirmed that what ultimately 1EH1, 382; PHBP, 19; JP, I, 609; SAMS]v. III, 420-21; CT/ll, IV, 47-48; VBA, 1 954, 150-
55; LN, 31 7.
_ . ,
happened m os parts oflndia was, that Vai1,1avas and Saivas crept
UJ? softly to their nval and drw the vitality out ofits body by closeand 2EHJ, 382-83. 'IP, I, 609. 4SBCI, 318.
friendly mbraces, nd that mstead of the Buddhists being expelled 'DB/, 65. "Ibid.; BDHD, 397. 7DBI, 68; IHB/, 492.
from, hI Ia, Buddhism gradually and quietly lost itself in Vai1,1avism 8DBI, 68. 9HAB, II, 121. 10SBC/, 322.
. "Ibid. '2lbid., 318. "HAB, II, 21 1 .
d SalVlsm. In fact, by the beginning of the thirteenth century very
. "SBCI, 322; Bapat, XIV. "SBCI, 324; Bapat, IX-XIII.
little Buddhism remained on Indian soil. In a philosophical drama
16SBCI, 326; HDS, V, 11, 1 004-5. 17SBC/, 316.
ed 'the Rise of the Moon of knowledge' (Prabodh-Carulrodaya),
'"ibid. ""'bid.
211bid.; HB, I, 397 fi, pp. 414 fi.
18lbid.
wntten po ablyabout the twelfth century, the approaching triumph
ofBrahr mmsm over Buddhism is clearly indicated; for the Buddhist 22SBC/, 316; HAB, III; TGB/, XXVIII. nSBCI, 316.
lMibid. I>Jbid., 316-17. 26Ibid., 317.
d other heretical sects are represented as belonging to the losing 'lllDBI, 56; IH(4 1947, 235.
27fbid., 312; DB/, 56; BSIH, I, 58.
Side.
79DBI, 56. "'BDW, 1 69. "DB/, 56; HB, I, 200.
Yet, afte: all, it is scarcely correct to say that Buddhism ever wholly
!
. 52DBI, 56; BSIH, I, 8. "DB/, 56; PBB, 81. "DB/, 56; HB, I, 201 , fn I .
d1e away m ndia. Its' name indeed perished there, but its spirit "'DB/, 57; /BBSDM, 28. "'DB/, 57.
survived, nd Its sacred places remain to this day. Its ruined temples, "'bid., 57-58; DHI, 189, fn 2. !IJDBI, 58.
monastenes, monuments and idols are scattered everywhere, while 19Ibid.; MS, 60, fn I. 40DBI, 58. "Ibid.
some of th se have ben perpetuated and adopted by these later 42fbid.; DHI, 209, 286, 308. "DB/, 58.
phases ofHmudism which Its own toleration helped to bring into ex
. 44Ibid. ..Ibid. 46lbid.
istence. " 117
47SBCI, 3 1 7; SPRHRC, 41 . 48SBC/, 317.
The Rise and Dedine ofBudd
410
.
hism m 1:ndza
.
..Ibid.
:DB!, 1 35 50Ibid.; DB!, I 35.
""Ibid.; EML, 210- 1 7.
"SBCI, 317.
54DBI, 1 35.
58SBCI, 31 7. "Ibid., 318.
DB!, 136; liDS, II, 722. "'DB '"'bid.
: Ibid ., 59.
! 5S.59.
"Ibid.
62zbid.; IBI, I55.
}
DB! 59
..Ibid.
"Ibid.
66 b1d.
; BIH, 670.
681bid.
rDBI, 59.
-Ibid., 5%0. "'Ibid., 60. Bibliography
Ibid. .,%id.
:DB!, I 7. "Ibid
:
"'Ibid , 61.
"Ibid., 61; GNB, 59.
77Jbid., 62; BBD, 89.
DB!, 62.
81DBI, 62.
l9Ibid
:
82Ibid ,
:
Ib d. ; El, XIX, 97.
62_63 Ib1d., 65. Agni PuratuJ, Eng. tr., ed. J.L. Shastri, Delhi, 1984.
84Ibid .
tr. H.S. Jarrett,
B&
SBCI, 31 8; ABllRJ. XIV, 1 932-33, 200-
;,.Ib"d
87DBI, 123 ; EIHG
""Ibid., 1 24 .
, II, 489. Calcutta, 1949.
Aiyangar, N., Ancient Irulia Mytlwlogy, New Delhi, 1983.
I07Ibi
d. '"'Bapat, XIII.
,..HAB' II' 1 30. IIOIJDW, } 62. 1111bid.,
reference to South India, Madras, 1960.
ntlbid. "'Ib1"d., I 65-66.
1 65. Alberuni's India, tr. E. Sachau, 2 vols., London, 1910-1 4.
115Ibid. 1141
11 6 bid., 1 66.
uol Ibid., 166-6 7. Alexander, P.C., BuddJ,ism in Kerala, Annamalainagar, 1949.
bid. , ""HAB, II, 1 30-3 1 .
117Jbid., 1 70-7 I.
I 71 fn. Al-Tarikh-ul of lbnul-Athir, Bulak, 1 874, IX, ed. Ternberg.
Altekar, A.S., The Coinage of the Gupta Empire, Banaras, 1957.
-, The Rii.strakutas arul Their Times, Poona, 1934.
-, "The Siiiiliars ofWestem India", Indian Culture, II, no. 3,January,
Calcutta, 1936.
-, Education in Ancient India, Benares, 1957.
Anguttaranikaya, ed. R. Morris and E. Hardy, PTS, London, 1885-
1900, tr. F.L. Woodward, vols. I, II, 7; III, 7; IV; V, PTS, 1932-36.
Annals of the Bharularltar Oriental Research Institute, IV, XIV, 1932-33.
Annual Report of the Archaeological Suroey ofBurma, 1923.
Annual Report of South Indian Epigraphy, 1920.
Annual Report ofMysore Archaeological Suroey, 1921 & 1938.
Apadana, ed. J.Kashyap, Nalanda, 1959.
Archaeological Suroey Report, Burma, 1921-22, 1922-23 .
Anhasastra of Kau!ilya, ed. R.S. Sastri, Mysore, 1989, tr. R.S. Sastri,
Mysore, 1929.
Aryamaiijusrimulakalpa, ed. Gal)apati Sastri, Trivandrum Sanskrit Jl
Series, 1922-25.
ASokiivadiina, ed. and partlytr. S.K. Mukhopadhyaya,SahityaAkademi,
New Delhi, 1963.
Atadhyi.iyi of.Pal)ini, ed. H.P. Pandey, Patna, 1937.
Atharoaveda, tr. W.D. Whittney, 2 vo1s., Delhi, 1 962.
Bibliography
413
412 Bibliography
pur, Samvat 281 4; ed. J.L. Shas
Avadanasataha, ed. P .L. Vaidya, Buddhist Sanskrit Text, no. 19 ' Dar- BhiigavatpuriirJa, Gita Press, Gorakh
_ bhanga, 1928. tri, Delhi, 1983 .
, 1932 .
Avayaha Sutra (Avassaya Suya), Bombay, 1928. Bhandarkar, D.R ., ASoha, Calcutta .
e Insc ript ion ofN orth em Ind ia in Brahmi", Epigraphia
Ayeen-i-Akbari, Jarrett and Blochmann, III. -, "A list ofth
Bagchi, P.C., "Decline of Buddhism in India and its Causes" Asutos1' Indica, XIX-XXII.
utta, 1 945; II, Poona, 1946.
Mukherjee SilverJubilee Volume, III, Calcutta University' 1 g28 -, ed. B.C . Law Volume, I , Calc
-, Inscriptions ofAsoha, Calcutta,
.
1 920. .
-, India and China, Bombay, 1950. of the Roy al Asw tu
BaJ.Ia' Haacarita, tr. Cowell and Thomas, London, 1 897. aras ", of the Bom bay Bra nch
-, "The Gurj Journ al
.
BaneiJee, A. C., Buddhism in India and Abroad, Calcutta, 1973. Society, XXI, 1902-3. , . ous Systems,
and Min or Relzgt
Bhandarkar, R.G ., Va4rJavism, Saiv ism
-, The Sarviistiviida Literature, Calcutta, 1957.
Baneee, Apama, Traces of Buddhism in South India, Calcutta, 1976. Strassburg, 191 3.
India, Bombay, 192 0.
Bane t:!ee,J.N., Development of Hindu Iconography, Calcutta, 1956. -, A Peep into the Early History of
utta, 192 0.
BaneiJee, R.D., Htstory of Orissa, Calcutta, 1938. -, Early History ofthe Deccan, Calc
t Iconography, Calcutta, 1 980.
Bhattacharya, B., The Indian
of India, Calcutta, 956.
Bud dhis
-, The PiUas of Benga Memoirs of the (Royal) Asiatic Society of
Bengal, V.3, Calcutta, 1915. Bhattacharya, H., Cultural History .
Brahmanzcal Sculptures zn
-, "Pala Chronol ogy", Journal ofthe Bihar and Orissa &search Society'
Bud dhis t and
Bhattasali, N .K., Icon ography of
Patna, XIV. the Decca Museum, Decca, 1929 .
Asoha in Indian and Chinese Texts,
-, Si Asuosh Mookerji SilverJubilee Valume, III, Orientalia, Calcutta Biswas, D.K ., The Legend ofEmperor
Calcutta, 196 7. . .
Umvers1ty, part 3, Calcutta.
iivatiira with jiha
Piiii , ed. P.L. Vaidya, Buddh1st Sanskrit
-, "LakmaJ.Iasena ",Journal ofthe (Royal) Asiatic Society ofBengal, N .S., Bodhicary
IX, Calcutta. Text, no. 1 2, Darbhanga, 1968 .
na, 1 895 .
-, Age ofthe Imperial Guptas, Benares, 1933. Brahma PuriirJa, ed. H.N . Apt e, Poo .
tr. ed. J.L. Shastn, Delh1, 198 3.
.
-, "The Hai1ayas of Tripuri and their monuments", Memoirs of the iina , G.V . Tag ore,
Brahmaritra Sakarabhava. ed. N.R
Brahmiinda Pur
. Acharya, Bombay, 1 948 .
Archaeologtcal Survey of India, 23, 1931. don, 193 8
Buddhavamsa, tr. B.C . Law, Lon
Banerjee, S.D., Cultural Heritage of Kashmir, Calcutta, 1965.
Buhler, c.: "Aso aphia indica, 1 and II, Calcutta, 1 894
.
ka Edic ts", Epigr
tr.
Bapat, P.V., 2500 Years of Buddhism, New Delhi, 1 956. Bur gess A. Gru nwe del, Lon don,
Barth, J., History ofReligions in India, London, 1 882. Burgess, A., Buddhist Art in India,
Barua, B.L., History of Kiimarnpa. 1921.
du Boddhisme Indian, I, Paris, 1 845
.
Bumouf Introduction a l'histaire
Bu-ston ' History of Buddhism, tr.
Barua, B.M., Gaya and Buddha-Gaya, 2 vols., Calcutta, 1931-34. E. Obe rmi ller , Heidelb erg, 193 2, 2
-, Inscriptions ofAsoha, Calcutta, 1934. h Foundation , 1962.
tr. J .N. rkar, ?alcutta.
part s, Tok yo, Suz uki Res earc
-, and K.G. Singh, Bharhut Inscriptions, Calcutta University, 1926. das,
lseley Ha1g, Delh1, 958 .
Caitanya-Caritiim]ita by Kris hna
Basa, R.G., ASokan Inscriptions, Calcutta, 1959.
-, "Sasanka, King of Ban gal", Indian Hi.qorical Quarterly, VIII, Cal- Cambridge History ofIndia, III, Wo y
( The) Cambridge Shorter History
ofIndia, ]. Allen and S1r T. Wolsele
cutta, 1932.
Haig, Cambridge, 193 4, Delhi,
1958. , . . .
-, The History ofNmth-Eastern India, Calcutta, 1 967. s and Sasiinka, King of Gawj,a zn
Baudhyiiana Dham:asutra, tr. G. Buhler, SBE, II, Delhi, 1965.
ta Dyn astie
Catalogue of Coins of the Gup
, 1914 .
the British Museum, J. Alle n, London
eque Nationale, P. Cord1er,
.
Bayley, S1r E.C., Hzstory ofGujarat, London, 1 885.
Beal, S., Buddht Records o!Jhe Western World, Si-yu-ki, London, 1906. du Fen da Tibetan de la Bibl ioth
Catalogue
tr. Motichand nd V..s.
-, The Romantu Legend of Siikya Buddha, London, 1 875. Paris, 198 8. Agrawala,
-, Trvels ofFa-hsien, and Sung-yun, Buddhist Pilgrims from China to Caturbhani (Sritgiirahata), ed. and Asza tzc Soczety Centenary
the Royal
lndta, London, 1 869. Bombay, 1960; and i n Journal of
-, Life ofHiuen Tsang, by S. Hwui-Li and Yen Tsung, London , 1885. Supplement, 1924.
Records in India, Calcutta, 197 4.
Chakravarty, H.P., Early Brahmi
''
414
Bibliography Bibliography 415
Calcutta, 1945.
Dipava'f!lsa, ed . and tr. H. Olden berg, Londo n, 1 879. torical Qp,arterly, II, Calcutta, 1 927.
Grousset, Rene, In the Footsteps of the Buddha, London, 1932.
Guhyasamiijtatantra, ed. B . Bhattacharyya, COS, vol. LIII, Baroda,
416
Bibliog;raph) Bibliography 417
Habib, M., Sultan Mahmud of Ghaznin, Bombay, 1 Kathavatthuppakarana Atthakatha of Buddhagosa, ed. J .P. Minayoff,
927. journal of the Pali Text Society1 London, 1 889.
Hardy, F., Viraha-Bhakti: The Early History of Kn1J.a .
Devotion in South Ka!iliya-Arthasiistra with the Srimiila commentary of T . Gal)apatl
India, Delhi, 1 983.
Hariva'f[lSa Purii'f}a, ed. R. Kinjawadekar, Poona, 1 936. Sastri , Delhi, 1984.
Haacaritam of Bal)a, ed. S.C. Gajendragadkar and Kiivyamimii'f[lSii, COS, no. I, Baroda, 1 934, ed. C.D. Dalal, Baroda,
A.B. Gendra 1924.
gadkar, Poona.
Harvey, G.E., History of Burma, London, 1 925. Keith, A.B., Aitareya Ara'T}yaka, Oxford, 1 989.
Hastings, J., ed., The Encylopaedia ofReligion and Kern . H ., A Manual ofIndian Buddhism, Strassburg, 1 896.
Ethics, I-XII, Edin Khan, F.A., Mainamat Karachi, 1963.
burgh, 1 908-26.
Havel l, E.B., The History ofAryan Rule in India, Londo Khuddaka Nikiiya, ed. Helmer Smith and Mabel Hunt, PTS, London,
n, 1918. 1 9 1 5. Tr. F.L. Woodward, PTS, London, 1915. Tr. F.L. Woodward,
Hazra, K.L. , History of Theraviida Buddhism in South-
East Asia, New ed. Bhikkhu J. Kashyap, Pali Publicaion Board, Bihar Govern-
Delh i, 1 982.
-, Ruyal Patronage of Buddhism in Ancient India, ment, Nalanda Devanagari Pali Series, 1 954.
New Delhi , 1984. .
Hazra, R.C., Studies in the Puranic Records on Hindu Kielhorn, F., ed. Nachrichten der keniglichen Gaselischaft der Wzssen-
Rites and Custom,
University of Dacca, Bulletin no. XX, Dacca, 1948,
New Delhi,
schaften 2 4, Gottingen, 1 886.
. . . . .
1 984. Ki-kie-ye and Tan-iae; Fou{a-tsang-m-zu9n-kzng or fau{a-ts_ag-znz::st
Heern le, A.F.R ., and Stark, H.A., A History ofIndia, chasn, Nanjie, 1 340; translation of Sri-dharma-pz{aka-nzdna-s"! ta
Cuttack, 1 984. .
Heras, H., Studies in Pallava History, Madras, 1 933. in AD 4 72, extracts rendered into English from Sylvam Lev1 s
Hevajratantra, ed. & tr. D.L.Snellgrove, 2 vols., Lond French translation (JournalAsiatique,July-December, 1 696) , W.R.
on, 1 959. Philips in Indian Antiquary, 1903.
Hiralal, Rai Bahadur, 'The Kalachuris, of Tripuri", .
Annals ofBhan- Krishnarao, B.V., A History of the Early Dynastzes ofAndhradesa, c. 2 ()().
darkar Oriental Research Institute, 1927.
Jain, J.C., Life in A ncient India as Dapicted in the 625 AD, Madras, 1942.
Jaina Canon and Kumar, Baldev, The Early Kuar.tas, Delhi, 1 973.
Commentaries, 6th century Be to 7th century AD, New .
Delhi , 1984. Legge,]., A Record ofBuddhistic Kingdoms being an account ofthe Chinese
Jayaswal, K.P., An Imperial History ofIndia in a Sanskri
t Text, Lahore, monk Fa-hien 's Travels, Oxford, 1 886.
1 934.
Jiiiinasiddhi, ed. S. Bhattacharyya, COS, XLIX, Barod Lalitavistara, ed . S. Lefmann, Halle, 1 902-3; ed. P.L. Vaidya, Buddhist
a, 1929. Sanskrit Text, no. I, Darbhanga, 1 958.
Jolly, ]., Arthasiistra of Kau{ilya, Lahore, 1923.
Jonaraja's Dvitiya Riijatarangir;i, ed. Peterson, Bomb Law, B.C., Historical Geography ofAncient India, New Delhi, 1984.
ay, 1 896; tr.J.C . -, Geography ofEarly Buddhism, New Delhi, 1 979.
Datta, Calcu tta.
Joshi, L.M., History of the Punjab, I, Patiala, 1 976. -, The Life and Works of Buddhaghoa, Calcutta, 1923.
-, Brahmanism, Buddhism and Hinduism, Kandy, 1 -, Some Jaina Canonical Sutras, The Bombay Branch of th_e Royal
973. Asiatic Society, Bombay, 1949.
-, Studies in the Buddhistic Culture ofIndia, Delhi,
1 96 7. - Tribes in Ancient India, Poona, 1943.
Journal ofthe RuyalAsiatic Society ofGreat Britain and
part II, 1 882, Londo n: Two Chinese Buddhist Inscri
Ireland, N.S., XIII,
ptions found
j
Li e ofHiuen-Tsiang, Shaman Hwui Li, t . S. B al, Lo don, 1 9 1 1 .
at Buddha Gaya by Rev. S. Beal. Lohuizan-De Leeuz, J.E. Van, The Scythzan Penod, Le1den, 1 949.
Kiidambari, ed. P. Peterson, Bombay, 1 889. Macdonell, A.A., A History of Sanskrit Literaure, Delhi, 1 960.
Macphil, J.M., ASoka, Calcutta, 195 1 .
Karmarkar, A.P., Cultural History of Karnataka (An
cient and Madi Madhuratthaviliisini nama Buddhava'T[lsatthakathii of Bhadantacanya
_
..
aeval) , Dharwar, 1 947.
Kathiikosa, tr. C.H.Tawney, Oriental Translation Buddhadanta Mahathara, ed., I .B. Horner, PTS, London, 1946.
Fund, London, Mahiibhiirata ed. P.C. Roy, Calcutta, 1 882.
1 895.
Kathiisaritsiigara, ed. Durgaprasad Pandi t and K.P. Mahiibhiiva f Patanjali with Kaiyata's Pradipa and Nagda's Ud-
Parab; tr. C.H. dyata, Bombay, 1 95 1 .
Tawney and N.M. Penzer, 1 0 vols., Delhi, 1 968.
418 Bibliography 419
Bibliography
( The) Mahii.bodhiJournal, May:June, Calcutta, 1948. Malalasekera, G.P., Dictionary of Pali Proper Names, PTS, 2 vols.,
MahiibodhivaT{ISa, ed. SA. Strang, PTS, London, 189 1 . London, 1 968.
Mahiikarmavibhanga, ed. S. Levi, Paris, 1 932. -, Encyclopaedia of Buddhism, Colombo, 1963, 1 967, 1 973.
Mahalingam, T.V., Kanchipuram in Early South Indian History,
Bom Miilatimiidhava of Bhavabhiiti, ed. R.G. Bhandarkar, Bombay San
bay, 1 968. skrit Series, Bombay, 1 876; tr. M.R. Kale, Bombay, 1 928.
MahiiparinibbiinaSuttanta, tr., Dialogues of the Buddha, II, T.W. R Manorathe Puriini of Buddhaghoa, ed. Max Wallasar and H. Kopp, 5
Davids, SBE, XI, 1881.
hys
vo1s., PTS, London, 1 924-26. ,
Mahapatra, G.,Jagannath in History and Religious Traditions of Orissa
' Maiijummulakalpa, ed. T. Gai_lapati Sastri, 3 vols., Trivandrum Sans
Calcutta, 1 982. krit Series, nos. LXX, LXXVI, LXXXIV, 1 920, 1922, 1925, ed. P.L.
Mah va, ed. J.Kashyap, Nalanda, 1 956; tr. I.B. Horner, The Boo o
k f Vaidya, Buddhis t Sanskrit Texts, no. 18, Darbhan?a? 1954. .
Dtsaplzne, IV, London, 1962. Miirkar,u!,eyapurii?J-a, ed. KM. Banerjee, Calcutta, Bzblzotheca Indica,
Mahiivarrtsa, ed. W. Geiger, PTS, London, 1908; tr. Turnour, Ceylon
' 1 862; tr. F.E. Pargiter, Calcutta, 1886-196 5.
1 896, ed. N.K Bhagwat, Bombay, 1936. Marshall, ]., The Monuments of Sanchi, vols. I-III, Delhi, 1946.
Mahiivastu, ed. E. Senart, Paris, 1 892-97; ed. S. Bagchi, pt. 1 ; Buddhist McCrindle,J.W., j! ncient India as Described in Classical Literature, Lon
Sanskrit Texts, no. 1 4 1 , Darbhanga, tr.JJ.Jones, 3 vols. London don, 1 89 1 .
' '
1 949-64. -, Ancient India as Described by Ptolemy, ed. S.N. Majumdar, Calcutta,
Mahiivastu, A Study, B.C. Law, Calcutta, 1 936. 1927.
Maitreya, A.K, Caurj,a-lekha-miilii ( Containin g inscriptions of Pala McGover n, W.M., An Introduction to Mahayana Buddhism, London,
Kings) , Rajshahi, 1 9 1 3 BS. 1 922.
Majjhima Nikiiya, ed. V. Tranckner and M . Chalmers, 4 vols., PTS, Memoirs compass a l'apequa de la grand dynastie Tang sur las religieux
London, 1 867-1982 ; tr. R. Chalmers, 2 vols., Further Dialogues ofthe eminants qui allerent character dans les pays d 'ancient par I-tsing, Fr. tr.
Buddha, Sacred Books ofthe Buddhists, PTS, London, 1 926-27; ed.J. E. Chavanness, Paris, 1 894.
Kashyap, 3 vols., Nalanda, 1958; tr. LB. Horner' Middle Length Menon, P., History of Kerala, vol. I.
Sayings, 3 vols., London, 1967-78. Milindapaiiha, ed. V. Trenckner, London, 1880; ed. R.D. Vadekar,
Majjhima Nikiiya Atthakathii (Papaiicasudani) , ed. J.H. Weeds, J.S. Bombay, 1940; tr. T.W. Rhys Davids, SBE, vols. 35-36, Oxford,
Horner and D. Kosambi, 5 vols., PTS, 1 922-33, London. 1 890-94.
Majumdar, B.C., Orissa in the Making, Earl"' Dynasties oifOrissa Patna Mitra, D., Ajanta, Delhi, 1 959.
J '
Mitra, R.C., The Decline of Buddhism in India, Shantiniketan, 1954.
'
1 984.
Maumdar, Gayatri Se, uddhism in Ancient Bengal, Calcutta, 1983. Mitra, R.L., Proceedings of the Rayal Asiatic Society of Benga 1 888.
Mumdar, N.G., Inscnptwns ofBengal, III, Rajshahi, 1928. Monier-Williams, M., Buddhism, Varanasi, 1 964.
Majumdar, R.C., Corporate Life in Ancient India, Patna, 1 922. Mookerji, R.K, Hara, Delhi, 1 968.
-, The Cultural Heritage ofIndia, IV, Calcutta, 1956. -, Ancient Indian Education, Delhi, 1951.
-, The Early History ofBengal, Dacca, 1 924. -, The Gupta Empire, Bombay, 1948.
-, ed., History ofBengal, I, Dacca, 1943. -, Chandragupta Maurya and His Times, Madras, 1 943.
- and Altekar, A.S., A New History ofthe Indian People, Lahore, 1946.
-, and _Dasgupta, KK, Comprehensive History ofIndia, III, pt. I, New
-, ASoka, Delhi, 1962.
Mrcchaka!ika, ed. Vidyasagar, Calcutta, 1 891.
Delhi, 1 981 ; III, pt. II, New Delhi, 1 982. Muthanna, L.M., History of Karnataka, Mysore, 1962.
- and Pusalker, A.., The History and Culture of the Indian People; II, Narain, A.K, The Indt>-Greeks, London, 1957.
The Age of Impenal Unity, Bombay, 1953; III, The Classical Age, Nilakanta Sastri, KA., The Pandyan Kingdom, London, 1 929.
Bombay, 1 954; IV, TheAge oflmperial Kanau}: Bombay, 1955 ; V, The -, A Comprehensive History ofIndia, II, Calcutta.
Strugglefor Empire, Bombay, 1 957. -, Foreign Notices ofSouth India, Madras, 1 939.
-, Raychaudhuri, H.C. and Datta, Kalikinkar, An Advanced History of -, History of India, part I, Ancient Indi a, Madras, 1 950.
India, London, 1956. -, Buddhism in South India, Calcutta, 1942.
421
Bibliography
420 Bibliography
n, 1923, 1927.
Radhakrishn an, S., Indian Philosophy, 2 vols., Londo
-, Age ofthe Nandas and Mauryas, Delhi, 1967. of Kalhana, ed. D.P. Pandit , Bomba y, 1 892; ed. and tr.
Riijatarangini
by MA. Stein, 2 vo is., London, 1 988; tr. R.S. Pandit
-, The Colas, 2 vols., Madras, 1 935, 1 937. , Allahabad,
-, A History of South India from Pr>rHistoric Times to the Fall of Vijaya
- 1 935.
nagara, Madras, 1 955.
-, "Buddhism in the Tamil contury", New India, V, no.22, Decemb
R.ami.iyana, ed. M udhalkar, Bombay, 1 9 1 2-28.
er, Rao, M .V. Krishna, The Gangas of Talkad, Madras, 1936.
1 956.
Rapson, EJ., Ancient India, Cambride, 1 91 6.
Rastrapalapariflrechasutra, ed. P.L.Vatdya, Darbhanga, 1 9? 1 :
Navasiihasiiilka-carita, ed. V. Sastri, I slampur, Bombay Sanskrit Se-
Ratniivali, ed. and tr. G. Tucci, Journal of the Royal Aszatzc Soaety,
ries, no. LIII, Bombay, 1 895. .
Nyiiyaviirltika, ed. V.P. Dvivedi, Varanasi , 1926.
London, 1 954.
Ojha, K.C., The History ofForeign Rule in Ancient India. kutas, Jodhpur,
Rau, Pandit Bisheshwar Nath, History of the Rashtra
Oldenberg, N., Buddha, His Life, His Dodrine, His Order, Calcutta
,
1933.
1 927. ndon, 1913.
Rawlinson, H. G., Indian Historical Studies,
On Yuan Chwang 's Travels in India, tr. Thomas Watters, 2 vols., ofNarthem indza, 2 vols., Calcutta, 193 1-
Ray, H.C., TheDyn asticHistory
London, 1904-5 .
35.
Padmanabha, Menon, K.P., History ofKerala, ed. T.R. Krishna Menon,
ic_
Ray, N.R., Brahman al Gods in. Burma, Calcutta, 1946.
-, Bangalir Itihasa (m Bengah) , Calcutta,_ 1973 BS.
II, New Delhi, 1 983.
History, New Delhi, 1983 . Tucr.i, C., Theory and Practice of the Mandalas, London, 1 969.
Shah, C.L. , Jainism in North India, London Udii.na, ed. P. Steinthal, PTS, 1 895; tr. C.M. Strong, London, 1 982; ed.
, 1932 .
Sinha, N.K ., and Banerjee, A.C ., Bharater J. Kashyap, Nalanda, 1969.
Itihiisa, part I, Calcutta, . .
1 958. Uvii.sagadasiio, ed. and tr. A.F.R. Hoernle, Biblwtheca Indzca, Calcutta,
Sircar, D.C. , Select Inscriptions, I, Calcutta, 1 885-90.
1 942;
-, "Successors of the satvahanas in the East II, Delhi, 1 983. Vii.lmiki Riimiiyana, ed. H.C. Banerjee, Calcutta, 1 869-84.
ern Deccan , Joumal of
, the Department ofLetters, Calcutta "
Vamsatthappakiiini, ed. G.P. Malalasekera, 2 vols. London, 1935.
University, XXVI.
Slokaviirttika, ed. R.S. Tailang, Vara Viiyu Purii7Ja, ed. R.L. Mitra, 2 vols., Bibliotheca Indzca, Calcutta, 1 886-
nasi, 1989; tr. G.N .Jha, Calcutta,
1 909. 88.
Venkataraman, K.R., Hoysalas in the Tamil Country, Annama1ai uDI-.
Smi th, V.A., The Early History of India, Oxf .
ord, 1 924.
-, The Oxford History ofIndia from the
Earliest Times to theEnd of 1 91 1, versity Historical Series, no. 7, Annamalainagar, 1956.
Oxford, 1923. Venkataramanayya, The Eastern Calukyas of Van, Madas, 1 90.
,
- '
I
a_
Immer, H., The Art oflndzan Asza, its .
"J' '2
Mythology and TransFormation
vol s., New York, 1 95&66.
Index
,
Aparanta (Konkan) 50, 52 355 Bhiaig vatapurii'I}Q 404
BaQa 52, 86, 90, 1 0 3 , 107,
Bhaggas (Bhargas) 14,
Aparantaka (Aior, Broach and Sopara ASokacalla 267 19-20
Banerjee, R.D. 228, 248, 255
giratha (Kadamba) 304-
5
areas) 42 A.fokiivadiina 40 Bha
Banerjee, S.C. 1 40
Apararka 301 Asphotacandra 162 Bhagu 7
Banga 3 (see also Yailga)
AparaSa.ila (sect) 26, 28, 54 Assaka/Asmaka 3, 4, 50 Bhagavad(!jtii 296, 343, 386
Bangad inscription 237
Aparnu, monk 52 As Plates (of Valabhadeva) 1 25 , 1 27 avardhana) 89 Bhagavati Siltra 3, 4
Banskhera plate (of Har
Banswara gran t (AD 1 020)
phsad stone inscription 86 Afiidhyiiyi 330 208 Bhamanadevi 200
Apilaka 52 A fasiihasrikii-Prajiiiipiiramita 1 6 1 , 230, Bhandarkar, D.R. 24
Bap padeva 316 278, 286, 292
Appamada Vagga 36, 37 235, 236, 239, 270 Bhandarkar, R.G. 272, 276,
Bappajadevi 1 35, 143 (of Lah aya-
Appar (saint) 317, 356 ASvagho 69, 71 , 383, 395, 403 Bha rell a i n scri ptio n
Ati5a (also as Dipailkar Srijfiana) 1 95
a) 1 24
Bargaon gran t (of Ratnapal
Apsidel Temple inscription (F. Second) chandra) 253
Barnett, L.D. '!127
I
Bhimaya5a 266-7 Bodhideva 1 27 Chandraditya, (Chalukya ofVatapi) 277;
Bhoganaa 8 Bodhimitra, nun 71 Caca-nama 383 (SJiahara) 302
Bhogas 1 7 Bodhiraja Kumara 1 9 Caeca 218-9 Chandragarbhaparif!rcchiisU tra 379
Bhogavarman 83
Bodhisattva 28 , 71-2, 79, 88-9, 163, 183, '
Caesar, Augustus 331 Chandragupta (Maurya) 30, 34-5, 44
Bhoja (Abhinava) 1 34, 144 367, 382 Chandragupta, I (Gupta) 78, 82, 121; II
(Gupta) 78, 79, 80, 82; II (Yakafaka)
Caitanrya Caritiimrta 35 7
Bhoja, I ( also as Mihira, Gurjara Bombay grant (of AD 1 1 10-1 1 ) 209
60
Caitanryodaya Nfl!aka 386
Pratihara) 147-8, 1 5 1 -2, 1 7.4, 1 9 1 , Brahrna Sampati 6 Cakravannan 1 35, 1 43
194, 292; II (Gmjara Pratihara) 149, Brahmadatta 1 4 Chandraraja, (Chauhan) 2 1 7, 223,
Cakrayudha 147
Cambay plates (of Govinda IV) 149
151-2, 191 Brahmapala 124, 1 27 (SJiahara) 302
Bhoja, I (Silahara) 3 0 1 , 303; I I Brahmasiitra Sa1[1karabhlr.fy a 388 Chandras, (of Bengal) 254-6, 258, 369;
Campa 23, 347 (see also Aiiga)
(SJlahara) 301 , 303; I I (Paramara) Brhadratha 44, 46, 389 (of Taranatha's account) 252-3
Gamul)Qa.rlij a 219, 223
21 1 , 215 Brhanniiradiyapurfrr}a 386 Chandravarman 1 73
Cal)Qa. Pajjota (Pradyota) 7, 14-5, 24
Bhojadeva I (Paramara of Ohara) 1 76, Brhatphalayanas (of Kudarahara) 57 Chandravati grant, I 155; II 155; 111 156
Brhanaiw 86, 404, 405
Candi Dasa 406
200, 212, 214, 219, 279
Cadrakirti 382, 395 Channa 5, 1 3
Bhojavarman , (Chandella) 1 77, 1 80, Buddha ( also as Gotama, Gautama, Candramukhav.rrman 122, 126 Chatana 75-6
186; (Varman) 258-9 iddhartha, Siddattha, Sakyamuni, Candrapi<1-a 131, 142 Chatteijee, B.R. 250
Bhonslas (of Nagpur) 200
Bhopal grant, (AD 121 1 ) 2 1 0; (of AD
5akyasil)1ha, Sugata, Tathagata ec. ) Candravyiikara'f.'a 402 Chattopadhyaya, S. 63
21, 24, 27, 29, 36-42, 57, 673, 78- Candrehe stone inscription 1 92 Chauhans (dynasty) 216-24
1 215) 211 81 , 89, 90, 93-8, l lO-l l , 1 1 3, 1 15-16, Cangalaraya 369, 392 Chou:iu-kua 362-3
Bhotta Rificana 140, 145 1 28-32, 1 38, 1 49, 1 63, 1 69, 18. Chikkoras (of Pithi) 266
Ciknayakahali inscription (AD 1 1 81) 3 1 1 ,
Cankuna 1 31
Carkhari Plate, B 1 82; C 1 82; D 182
Bhuda 190 188, 228, 233, 235-8, 245, 248, 254-
Carkhari plates (of Pararnardideva)
Bhiimimitra 48 5, 262, 275, 280-92, 301 , 31 2-3, 318- 335
Bhiisura 257
9, 325, 327-8, 335, 341, 352, 356-7, 1 05 Chinna-Mu'f.'{la-Vajra-Yogini-Siidhanam
Bhutapala 30, 32 359, 362, 363, 365, 369, 375-7, 380, Garumati 39 404
Gateka 132
Bhuvanesvara inscription (of Bha a
tt 382-91 , 393, 400-407. Cintli 1 38
Bhavadeva) 259
Buddha (Kalacuri King) 1 87-8, 190 Gatuma 17 Cippata Jayapida 132, 1 42
Bhuvikramma 307-8
Buddhabhadra 81 Caturbhii'f.'i 378 Chittagong copperplate (of Damo
Bijolia inscription (of Some5vara) 217, Buddhacarita 403 Cedi 3 daradeva, S 1 165) 268-9
431
430 Index Index
196 Guptas, Minor (dynasty) 271 86-107. Isana deva 1 25-66 , 269
Havardhana (Siladitya) 28,
Gokuladeva 126-7, 269 ISanavarman 83, 85-7, 318
0
GUijara Pratiharas (of Kanauj) 147-53
1 1 7, 121-3, 1 28, 1 30, 227. 246, 248,
Gokulika 25-6 7 , 188, 191, 205, 206, 216-7, 23 252, 273, 371 , 374, 376, 391 , 393-4
, I5varavarman 87
377-90
Gomaka 302 GurJaradhipa, Alakhana 134 l-tsing 28, 77, 1 1 7, 371, 75 ,
402
Gondophemes 67 Guvaka, I 217, 223; II 217, 223
Gopacandra 243-4 Harsola plates 204-6
Jacobi, H. 24
upa ruIer)
Guvala, I 302; II 302 , 31
Haryanka (dynasty) 9-13, 23-24
Hastivarman 58
, 279,
Gopala, (Oionk) 52 (Kamar-
jagadekamalla, (Chalukya) 261
1 24, 1 27; (Gaha<;tawala) 1 66 25; ( Chalukya) 28 1.
Haddala grant (of the reign of Mahipala avela) 281 , 287, II
Hathigumpha inscription (of Khar
Jatiga, I (Silahara) 302; II (Silahara) 302 Jogadeva 21 9, 224 Kamadeva 1 43 Kausambi (Koiiambi) 9, 1 5, 25, 1 0 1 , 103,
Jailas I 7 Jubbulpore and Khaira plates (of Yasa Kamala Devi 83 345, 373, 343
h
Jaunpur inscription 85 KarQa) 193, 197
Kamalariij a 199, 202 Kavirlija Sailkhadhara 378
Jayacandra I62-70, 222, 365 Julien 364 Kamalaiiila 395 Kerala-Utpatti 387
Jayadaman 76 Junaga rh rock in scnptto n (of Kamalavardhana 1 35 Kesaputta 4, 1 3, 20, 21
Jayadeva 83, 406 Rudradaman) 315 Kamauli grant (ofVaidyadeva) 124, 230; Keiiavadeva 1 25-7, 269
Jayadeva Paracakrakama 1 23 Junha 14 (of VUayacandra) 1 62 Kesivasena 262-3
jayakesin 301 Kamboja-Palas 235, 250-1 Khac;lga (dynasty) 246-50, 369
Jayamila 124, 1 27 Kiidambari 355 Kiimi/,.ut-Tawiirikh 1 69 Khac;lgodyama 248-.SO
Jayapala, (Kamariipa ruler) 1 24, 1 27; Khahariita (dynasty) 50
Khairah grant (AD 1 073) 197
Kadambas 305 Kai)Q:ibisn 55-6
(Pala) 234, 241; (Sahi) 175 Kac;iungon 331, 334 Kai)Qara (Ananda ruler) 56
Jayapida (also as Vinayaditya) 1 31-2, 142 Kahba plate (of Soc;lhadeva) 1 88 Khajjutara 1 5
(AD
Kaqarapura 56
JayaSakti 1 73-4, 1 84-5 Kailan copperplate grant 244, 402 Kane, P.V. 401 Khajraho Jaina image inscription
Jayasena, Acarya 267-8 Kailaiianatha temple inscription 31 8 KangaV2rman 304-5 1 1 57-58) 1 78, 184
Jayasena (Buddhist scholar) 97, 1 1 7, 347 Kaivarta 30, 32; (dynasty) 265-6 Kanha 149-50, 52 Khajraho stone inscription (of Dhanga)
Jayasiipha ( Chalukya) 209, 219, 272, 277; heri inscription (of AD 843) 289, 290, 1 73-4, 181-2
Khaluri stone inscription 199, 202
Kiijakarama (monastery) 1 4
(Chalukya of KalyaJ;i) 281, 287, 334; Kajangala 8 301, 335, 375; (of AD 851 ) 289-9 1 ,
(Kalacuri) 1 97-8 , 202, 238; (Lohara) Kajjala 1 39 375; (of AD 877) 290-1 Khalamasa 67
1 38, 144 Kiikatiyas at Warangal 299-300 Kanika-caitya ( Kanika vihara) 359 Khalimpur plate inscription (of
Jayasitpha, I (Paramara) 208-9, 212, 214; Kanika 27, 69-74, 98, 129, 140, 393, 405; Dharmapala) 229-31
II (Paramara) 215; IV (Paramara)
Kakka, I ( Rawakiia) 295; II (or
Amoghavara IV, Raakii) . 292, II 72, 73, 1 30; III 73 Khai)Qa Sumana 19
21 1 , 215 295 Kantideva 251-2, 369 Kharagraha I 1 1 3-4, 1 1 8
Jayashphavarman (Chalukya) 271-2 Kakkaraj II (Raakii) 288, 295 Kantiraja 144 Kharagraha II Dharmaditya 1 1 4, 1 1 8
Jayaswal, K.P. 267-8, 315 Kakuavarman 304-5 Kal)va or KiiQviiyana (dynasty) 48 Kharaviil)a 1 25, 1 27, 269
Jayavarman (Brhatphalayana ruler) 57; Kala Khemaka 7 Kapalika sect 299 , 355, 357 Kharavela 50, 331
(Chandella) 1 77, 181 , 185 Kalabhras 274, 31 7 Kapilavatthu (Kapilavastu) 4, 7, 13, 1 6- Kharepatan plates (of Anantadeva) 301
j.ayavarman, I (Pararnara) 2 1 0, 214; II Kiilacakrayana 367, 391 17, 318, 345, 371 Kharod stone inscription 199, 202
(Paramara) 21 1 , 215 Kalacuri (dynasty) 154, 1 6 1 , 167, 1 87- Kara stone inscription 151 Khema 1 0
Jejilibhukti 172-3, 194, 221 202, 259, 273, 279, 286 Karanbel stone inscription (of Jayasirpha) Khomadussa 1 7
Jenta 1 8 Kiilamas 4, 1 3, 20-21 193, 197, 238 Khotika Nityavara 292, 295
Jesar plates (of Siladitya) III 1 1 5 Kalamukha, sect 299, 300 Karikala (Karikkal) 322, 328 Khuddakaniklrya 385
Jessaraja 144 Kalaiioka 24-5, 29, 316 Karkota (dynasty) 1 30-3, 1 42 Khusru Khan 332
Jetasi, Acarya 383 Kalhal)a 1 29-30, 1 35-8, 355, 377, 383, Karpitramanjari 1 48 Khusru II (Persian King) 273
Jhalrapatan stone inscription 209 390 Karl)apura 386 Khwaja Haji 3 1 1
Jhusi grant inscription (AD 1027) 151 Kiilidasa 46, 1 2 1 , 378 Karl)aSUVarl)a 226-8, 243, 348, 381 Kielhom 1 23, 191
Jinaprabhasiiri 298 KaliJ1garaja 192, 198-9, 202 Karl)iita 260, 299 Kimbila 7
Jinasena 289, 294 Kalingas 30 Karul)amisra 236 Kinsariya stone inscription (of Caeca)
Jivadaman 76 21 8
Kirat Singh Rai 1 80, 1 86
Kali'Yar inscription (no. 4) 182 Kasakkundi plates 318
JivadharaQa-Rata-Bhanaraka 244-5 Kalinjar pillar inscription (AD 1 1 29) 1 77 Kasi 3, 9, 11, 1 31
Jivaka 1 0 Kalinjar rock inscription (AD 1 1 3 1 ) 1 77, Kayapiya (also as Sthaviriyas, Saddhar Kirtiriija 302
Jivitagupta, I 81-3; II 83 1 79 mavarkas or Suvars) 24, 26, 27, Kirtivarman, (Chandella) 1 77, 1 8 1 , 1 84-
Jnanakargupta 357 Kalata 141 47 5, 195; I (Chalukya) 86, 273, 277; II
Jiiane8vara 296 Kathiisaritsiigara 34, 1 1 9 (Chalukya) 274, 278, 288
Kalyan plates of Yaiiovarman 208
Jiianapada 232 Kathavatthu 42 Koccadayan Ral)adhira 33I , 333
Kalyiil)achandra 255-6
Jiiatrikas 1 7 Kochcha (Kachcha) 3
.
Kaiyal)adevi 1 79, 185 Kiityayana 322, 330
Jonaraj a 1 39, 2 1 9 Kiityayanipura 395 Kokkalla 1 77, 191-2, 198, 201; II 193,
Kalyiil)amitra 30
Joshi, L.M. 1 23, 355, 366, 377, 382-6, Kalyal)avarman 1 21 , 1 26 Kaukulika 28 201 , 205, 208
391 ' 395, 400 Kama Chandra 252 Kauravas 1 7 Koliyas 4-5 , 7, 20
436 Index Index 437
Mahipala, I (Gmjara Pratihara) 1 49, MaramsilJlha 302 301, 335, 375 Naihati grant (of Vallalasena) 262
150, 153, 174, 191, 205, 292; (Pala) Maravarman Avani Sulamani 331 , 333 Mitadevanaka 74 Nakulamatli 1 9
235-7, 241, 325, 394; II (Gurjara Maravarman Kula5ekhara 332, 334 Nakulapitli 1 9
Mitra, R.C. 356-8 , 360-71, 380, 384-5,
Miara 280
Pratihara) 153; (Pala) 239, 24 1 , 266 Mliravarman RajasilJlha, I 331 , 332; II Nalaka 6
Mahial)<;lala 42 334 387-8, 390, 392, 400, 406 Nalanda (university/monastery) 8, 77,
Mahisasaka 25-6, 55-6 Maravarman Sundara Plil}qya, I 327, Mitra, S.K. 180 79, 80, 90, 95-8, 1 1 6-7, 122, 230, 232
Mahimati 216 332, 334; II 332, 333 Mitta 7 3, 238, 239, 240, 252, 318, 347, 373
Mahoba plates 182 Maravijayattmiga-varm<!-n (of Kataha) Moggallana/ Mahamaudgalyana 7, 19, 376, 377, 381 , 383, 391 , 394, 405
Mahoba Jaina image inscription 177, 325 Nalanda copperplate (of Devapaladeva)
Marka7Y!eya Pumtw
38, 386
179, 181 86 Moggalliputta Tissa 37, 39, 42, 128 233
Mahmud (of Ghazni) 150-1 , 1 76, 208, Marshall, John 403 Monghyr grant (of' Devapala) 230, 233 Nalanda stone inscription 236
359 (see also Subuktigin) Mas'ud, (Yamini king) 1 94 Monier-Wil liams, M. 407-9 Nanda 29, 30, 34; (dynasty) 30, 34
Mainamati copperplates inscription 369 Mahariputra i5varasena (Abhira king) Mookeljee, Radha Kumud 34, 37, 85 , Nandaka 1 8
Maithilas 30 58-9 99 Nandigupta 1 36-7, 144
Maitrakas (dynasty) 108-19 Maariputra Virapuridata (Ikku) Moriyas 4, 20, 2 1 , 343 Nandipotavarman 274
Maitreyanatha 395 54-6 Mrcchaka#ka 380, 386-7 Nandivardhana 23, 29, 31
Maja 67 Mathurli Lion Capital inscription 67 Mrgavati 135, 143 Nandivarman , II 31 20; III 31 20
Majjhima (monk) 42 Mathura School (of art) 71 Mrgendrasvatikarr;a 53 Nangura 1 7
Majjhima Af!hakatha 17 Matsyagupta 71 Mrge5avarman 304-5 Nannaraja 1890. 201
Majjhima Nikaya 1 3, I 7 MatJyapuriir,Ja 404 Mu barak (Sultan) 297 Nanyaura plate , B 182; C 182
Majjhimapatipada 6 Mattamayfira (sect) 192-3, 406 Mugdhatmiga 192, 201 Narada (monk) 23
Majjhantika 42, 1 28, 1 29 Mattamayfiranatha 193 Muhammad Bakhtyar Khilji 261-2, 336, NarasilJlha, ( Kalacuri) 197, 202; I
Majumdar, N.G. 254-5, 267 Mattavil&aprahasana 317, 378 368, 372-3, 395 (Hoysala) 3 1 1 , 314; II (Hoysala) 31 1
Majumdar, R.C. 81, 86, 226, 228, 231- Mattepad plates (of Damodaravarman) Muktakar;a 134 314, 332; III (Hoysala) 31 1 , 314
33, 248, 251-4, 258, 260, 268 57 Muktapi<Ja (also as Lalitaditya) 1 3 1 , 1 32, NarasilJlhagupta Baladitya 79, 80, 82
Malidavatthu 24 Matvalasena 356 133, 1 38, 142 NarasilJlhavarman, I (Pallava) 274.
Mau in scriptipn (of Madanavarman) Muhammad Ghori/Sihabud-din Chori 3 1 7-20 , 323, 332; II RajasilJlha
Malaviklignimitra 46, 378
Malatimluihava 355, 378, 402
176-8, 197 165, 1 69, 365 (Pallava) 31 8-20
Malik Kafur 29&-7, 299, 3 1 1 , 334 Mauesmoga 64-6 Mula Gho vihara 357 Naravardhana 107
Malia 3; (King) 1 34, 144 Maukhatis (dynasty) 85-106 Mulaka (Paithan) 50 Naravarman 207, 209, 213-4
Malia Roja 19 Mauryas (of Konkan ) 272-3 Miilaraja (Chalukya) 218 Narayar;a ( Kar;va) 48-9; (Kharavar;a)
Mallas 4, 5, 1 1 , 1 8-20 Mayidavolu plates 316 Mummadaf!lba 300 1 26-7
Mallika 1 4 Mayl1ra5arman 303-5, 315 Mur;<Ja 23-4, 31 Narliyal)adeva 269
Manas (dynasty) 264-5 Medahumpa 1 7 Muskara/Mokkara 307-8 Narliyal)apala 234, 241
Miinasolllisa 230 Megasthenes 34, 330 11 Nlirliyal)avarman 122, 126
Mandhata inscription of JayasilJlha 209 Meghasvati 52 Nadi Kassapa 6 Narendrasena 60
Mandhata grant (AD 1 225) 21 1 Meghavlihana 132, 377 Nadikli 8 Nasik grant (of Nagavardhana) 276
Mailgale5a 1 87, 273, 275-7 Meghavarrnan 78 Naga (monk) 30 Nasik cave no. 3 inscription (of
Mailgura 29, 31 Mehar copperplate (of Damodaradeva) Naga(s) 128-9 Gautamiputra Slitakarl)i) 5 1
Manikiala in'Sctiption (of Kanika) 71 (s 1 1 56) 268 Nagabha, I 147, 1 5 1 , 153; II 147, 152, 298
Maiajugho (Buddhist god of learning)
Nasikakalpaka
Menalgarh pillar inscription 220 Nate5vari yogi (sect) 358
Menander (also as Milinda) 62-5, 1 29
1 73, 217
198 Nagadlisaka 23-4, 3 1 Natha (dynasty) 246-7
MaiijuSrimulahalpa 1 0, 23-4, 29, 227-8, Merutantra 404 Nagliljuna 52, 340, 355-6, 386, 391 , 395 Nanakhyadevi 191
355, 357, 367, 391 Merutunga 207, 2 1 3 Nagliljunikor;<Ja 29, 54-6 Navasahasaillwcarita 205, 207
Manohara Das 405 Mihirakula 1 3 2 , 372, 390 Nligasena 62, 63, 1 29 Nayanakalidevi 161
Manoratha 1 32 , 3890 395 Milindapaiiha 62, 1 29 Nagpur pra5asti (of Narovarman ) 207, Nayanmars 328, 337
Mantalaka (or Pattalaka) 53 Mif!lmli 1 1 7 209 Nayapala (Kamoja-Pala) 251
Mantrayana 355, 384, 391 Miraj grant (of Gandaraditya, AD 1 1 10) Nahapana 74-5 Nayapala (Pala) 1 94-5 , 237-8
440 Index 441
Index
8 Kol)c;lailila) 5, 6
Prthvisrika 157
AD 1211) 210
Nil] itavarman 135 Pailcolh copperplate (of Saipgra-
Prthvivarman 1 77, 1 84-5
Niyogi, Roma I 69 maditya) 271
Pipphalivana 4, 20, 2 1 , 34 Ptolemy 74, 303
Nohala 192, 193 Pal)c;laka Yakkha 1 29
Pispasi 67 Pudgalavadins 382
Nowgong copperplate grant (of Bala- Pfu)gudasa 403
Pithol,l<;la/Pitundra 5 7 Pujjapada, Acarya 307
varman) 1 24 Pal;lc;lugati 30, 32
Nrpa Kama 310, 314
Plutarch 63 Piikkusati 1 4, 16
Pulakesin, 1 272-3, 275, 277, 304; II 89,
Pa1,1c;luka. 30, 32, 273-31 2
Poussin, La Valle 384, 400
Nrpa Nannuka 1 73, 1 74, 1 85 Pa1,1c;lyas 316, 326, 327, 330-7
Pa1,1ini 46, 330, 341
Prabandha CintamatJi 209 273-7, 304, 317, 358
Nrpa Rayirideva 125
Prabandha KoSa 219 Pulindaka 47..S
Nrpatungavarman 31 9-21 Paililattivada (Prajiiaptivada) 25
Prabhakaradeva 1 35-6 Puloma 53
Nyiiyakandali 369, 402 Panwar hoard of coins (of Madana-
Prabhakaravardhana 87-8, 227 Pulomavi 53
varman) 179
Prabhava5iva 192 PUI,ll)agovatika 20
Odantapuri, nonastery/university (see Paramanuka 144
Prabhavati (Yakataka) 60 Pul)c;lravardhana 226-30, 237, 243, 347,
Udantapuri) Paramaras 194-7, 204-15, 279
Pmbodha Candrodaya 184, 378, 408 374
Otsayana Ciii (monastery) 26 Paramardi 1 78-9, 182, 1 85, 221
Prabodhasiva 192 Purandarapala 124, 1 27
Ou-K'ong 366 Paramartha 71 , 81 .
Pragjyoti 121 Purikl)a 53
Parame5varavarman, I , 274, 318-20; II
Prajiiagupta 382 Piil'l,la 6, 12
Pahbajjiisutta 9 31 9-20
Prajilapalita 236 Piil'l,lachandra 254, 256
Pabbosa inscription (of Udaka) 47 Parantaka, I 292, 323-4, 328; II 329
Pmjiiaparamita 232, 395 Piil'l,ladasa 362
Pachar plate 1 82 Plirijiitamaiijari 194
Prajilaptivada 28, 29 Piil'l,la Maitrayaniputra 6
Pac;lha (Pfu;lc;lya/Paul)c;lra) 3, 196 PariSifr.lparvan 29
Prajilarasmi 98 Piil'l,lavardhana 44, 103, 106
Padmagupta alias Parimala 205, 207 PariVlisa 1 7
Praka5adevi 1 30, 142 Piil'l,lotsarga 52
Padmanatha 313-4 Parmala 222
Pralambha 1 23-4, 1 27 Purugupta 79, 82
Padmapal)i 183 Par5van/ParSvika (monk) 70, 71
Pruanta Siva 192 Purupur (Peshavar) 1 6, 62, 359
Padmavati, (Ajatasatru 's queen) 23; Partabgarh stone inscription 150, 206
Pratapa (Chandella) 182 PurutK>ttarna 268
(ASoka's queen) 43 Partha 135, 143
Pag..sam-jan Zan (Tibetan chronicle) 250, Pratapadevi 127 PiiJVaSaila 26, 29
Parthians 67..S
Prataparudradeva 299, 300 Pusahathini (nun) 72
Pratiharas (see Gmjara Pratiharas)
362 Parvagupta 136, 144
Pupasiddhanta 357
Paikore pillar inscription 196 Pasenadi (Prasenajit) 1 1 , 1 3-4, 16
Pratiana (Paithai)/Baithal)) 15 Pubhiiti 107
PaiSaci JJrhatkatha 307 Pasupata (sect) 299, 3 1 7, 342, 352, 354,
Pratityasamutpada/ paticca-samuttpada Pudatta 71
Puitra Sunga 44, 46-8, 63, 129, 152,
Paiya-lacchi 207 357, 359, 361, 401
Pala school (of art) 232 5, 9
Pataligama s
Pravarasena, (Kashmir ruler) 1 32 ; I 389, 371
akatJika) 60;
(VilitJlka) 60, 61; II (v-
Palaka 123 Pataliputta (Pata}iputra) 23, 24, 26, 29,
Puvarman 1 21 , 123, 1 26
akataka) 60
III (v-
Palapala 240-1 35, 39, 40, 46, 69, 79, 228, 346, 380,
Palas (of Bengal and Bihar) 127, 161, 389, 391
Prithvipala 13 7 Qutb-ud-din (see Kutb-ud-din)
228-41 , 248, 250, 251 , 253, 260, 265, PataliyagamaJ)i 20
Pri thvi sena, I (Vakataka) 60; I I Qyzyl l l
266, 336-7, 362-3, 367-9, 391 , 373-5 , Patailjali 132
442 Index Index 443
Ra"Q<t.Sailkbaraja 138, 144 Ramacandra Kavi-Bharati 369 ipattanamrgadava (Isipattana- 177, 1 85, 197
Ra4ha (Lata/ UQ.ha) 3, 28, 86-91 , 193, Ramacarita 230, 239, 257, 267 mrgadava) 6, 39, 365 samacaradeva 243-4
226-7, 257-8, 261 Ramadeva (Lohara) 1 36, 1 39, 145; Rudoka 266 samaga.ma 1 7
Radhagupta 40, 41 (Kalacuri of Raipur) 202 Rudra Sarnbhu 193 Samalavarman 259-60
Radhakrishnan, S. 400, 401, 407 Ramadevi 261 Rudradaman I 52, 76, 315 Samand 135
Raghu 304-5 Ramagama 4, 20 Rudradeva (Trikalingas) 296 Samanta Gopala 1 77
Rllghuvaf(lia 121 Ramanuja 31 1-2, 326, 328, 336-7 Rudraka Ramaputra (Uddaka Rlima- Samantapasiidika 36
Rahan grant 15 7 Ramapala, (Pala) 127, 1 70, 239-41 , 257, putta) 5 Samana (also as Ananta) 21 7, 222
Rahila 1 73, 1 74, 1 85 266-7, 394; II (Pala) 239 Rudraman a 265 Samantasara copperplate grant 259
Rahula 5, 7 Ramapala copperplate (of Srichandra) Rudrliqlba 299, 300 Samantasena 260-1 , 263
Rai KaraJ:ta 362 254-5 Rudrani 21 7 Samatata 1 08, 1 2 1 , 226, 243, 244-5, 24S-
Raja Dalpat Sa 1 80, 186 Ramaya 1 2 1 , 386 Rudrasena, I ( Karddamaka) 76; 9, 251 , 394
Rajadeva 1 45 Ral}araga 272-77 (v-akataka) 60; II (Karddarnaka) 76; Samavati 1 5
Rajadhiraja, I (Co!a) 326, 329, 338; II Ral}asura 257 (v-akataka) 60 Sambara-vikrif#ta HaridarisarrtiJ.ti 358
(Co!a-Chalulga) 327, 329 Rat;availkamalla Sri-Harikatadeva 270, Rudrayana 1 6 Sambhuttara 3
Rajaditya (Co!a) 279, 292, 324, 328 369 Sambhuvardhana 1 35
Rajadityagupta 271 Rao, Gopinatha 405 Sabdabhavasambhu 192 Salpgramadeva (Vakraghni) 1 36, 143
Rajagaha (also as Girivraja, Rajagrha) 5, Rapson, E.J. 49, 75 SabdaSiva 192 Sarpgramadeva (Voppadeva's des-
6, 8, 9, 11, 1 6, 239, 346 Rasa Mali.i 194 Sabuktigin (of Gazni) 1 75 cendant) 1 39, 1 45
Rajamalla Satyavakya, I 307, 308;. II 309; Rasanayagam, M.C. 315 Saccaka 17 Saipgramagupta 271
III 309; IV 307, 309 p-akiitas 1 47, 1 49-5, 154-5, 161, 1 74, Slidhanii.-Mali.i 404 SaipgramapiQ<l U1-2, 1 42
Rajaputra LakIIlal)a II 188, 1 89, 20 I 191 , 204-6, 230, 274, 28S-95, 307, 324 Saddharmapur,u!arika 405 Saipgramaraja 1 37, 144
Rajaraja/Rajarajabhana (Khga) 24S- Ratrakiitas (of Hathurdi) 207; (of sagar-dharmiimrta 2 1 1 Sarpgrama VijayattUJigavarrnan 325
50 Manyakheta) 28S-95 sagarmati 98 Saipkarananda 383
Rajaraja, I (Co!a) 279, 324, 328, 336-7; Rap-apala 30, 32 Sahaja (cult) 369 Salpkatadeva 1 35, 143
II (Co!a-Chalukya) 327-9; III (Co!a frapala Parif'rcchiisii.tra 376, 379 Sahajatattva 358 Sarpkftyayana, Rahula 355
Chalukya) 327-9 Rata (dyn:)Sty) 24 4-5 Sahajayana 367, 391 Sarnmitiya 25-6, 100, 102-3, 1 77, 22S-9,
Raja5ekhara 1 4S-9 Ratnadevi 1 38 Sahalo (monk) 52 361-3, 367, 375, 377, 381
Rajatarangi1ft 41 , 72, 37o, 372, 377 Ratanpur stone inscription (AD 1 1 89-90) Saharnera Sarnsadin (Shah Mir Shams Sampadi/Samprati 41 , 43-4
Rajatiraja (title of Kanika II) 72 199 ud-<lin) 140, 145 Sarnudraghoa 213
Rajava 200 Ratnlikara 1 34 Sahani, Pandit Daya Ram 159 Samudragupta (Gupta) 78, 82, 121, 133,
Rajavalikatha 34 Ratnapala 124, 127 Sahet Mahet inscription, (ofVidyadhara 208, 3 1 6; (Villtaka) 60
Rajendra Co!adeva I Gangaikot;qa Ratnaraja, I 199, 202; II 199, 202 of AD 1 1 1 9-20) 1 55, 1 65-6; (of Sarnudravarman 121, 126
(Co!a) 236, 325, 327, 328, 331 Ratnasailkranti-pa, Acarya 239 Vidyadhara of AD 1 1 2S-29) 157 Sa'!f)Uttanikliya 385
endra, III (Cola) 327, 329; IV (Cola) Ratnavajra 383 Saitendra dynasty (ofJava, Sumatra and Saiici 47, 72, 403
327, 329 Ravicandra 357 Malay) 233 Saiici Brahmi inscription 72
Rajendradeva II (Co!a) 326, 329 Ravikirti 275 Saka Satraps 66-7 Saiici Buddhist statue inscription (of
Rajim stone inscription (AD 1 1 45) 199 Ravivarman 3()4:.5 Salta Satraps (ofWestem Indian and the yr. 28) 72
Rajula or Rajuvula 67 Ray, H.C. 1 23-4, 155, I66, 1 74-5, I 7S-9, Deccan) 74-6 Saiici inscription (of yr. 22) 72
Rajyapala (GUJjara Pratihara) 150, 151 , 191, 1 98, 205-6, 209, 212, 216, 217, Sakas 64-6 Sandhiman 1 32
153, 1 62, 176; (Pala) 234-5, 241 219, 250, 264 saketa 9 Sandhyakaranandi 239
RajyaSri 28, 83, 86, 87, 88, 90, 102, 107, Ray, N.R. 404 Sakyaraita 15S-9, 170 Sailgam literature 315
207 Rayarideva 1 27 satyas 4, 5, 7, 9, 1 3, 1 6-7 Sanghabhadra 395
Rajyavardhana 87-9, 103, 107, 227 Raychaudhuri, H.C. 74, 86, 268 Salailkayanas (of Vengi) 58 Sanghadaman 76
Rakkhita 42 Rewa stone inscription (AD 1 058) 196; Salastarnba 1 23-4, 126 Sailgharaka 71
Ralaqa 201 (AD 1 192) }98 Salavana 218 Sanjan plates (of Amoghavar) 289
Ramabhadra 147 Rilhal}a 1 38 salisiika 44 Sanjaya (ascetic) 7; (Kalaoka's son) 29,
Ramacandra (Yadava) 296-7, 299 Rockhill and Hirth 363 Sallakal}avarman/Hallakal}avarman 31
444
Index Index 445
Sankara (Y:i.dava) 297, 299
Shinkot steatite casket inscr
Sankaracarya 337, 356, 387, iption 63 Siyadon i stone inscription 1 50 Strato I 64
388, 394, Shewenthi 270
40 1 , 408 s;.,u-ki 377 Sualkuci grant (of Brahmapala) I 24
SaiiAaradigvijaya
Sibi 3
387 Skandagupta 79, 82, 388-9 Subahu 6
Sidhadeva 200
SankaragaQa, (Kalacuri) I 89-9 Skandhastambha 52-3 Subhadda (Subhadra) 8, 1 1
I , 20I ; II
(III)
Sigalapita I 9
Siha , (a bhik khuti)
( Kala curi) I 93 , 200- 2 0 1 ; Slokavarttika 387 Subhatavarman 2 1 0, 21 3-4
(Kalacuri) 200 I 8 ; ( Licc havi Smith, V.A. 43, 49, 1 1 6, 1 22, 1 47-8, 151 , Subhiya 6
general) 1 8; (a Malia) 19
Sankaravarman 1 34, 1 43 162, 1 65, 1 72, 1 74, 208, 2 1 6, 222, Suddhavarman 72
SaiiAaravijaya 387
Sila (Haqa's son) 252
227, 235, 237, 239, 240-1 , 272, 275, Suddhodana 7, 9, 386
280, 288-9, 296, 322, 326, 364, 392,
Silabhadra 95, 97-8, 303
Sankhadanta 1 32 Sudhanvan 387
Siladitya (see Haravardhana)
Sankrantika (Sautrantika) 25, 399 Siidraka, (dynasty) 264; ( King) 264
27 Siladitya I Dharmaditya (Mai
S:u:u;tagarika/ ChaJ;u;tagarika traka) l l - Sodhadeva 1 88 Sugandha 1 34-6, 1 43
Soadeva 1 1 9
25, 26 4, 118
Santarakita 382, 395 Suggaladevi 200
Santideva 382, 395
Siladitya, I I (Mai traka) I I
4 , 1 1 8; 111 Somasarrnan (Devavarman) 49 Suhadeva 1 39-40, 1 45
( Mai trak a) 1 I 4 , 1 1 5 , I
San tivarman 304-5 I 8; IV Somananda 1 41 Suhavadevi 220
(Maitraka) I I5, I I 8; VI (Mai
Sariputra 404 traka) Somapuri (monastery) 236-7 Sujata 5
1 I 6, l i S; VII (Maitraka) I 08, I I
Sariputta 7, 30 2-4, Some5vara ( Chauhan) 220-1 , 224 Sujye!}la/Vasujyetha 47-8
i 1 7-8 .
8arnath 47, 71, 80, 1 00, I59 Some5vara I Ahavamalla Trai lokyanatha Sultan-i-Ghazi (Muizz-udm) 221
Siladityadeva V (Maitraka) 1
Sarnath inscription (ofS. 1 083/ 15-6, 1 1 8 Sumana 1 4
29I , 296,
AD 1 026) 1 95, 279, 287, 326
Silaharas (of Konkana) 289,
236 Some5vara II Bhuvanaikamalla 279, 287 Sumpa 369
300, 303, 335
Sarnath stone inscription 159-6 Some5vara III Bhulokarnalla 280, 287 Sumsumara Hill 4, 1 9
(of AD 1 058) 1 96
0, 1 70; Siiphachandra 252
Some5vara IV 280, 285, 287, 296, 3 1 1 Sundara Coja 324, 328
Siiphadeva I 39, I 45
Sarvananda 403 Sona 42 Sundara Siitakarr;i 53
Sirphanada Bodhisattva I 83
Sarvaiijaha 29, 31 So ra (Roruka) 4, 1 6 Sm1ga (dynasty) 44, 46-8, 63
Sarvaiija-san ti 359
Sirphara 202
Sravasti (Savatthi) 7, 9, 19, 71 , 1 03, 373, Sung-yun 69, 371
Sirpharaja I 34, 1 36
Sarvarthasiddhi Nanda 30 403 Supatitthacetiya 9
(AD 1050-1 1 28)
Sirphara5mi 98
Sarvasena 60 Sravar;a Belgola epitaph Suppavasakoliyadhita 20
SirphaviI)U (also Avan isirpha) 3 1 7,
Sarvastivada 25-7, 4 I , 65, 70-1 as
357 SupratiHhitavarman 1 22, 1 26
, 1 00, 1 02, 320
I29, 365, 367, 38I Sri chandra 254-6 Surapala 233-4, 241 , 362
Simuka 49, 52
Sarvavarrnan 83, 86-7 Sridhantamana 264 Surasena 3; (Kalaroka's son) 29
Sasanka (also as Narendragupta) 226-30, Sindhur.ija 207-8, 2 I 4
Sridhara 369 Surasenas 0
SridharaQa Rata 244-5 , 402
Singhal)a 296, 299
369, 391, 399 Susratha (Sauratra) 50
Srigupta/_Gupta 77, 81-2
Sircar, D.C. 251
Sastri, Ga;tapati 357 Siiravarman, I 1 35, 1 43; II 1 35, 1 43
SirirnaQQa 1 9
Sri-Mara-Sri-Vallabha 331 , 333 Survihara copperplate inscription 71
(also
Sastri, H.P. 362
Satakan;ti I 49, 52
Sirp ur stone inscr iptio n (of
Maha- Srirnati Devi 83 Suryamati as Subhata) 1 37, 144
sivagupta) 86
Satavahana (dynasty) 48-53, Srirnitra 1 63, I69 Siiryavarman 83, 86
Satdhvan 44
74, 315-6 Sisunaga 24, 3I
Srinatha 246-7 Susarrnan 48
Sisunaga or Saisunaga (dynasty)
Suupa.Iavadha 404
Satru bhayatikara 35 7 24-9, 31 Sripuru 307, 309 Susima 35, 44
Saundarananda 403 Sri Samudra 1 39 Sussala 1 38, 144
Semra gran t (of reign ofParmar
Sivabodhi 59
Sri Vallabha 1 25 Sussala 138
di) 1 79 , Sivaraja, I (Kalacuri of Kasia
182 ) 1 89-90 , Sri Vikrama 307-8 Susthitavarrnan 86-7, 1 22, 120
Siitra of Face of Lotus 390
201; II (Kalacuri of Kasia) I 90, 201
Sivarnara I (Ganga) 307-8
; II (Gailga)
Semra plates I 82 Srong-Tsan-Gham-Po 35
Senart, E. 64 St. Paul 393 Sutra.Iaqzkiira 69
307-8
Senas (dynasty) 241 , 260-3, 367, Sthavira Jayagarbha 1 49 Suttavada 25
Sthaviravadins 25, 1 00, 1 02, 318, 3 1 9-
394 Sivaskanda Siitakafl)i 52-3
Set-Mahet Buddhist image inscr Suvannabhiimi 42
Suvaachandra 254, 256
iption 71 Sivaskandavarman 31 6-8, 300
n (AD
,.
,
Shergarh Buddhist inscriptio 20, 374, 381
Suvradeva 208
789) Sivasripuloma SatakarQi 52-3
36I . Sthiramati 30, 1 1 5-7
Sivasvarnin 1 34
'
.
Sher Shah 1 80 Sthirapala 236, 241 Svati 52
Siyaka I 205, 212, 214, 292
Sthitavarman I 22, 1 26 Svatikarr;a 53
....
'
446 lruiex lruiex 447
Syamalav:rrman 402 Tomaras 216 Vakpati (Chandella) 1734, 1 85
Ummattavanti 1 35, 143
Tol)dardipoQi 356 Upa (Ceylonese monk) 78 Vakpatiraja, I (Chauhan) 2 1 7, 223; II
Tabakat-i-Akbari 359 Toram:i!)a 390 (Chauhan) 219, 224
Upade.Saiiistra 70
Tabqiit-i-Nlisiri 21 1 , 222 Toram:i!)a-Kamaluka 135 Vakpatiraja I Bappairaja (Paramara)
Upagupta 38-9
Tail:ipa, I (or Taila I) 278, 286; II (or Trailokyachandra 254-6 Upali 7, 1 2 1 734, 1 85
Taila II) 207, 274, 280, 287, 292 Trailokyanatha 183 Upiisakajaniilaf[Aiira 327 Vakpatiraja II Murija (Paramara) 206,
Taj-ul Ma athir 221 Trailokyasirpha 125 Upendraraja 205, 215 21 34, 279
Takasila (Taxila) 65-6, 1 0 1 , 1 30, 372 Trailokyavarman 1 79, 182, 1 85 Uposatha Pura 294 Vakula 38-9
Talagunda inscription (of Mayiira5arma) Tribhuvana 1 37, 144 Uruvela (Bodh-Gaya) 5, 6 Valabhi 1 07-19
315 Tribhuvanamalla Beta II 300 Vallabhadeva 125, 127
Uruvela Kassapa 6
Tambapal)l)i 42 Trikasastra: Agama.Siistra, Spandaiiistra, Vallabharaja 266-7
Uvadata 74-5
Tamralipti 102, 348, 373 Pratyabhijiiaiiistra 1 4 1 Vallalasena 261-3, 369
Utama 144
Tantrayiina 367 Trilocanapala 151, 153 Valmiki 330
Utkarsa 1 37, 144
Utpal (dynasty) 1 33-7, 143
Tao-sheng 371 Tripathi, R.S. 89-90, 1 5 1 , 1 61 , 275, 278, Vamana 1 32
Tapassu 1 9 279, 28 1 , 288-9 , 293, 304, 309, 322, Varpsa (Vatsa) 3, 4, 14-5, 19, 21
Uttama Cola 324, 328
Tara 1 83, 188, 236, 239, 240, 280, 282, 336 Uttara 42 Varrsaf!happakiisini 24, 50
2834; 361 ' 373, 402 Tunga 1 37 Vanga 86, 195, 226; 238, 279
Uttaraiiaila 29
Taranatha 29-30, 46, 1 30 , 230, 231-2, Tyagasirpha 124 Vanamala 1 234, 127
236, 239, 357-8, 361-2, 383, 389-90, Vacaspatimisra 388 Vantideva 1 38-9, 144
392, 394, 402 Ubbhataka 19 Vadimadagajendra 306 Vapyatra (Bappata) 229-30, 241
Tarapiqa 1 31 , 1 42 Ubhaka 29, 31 Vargul)a, I 331 , 333; II 319, 331
Vadirajendra 35 7
Tariitantra 404 Uccala 1 38, 144 ViiriihapuriityJ 404
Yaghadeva 1 80
Tarkasarvasva 402 Udantapuri ( also as Odantapuri, Varanasi 9, 1 0, 1 4, 24, 69
Vagiiivararakita 159, 170
Tarn, W.W. 63 monastery/university) 230-1, 239, Vaidya, C.V. 1 1 7, 132, 276, 31 6, 320 Varn (dynasty), (Bengal) 258-60, 403;
Tarpandighi and Arulia grants (of 392, 394 (Kamariipa) 121-26, 369
Vaidyadeva 1 24-5, 127
Lakmal)asepa) 262 Udaya, (Jayasirpha's Commander) 1 38; Val)amana 265
Vainyagupta 80, 82, 369, 402
Tashi Lama 392 (monk) 67 Varl)ata 1 36
Vairisirpha I 205-6, 214; 11 205-6, 214
Tathagatagupta 80, 82 Udayaditya 195, 209, 21 2-3, 214 Vasantadevi 162, 1 70
Vairocana 350
Tattvasmrtgraha 382 Udayakarl)a 1 25 Vaisali (Vesali) 5, 7-8 , 10, 1 7-9, 24, 1 83, Vasantapala 236, 241
Taxila copperplate inscription (of yr. 70) Udayamana 264 Vasavendra/Vasavachandra 184
346, 366-70, 371
65-6
Taxila silver scroll inscription (yr. 136)
Udayana (Udena) 1 4-5, 1 9 Vajira 1 1 Vasenhi 1 8
65
Udayana (Brahman scholar) 386 Vajji 3, 4 1 , 346, 366 Vasiska 71-3, 1 29
Udayanadeva 140, 1 45 Vajjian 4, 7, 1 1 , 1 70 Vasi !}liputra C3.rptamt1la I 54, 56
Tejpur plate (of Vanamala) 1 23, 126 Udayapur inscription (of Jayasi!Jlha of Vasi!}liputra Pulumavi 51-3
AD 1310) 212
Vajrabodhi 318-9
Tezpur rock inscription 123 Vassakara Brahmal)a 8, 1 1
Vajradatta 123
Theodorus 64 Udayapur praiasti 205, 207-8 Vassavasa 1 0
Vajradhamma 150
Theriigiitha 20 Udayaraja 1 37 Vastupuriya (sect) 382
Vajraditya 1 31 , 142
Theravadins/Sthaviravadin 26-7, 41 Udayavarman 210, 215 Vasu, N. 250
Vajragupta 80, 82
Tirumalai 356 Udayibhadda 23, 31 Vasubandhu 71, 80, 389, 390, 395
Vajramitra 47-8
Tirumaitgai Kiiratam 356 UdbhaJa 1 32 Vasudeva (Chauhan) 22, 2 1 7
Vajrapal)i 405
Tingyadeva 1 24, 127 Udbhafala1(1Mra 132 Vasudeva, (Deva) 269; (Kal)va) 48;
Vajraparvataviisinikii'ya 355
Tipifaka (Sutta, Vm,;rya and Abhidhamma) Uddaka 238 Vajratiri 35 7 (Kul)a) 73; II (Kual)a) 73
26-7, 70 Udyotakara 386, 388 Vasumati 1 25
Vajravarman 258-9
Vajrayiina 355-6, 358, 367-9, 38_4-6, 391
Tirujriana-Sambandar 31 7, 331 , 353, 356 Ugga-Ga!;tapati 1 8 Vasumitra 26, 70, 71; (Sunga) 47-8
Tirutturutti 356 Uggasena (Ugrasena) 30 Vatsa Devi 83
Vajrayogini copperplate (of Syamala
Tissa 7; (Vigata5oka, son of Bindusara) Ugras 17 Vatsa (dynasty) 15
Ujjain grant (of AD 1 022) 208
varman) 402
44 Vatsaraja, I 1 49; II 153
Vajrayudha 1 3 1
Tivara 434 Ujjeni (Ujjaini) 7, 1 4 Vatsipuuiya or Sarnmitiya 25-6, 28
Yaka\3kas 60..61 , 315
' 449
448 Index Index
Yuvaraja I Keyuravar 191-2, 201
Vliyupuriitw 43, 386 Vindhyavarman 210, 214 Yon a 3 Yuvaraja II 192-3, 201 , 207-8
Vedanta Kalpataru 296 Vira Pai)Qya 332, 334 Ysamattika 75-6
Velurpaliyam plate 316 Virabodhi 59 Yueh<hi (tribe) 64, 68 Zeda 2nd inscription 71
Veluvana 7, 1 0 Viravarman, (Chandella) 1 79..8 0 , 1 82, Yilkadevi 377
Venkataraman, K.R. 309, 310, 3 1 2 185; (Pallava) 3 1 6, 320 Yilpa inscription (of yr. 24) 72
Verfija 8 Visakhadatta 30
Verma, O.P. 297 ViJ;ugopa, (Ganga) 306-7, 309; (Gupta)
Vethadipa 20 82
Vibhajjavada 42 ViJ;ukuJ;Qin (dynasty) 86
Vidarbha (Berar) 50 VJ.Wupuriitw 121
Videha 4 Vi5oka 24, 29
Videhas 1 7 Visvamitra 4
Vidyadhara (Chandella) 1 5 1 , 1 76, 1 77, Vi5vasilpha 76
182, 185 Vithihotras 30
Vidya 200 Vrkachandra 252
VigataSoka 44 Vunne Guruvayapaylam plates 318
Vigrahapala, I (Pala) 195, 233-4, 241 ; II Vuppa 1 39, 1 45
(Pala) 235, 241; Ill (Plila) 239. 241 Vyasa 200
Vigraharaja ( Lohara) 1 37 , 1 44 , I Vyiiyoga Parlha Parakrama 221
(Chauhan) 21 7, 223; II (Chauhan)
217, 223; III (Chauhan) 2 1 7, 223; Waley 362
IV (Chauhan) 21 9..21 , 224 Wang Hiuen ts'e 78
Vijaya (Salastamba) 1 23, 1 26; Wardak Vase inscription 72
(Satavahana) 53 Watters 364
V!_jayacandra 162, 1 70, 21 9..21 , 224 Wima Wema Kadphises (or Kadphises
Vijayaditya (Chalukya) 196 II) 69, 73
V!_jayakirti 307 Wu-ti (or Hsiao Yen) 81
V!_jayamitra 52, 63
Vijayapala, ( Chandella) 1 77, 1 84-5; Ylidavas (of Devagiri) 280, 295-9
(Gurjara Pratihara) 150, 1 53 Yajiiasri SatakarJ;I 52-3
V!_jaya8akti 1 73-4, 1 84-5 Ylijiiavalkya 386
Vijayasena, (Karddamaka) 76; (Sena) Y:!_jiiea Gupta 271
261-3, 369 Yakapala 264
V!_jayasipha (Kalacuri) 1 97, 202 Yliminis (of Punjab) 161 , 219
Vikrama Co!a 1 59 Ya'qub Shah 140
Vikramaditya, I (Cha1ukya) 287; (Gupta) Yaa 6, 25
82; II (Chalukya) 287; (Gupta) 82; Yasal;lkarJ;a 193-4, 196-7, 199, 202
VI (Chalukya) 197 YaSal;lpala 151 , 153
Vikrama.Sila (monastery/university) 195, Yasaskara 135-6, 1 43
231 , 235, 237-40, 394 Yasodhara 5, 7
Vimala 6 Yasolekhyadevi 200
Vimalagupta 1 15 Ya5ovarman (Paramara) 209.. 1 0, 2 1 4
Vinayaditya, I (Hoysala) 3 1 0, 3 1 4; II Ya5ovarman Puppa 1 73-5, 1 78, 1 81-2,
(Hoysala) 3 1 0, 314
Vinayakapala II 153
1 85, 208
Yavanas (Greeks) 62, 389
..
Vinaya-vibhiifiifiistras 70 Ya5ovigraha 154, 170
Vindhyasakti , (Vakataka) 60- 1 ; I I Yazdani , G. 297, 29 9
(Vilitaka) 60 Yogacara 90